Gass. F t ! Book- / /v .n . o X a &\ ■^-oi m. W i- ir<\ ^:^^ A./ A. Y r-: V tl 9 =^i^ (T>^ ^ ■ t o il N E W JE-^C im 'i^- .1 ^ ,-^\ 'A WA ¥ DESCRIPTION or THE N e w - Y r k : PUBLISHED h\ ROBLIU -L4R- 128 Nassau Street. 184S -k^ %^n ^^M ':jiA-rv: ^-JCf >1 M 'm .r«. -' y £S^ Zy V- |l:i::;!li< f Ik knJii il'HJf.'i;..'. , :, i i 11 1 " m l;lf^ 1 !iil| '\'!>l ii ii 1), jii ^ * NEW AND POPULAR PICTORIAL DESCRIPTION OF THE UNITED STATES: CONTAINING AN ACCOUNT OF THE TOPOGRAPHY, SETTLEMENT, HISTORY, REVOLUTION- ARY AND OTHER INTERESTING EVENTS, STATISTICS,. PROGRESS IN AGRICULTURE, MANUFACTURES, AND POPULATION, &c., OF EACH STATE IN THE UNION. ILLUSTRATED WITH ENGRAVINGS OF THE PRINCIPAL CITIES, PLACES, BUILDINGS, SCENERY, CURIOSITIES, SEALS OF THE STATES. &c_ &c. EDITED BY ROBERT SEARS. NEW YORK: PUBLISHED BY ROBERT SEARS, 128 NASSAU STREET. AND SOLD BY F. S. SAXTON [lulf Saxton & Kelt), 118 WASHINGTON ST., BOSTON; GROVES & CO., PHILADELPHIA; CHARLES HOSMEIi, HARTFORD; GILnF,KT ItlCHMOND, PROVIDENCE; VVM. STEBBINS, NEWHaVEN; ERA.'^TUS H. PEASE, R2 STATE ST, ALRANV; R. \V.VS8 32!) 333 335 3311 3'U 343 345 347 349 3.'i2 352 3fil 305 305 307 373 375 370 377 379 379 381 3S3 385 387 389 3911 391 3" Seal of Arkansas 'f'f' O/.ark Mountains ''.SO Rocky HInll's on the Mississippi ')()2 Seal ol' Tcnnesseo ""y Ciinilieiland Mountains ''07 City of Nashville ''"1 Seal of Kentucky 470 Bank I.ick ''■'' Flit ranee to llin Mammoth Cave '^"^ Cily of l.ouisvillo ''"^ Snal of Ohio 480 HI an nerli asset's Island 480 Scene in the Farlv Seltlement of Ohio -191 View of Cincinnati in IWO 493 View of Cincinnall in 1848 'l'-'|j The I.andinRl'lace a I (Cincinnati 4 97 New (Catholic Cathedral, Cincinnati -^99 I, alio Seminary. Walnut Hills, near Cincinnati 501 Kenvon ('olleKc. (.'aiiilijer, Ohio r'02 Aiitii|iiities— Sih'cr Swonl-OrnaTncnt .M J''ronl and Hack View of a Boss of the Sword- Beit 501 A Copper Pliirnb, or Pendant ■''04 Vinw of Slciilicnville 5''7 Se.al of Michigan 514 Pictured Rooks on Lake Superior n 514 City of Detroit 5 'J Mackinac Bliills 521 Seal of Indiana .532 Ciildir River, near New Harmony 53-! Statehonse, at lndiaiia|)olis 535 View on the Wabash River 539 Bear- Hunting.— Winter Si:ene 541 Seal of Illinois 544 Cave- in Rock, near Sliiiwneolown 544 Tlie Pioneer of flio Woslern Forest 5l7 Cily of Chicago 553 Rock Fort, on the Illinois River 5.57 Mount .loliot 501 Emigration to the West 503 Encampment for the Night 505 Seal of Missouri. 500 Elk-horn Pyramid, on the Upper Missouri 500 City of St. I.oiijs ,573 Herd of Hull'aloos and Elks 578 BulValo- Hunting 580 Seal of Iowa 5''2 I'hnigration ,582 l.og-tcabins and Sawmill at the West 5H5 Seal of Wisconsin 587 Prairie on Fire 587 Mil wank ie 591 SouMiport 593 A Clearing and T.og Hut 595 Maiden's Rock, on the Missouri 597 Astoria, on the Columbia River fi05 Oregon (City, at the Falls of the Wlllamotte 607 Seal of the United States 608 iiim IDESERT ROCK LIGHT HOUSE MAINE. Although Maine was settled V>y Europonns severnl years before any other par!' of New Enfjlaiirl, it was not ndmitted into the T ^lion as a state until l'^'?0. Previously to thnt peri- od it w;is a mere territory of Massa- chusetts, and lonoj- bore the title of the "district of Maine." In point of extent, however, and rapidity of growth, it ranks at the head of the eastern states ; embracinof, between its distant limits of Lower Canada on the north, New Brunswick on the east, the Atlantic on tlie south, and New Hampshire on the west, an area of .33,223 square miles. A considerable part of the northwestern division of the state is mountainous, and there are rou2;h tracts and peaks of consideralile elevation in some other parts; but in the north the surface is generally even, although the height is con- siderable, dividing the waters of the St. Lawrence from those emptying into the ocean. The Allegany range, which first appears in Alabama, and traverses nil the intermediate Atlantic states, with mountains or hills of different breadth and elevation, is considered as terminating in that cluster of wild and lofty heights which occupy the northwestern counties of Maine ; beyond which no ridge is to be found, except that of the greatly rising land in the north just mentioned. The highest land east of the Mississippi, excepting only Mount Washinofton, and a few of its neighboring peaks, in the heart of the New Hampshire White hills, is Katahdin mountain, on the IPenobscot river, near the centre of this state. It is 5,33.3 feet high. The other most elevated points are Speckled, Whiteface. Bald, and Saddleback mountains, north of Androscoggin river, and not far from the western boundary of the state. The rivers of Maine present some striking peculiarities. The surface of the state is divided into unequal parts by the courses of the Penobscot, Kennebec, •Z2 DICSCIIIPTION OK THE STATIC OK MAINE. !iii(l Aii(1i-(>MC(»tifij^iii, wliidi mil iiourly soiilli, in diicclioii.s ii(!;uly paiallcl and ('.|ui(lisi;mt ; wliiUi, !ih tliny aj)})r()ii(;li the MM, ;i iiiiiiiln'i- of stiialliM- Hlroams flow in slidit coiiiscs l)(;lvv(UMi th(,'m, subdivi- {\\'\'X t!i(! coast itilo many capes and po- ninsiihis, wlinsc nninlicr is still further im rcasJid by bays and (^ovi^s wliicli sot im into tlic bind (;vci'y lew miles, and iVinm! I he sunlii(M-n ontlino of tho state idonif its whole exlont of 221 miles, fi'orn Killery point lo (.^nixbly iuiad. The inn'tlicM'n p;iit of tlie m;ip pi-(!H(Mits count- less siii.ill 'treanis pDiiiinL; into the main trunks of iIk; rivt-rs abovi^-menlioiKid, of wliicli tliey are tlu; t ribnt;ii'ies ; wliile still iibiive them, flowiiiir with a long swccj), from norlli to east, and southeast, tlic St. .lolin's, the principal stream of the state, encircl(?s the whoh;, ma iking out the present nnii Ihmii boundary, till il cii)ssi\s the eastern boundary, and Hows on through I hi; luughboring Brit- ish provinc(5 of New Urunswick. Thi^ valley <>f the Sax^o (Miibracos 0,50 sijiiare mihis, that o( ihe Androstroggin :!,::()(), the Kennebc- o/.'^n, and the INMiobscot S,-jOO. The >Mi ilier sirea.ms in the south pact of the stale, befoic al- luded to, are the Pis(;ata([ua, Sheepscot, Dainariscotta, Muscongus, [Jnion, Nar- ragnugus, and Machias. The region betwecMi the Penobscot and tlie Kenne- bec, a dislanci^ of (ifty miles, is remark- ably well supplied with streams and in- lets, so that almost every town has a navigable channel of its own. The soil along the Atlantic border, extenditig from ten to twenty miles back from the coast, is generally poor, al- though varying from sand to gravel, clay and loam, producing small crops of "•rass, Indian corn, ry(!, dtoc. The lu'.xt belt of land, from fifty to one hundred miles wide, is of better quality, and yields, in addition to these articles, wheat, oats, (lax, and hemp, as well as most of the northeiai plants. The tract | between the Kennebec and Penobscot i is r(Mnarka!>ly fivorable to "j^i-azing, and, i when wtUI cultivated, yields forty bush- els of corn, and from twenty to forty i busluMs of wheat, to the acre. Agricul- ture was greatly neglecrted (or many years, the attention t»f the inhabitants bcung almost entlr president of the senatt\ and the speaker of the house of reprcisentativea. Moore's charity school, a vvell-en- dowod institution, is connected with the Coll(\!^o. Tho following are the nam(>s and dates of tho presidents f)f Dartmouth cidletre: Kev. K. Wheelock, I). I)., 1769 to 1779; Jno. Wheelock, I.L. 1)., 1779 to 1815; Rev. Francis Brown, 1). D., 1815tolSt20; Rev. Daniel Dana, D.D., 1820 to 1821 ; Rev. I^Minet Tyler, D. D., 182-2 to 1828; l?ev. Nathan Lord, 1828. The annual expense of tuition is twent v-seviMi dollars; rent, seven and a half dollars ; board, from one dollar to one dollar and a half per week. The course of lectures in the medical colIt\^t" continues fourteen weeks. Four or live lectures are delivered daily. The fees are al)out fifty dollars. Havkuhii.i. is a town ext(Midin't!f alonc^ the Connecticut, opposite the tJreat Ox- bow, one of the larji^est and most fertile tracts of meadow-land on this part of its course. The size of this stream is much smaller here than in the lower part of the state; yet its source is still quite distant ; and there are a few points con- nected with it which may be adverted to in this place. Connecticut river in this state makes a considerable part of its descent from its headwaters to the ocean level. Lake Connecticut is one thousand six hundred feet hi(>d wilhin tlircM' feet of tlie house. Aiiothi-r to(dv away the barn, and over- whtdiiKid the family ; iiothinij was found of them for some time; their cdotlu^s W(M-e found lyitiu^ at their bedsich s. 'I'lit; }iou,s(? had been stnrtiid on its foundation by an iinniense heap of earth and lim- ber, wiiic.h had slid down and slopped as soon as it touched it ; and lliey liad all been crushed on leavin;^ the door, or borne away with the water that over- llowed the meadow. The; bodies of sev- eral of them w(M'e never found. The last HMTiains dificovered wen; those of a cliihl found in IS4G. A catastrophe so m(^l:lU( holy, and at the same time so sinu;ular in its circumstances, has hardly ever occurred. It will always furnish the IravellcM- with a melancholy suiijcict of r(>lUM-tioii. liARTi.i/rr is a vi!lai>[e situated in a rich vall(\y, <^r intervale, ol' about tlin'(! hundred acres, wluu'e the vitnv is bound- ed on every side by near and lofty inoun- tains. riiero is another intervale amou'_>" tlu'. mountains westward, whicli, although it contains as nmch i^ood cl(!artul land, has lu'en converted into a common, in ctmscNpiencc! of the dilficiilty of makiu'j; a ofood road to it. I'ursuinjr still the course of the narrow valley, au^ainst the curriMit of the Saco, the country is found uncleared, except two tu- three pretty little meadows, and destitute of inhab- itants, excepting only three or four poor families, until arriving; at (Crawford's farm, seven and a half miles south of the Notch. The water rose in this house two feet in the liood of 18:3(>. This is the place from which visiters formerly began their excursions to the mountains. Prospect Moiiiifain, one of the princi- pal peaks, pres»^nts itself to view a little before arriving at the first Craw- ford's, with its smooth rounded sum- mit of brown moss, rising several hun- dred feet above the region of vegeta- tion, and offering an aspect which I distinguishes these from the other ele- vations. 'I'he climate in this narrow valley is still so warm as to favor the growth of various trc'cs. which are scarcely to be 'found a few :iiiles further iioitli. The forests are here foniicd of spruce, ash, i beech, ma})lc^ and sugar-maple ; and In- I dian corn grows well, which will not } come to maturity beyond. The (u-cluird contains hundreds of apple-trees. This ] is oiH^ of the principal stopping-plac(>s ' for thi^ sleighs, which pass the moun- tains in great numhei's, (lurinoston, &c. Nanc]i\s Hill is a small elevation a few miles north of this place. In 1773 | a young woman of respectable connex- 1 ions, who accompanied a family of set- i tiers to Dartmouth (now .lefll'ison), set out in the wiiit(>r to return to Ports- i moiitli, alom> and on foot, her lover lutV- ing promisqd to meet her there and marry her. There was then no house nearer than Bartlett, thirty miles. Nancy was I'ound by some travellers in this spot, fro/.(Mi and covered with ice, un- der a shelter foruK^d of branches of trees, which was the only shelter to be found es, which j came from a half a mile up I lie side of I the mountain, rushing down at an angle of forty-five degrees, and precipitated itself into the bed of the S;ico, which is \ iu;arly three hiindied leiM Inflow. I The road rises with a steep ascent for a considerable distance before it reaches the Notch, and the traveller ol)- serves two cataracts, one pouring down a precipitous mountain at a distance on the west side of the valli'v. and tlu^ other, which is called the Flume, rush- ing down on the right hand, and cross- ing the road under a bridt>e. The scenery is sublime and impressive be- yond descriptiiily I lie snow is |)re- vtMited from lyinir on I he pntli at the Noleli, l)ul tin; snrfaci; is s\\e|)t of every- tliin,n- I hilt a. stroni;- wind can remove. Tlu* summits of llic niounlaiiis arc; fre(inenllv invested with mist vvIkmi tlu! sky is clea.r, and thosi^ only who inhabit the vicinity are able to toll wlielher ihe day is to be favorable for I he nscent. The mists sometimes collect in I he viil- leys, and tlnm pi'eseut some ^- houses and oilices, or shops, in which their wares are maiiulactured, and their aei'ds and herbs prepared, stored, and sold. Separate habitations, of lari>e size, are appropriat(>d to the dilltn-ent aoxes, as llieir docliiiies condemn mal- riniony, sepai'ale man and wife, and break ii]) the i'ea.l lamily state Irom its foundation. Their nntral and theologi- cal o|)initMis it would be dillicidt to ascer- tain, as th(\Y ket'p miu-h aloof and pub- lish but little, while lew avow much that is consistent with one jinother, or even with ihemsc^lves. 'i'he writer speaks from personal km)wledL;e, iiavin^- held a conference with the leadint;- men of a Shaker village in this ])art of the coun- try, and triiul in vain to learn thoir whole creed. They only intimated a rejection of some of the tloctrines held as fniiilanuMital by nn)st Ami-rican (Miris- tiau denominations. Ann Lee, an Kni>;lishwoman, the found- er of their sect, they re<:^ard as ,1 divine person, but dillei- in their represeiitatitms of her. She formed the first Shnker set- tlement atNiskayuna, near Albany, N.Y. She came from l]n!xland in Yil\. The Shakers first took up their resi- dence in (Canterbury in 17S2, and formed a society in 1792, under the direction of " KIder" .lob Bishop, vvlio died in I (S;> I , aged seventy-one, and was suc- ceeded by Benjamin Whittitsr. Their religious exercises (;onsist, chielly, of a pticuliar dance, in which both sexes move, in a regular but awkward man- ner, ;d)out a large hall, sometinu^s whirl- ing round, and uttering inarticulate sounds. Some of them pretend lo speak in " unknown tongues," to which no in- ti'rpreler has ever yet been found. We add the foUowing particulars, relating to this settlement, from a published de- scrijition : — This village is located in the north- easterly part of the county of Merrimack, on the main road from Con('ord to Con- way, twelve miles from Concord, on an eminence; .it the foot of wiiich, as you approach the village, is a spacious gran- ite watering-trough, from the Ixttlom of which boils a bountiful and never-failing spring, furnished by tho society for the acconnnodaliou of travellers. As you approach the village, the first object is the meetinghouse on the right, the only white building -in tlu; village, which stands a few rods from the road, at the head of a large open lawn. On the left stands the trustees' office, a new, spacious, and elegant building of lunvn graiute and ])r(;ssed brick, sev- enlv-two by forty feet in size. In this the trustees reside, and transact all the nvgular business of the family. To this oHice customers, strangers, and visiters, are to npply. who wish to buy or sell, or foi' the transaction of any business with the socii'ty whatmer. All sales and purchases are made by the trustees, who art; the general agents of the society for transacting all their secular matters, and in whom the fee o^ all the real estate in trust is held. The total number of dwellinghouses in th(^ society is ten, mostly of wood, painted yellow. There are also many other large and convenient wooden and brick buildings, occupied as workshops; also storehouses and granaries, wood- houses, barns, &c., which are spacious and convenient. ' I, f fir ^:*. V;»# \\ 50 DKSCttU'TlON OF THE STATE OF NEW HAMPSHIRE. The wliole number of buildings in the vilhige is abt>ut one hundred, many of which are very vahiable, composed of the best materials, and built in a faithful and durablt! manner. Among these are a convenient schoolhouse, one spacious gristmill, two sawmills, three carding-machines, one fulliugmill, one triphammer, five mills for sawing fire- wood, three turningmills, and two tan- neries, besides various other machinery. These buildings are all laid out and constructed in a regular, plain, and ele- gant manner, which gives the village a very fine appearance. 'fhe society own and occupy upward of 2,.'3O0 acres of land, which, though stony, is a good deep soil, about 2,000 of which lie in one body, enclosed with good stone wall and cross-fenced with tlu! same materials. Grass, corn, grain, and potatoes, are raised in abundance. They are industrious, frugal, and tem- perate. They manufacture many use- ful articles for sale, which are very neat and durable ; such as l(!ather, whips, sieves, tubs, pails, churns, measures, rakes, brooms, trusses, snaths, &c., &c. Their gardens are large, and perhaps the most productive of any in the C(jun- try. Tlu!y raise and vend a general asscntment of garden-seeds, and spare no pains to furnish those of the best kind. They also collect and })repare a variety of botanical herbs, barks, roots, and extracts, which are piepared in the most faithful manner ; the herbs and roots are neatly pressed in packages of a pound, and papered and labelled. All the medicines prepared by them being pure, and gathered in proper season, > insure them a very ready sale, ij They usually keej) about twenty horses, eighty cows, fifteen yoke of oxen, five to six hundred sheep, and other stock in proportion, and cut suflicient hay on their pminises for their own con- sumption, fhey also anmially slaugh- ter forty or fifty swine. / They freely pay their proportion of taxes, and share all the burdens of gov- ernment, except the bearing of arms, which they deem incompatible with gtMiuine Christianity, boing, as they be- lieve, directly contrary to the precepts i and spirit of the gospel. So tenacious are they of this fact, that they not only refuse to bear arms, but decline even to receive pensions for their former mili- tary services, to which some of them are legally entitled. Their school will compare well with any in the country. The English lan- guage is taught, and partly on the Lan- casterian system. They are careful to furnish the school with good books, sta- tionery, &c., so that their scholars, who are disposed, may acquire a good edu- cation. They entirely discard the use of ar- dent spirits, except occasionally in med- ical preparations, but drink some cider. They are temperate and regular in all their habits ; their food is plain and wholesome, avoiding all luxuries. They allow eight hours in twenty-four for sleeping. Tho society, from its commencement, has gi-adually increased in number, as well as in good order. At present it consists of about two hundred and forty members. History. — In 1621 the English Plym- outh company granted to .Tolni Mason, one of its members, the country between Naumkeag, or Salem, and the Merri- mack ; and soon after, in the same year, to Mason and Gorges all the lands be- tween the Merrimack and the Sagada- hock, extending back to the rivers of Caniida. The latter tract was called I Laconia. Two years later, two parties j of settlers were sent out by " the La- ' conia company," who began settlements I at Portsmouth and Dover. . In 1G29, Mason took out a new patent for the I territory between the Merrimack and the PiscatncpKi, under the name of New Hann)shire. In 1G35, the Plymouth compnny divided New England anfiong their members, befi)re they gave up their charter to the king, and tlie terri- tory between Naumkeag and Piscat- ; acpia rivers fell to Mason. The first church fi)rmed within the present limits of the state dates in 1641. ! Coos county, including the northern parts of the valley of the Connecticut, was occupied by a few scattered fam- ilies before 1775 ; but at the commence- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW HAMPSHIRE. 51 ment of the revolutionary war, the fear of invasion from Canada drove them all back, and only the return of peace could induce a second and permanent occupa- tion of that region, then a perfect wilder- ness, difficult of access. During the war, a temporally admin- istration exercised the authority of gov- ernment. A c(>iistitutif)n for the state was adopted in 1784, which was amended in 1792. It fixed the senators at twelve, and required them to be chosen by districts, while the representatives are chosen by the towns. Each branch of the legislature has a negative on the proceedings of the other. The governor and five councillors form the executive. The governor is chosen annually by the people, and has a veto on the legislature. VVe may close our brief description of New Hampshire with a few statistics, and two or three sketches, derived from different sources, illustrative of some of the striking characteristics of the coun- try and the people at different periods. AccordinfT to the census of 1840, the population was 284,574 ; there wore in the state 1,382 persons engaged in com- merce, 17,70G in manufactures, and 67,93-5 in agriculture ; the domestic ex- ports amounted to $20,766 — of foreign products, to $218 ; and the imports, to $114,647. Northern Railroad. — This road, ex- tending seventy miles from Concord, is to be opened during the year, meeting the Vermont Central railroad, which will then be opened to Montpelier, thus increasing the line of railroad from Bos- ton one hundred miles. It is antici- j pated that the cars will be running to ; North Andover, thirty-three miles from Concord, in July next, where the rail- road will receive a large accession to its business, which now goes across to Concord by teams. The eighteen miles now opened to Franklin has done far more than was anticipated by its most sanguine friends, unable as it has been to carry a large poi'tion of the freight offered, for want of cars. The returns, as made by the Concord railroad, which is now running it, show about $4,000 per month for January and February, the two poorest months in the year; and taking the average business as done on the roads below during the year, with full machinery for doing the same, it will amount to $6,000 per month, or $72,000 per year. The trains are now running one hundred and eight miles a day, in order to do the business, which at sixty- five cents per mile, as the cost (which is as high as estimated on roads near the city), would be $21,972 : leaving a net income of $50,028, equal to a dividend of 11 J per cent, on the cost of the eighteen miles, at $25,000 per mile. The Merrimack Timber Business. — One hundred and six men were em- ployed last winter in cutting and driving timber in the vicinity of the White mountains, southeast of Lafayette. Up- ward of thirty thousand timber logs are scattered along in the Merrimack river, between Thornton and Concord, to be brought to Lowell, where they are sawed into lumber for building pur- poses. The Merrimack timber busi- ness is becoming an important branch of trade, especially to Lowell and the manufacturing towns which fringe the Merrimack. Remarhahle Adventure tcith a Rear. — Many years ago, a cub bear was caught by a stout lad, near the borders of Lake Winnipiseogee, and carried into the town ; after proper drilling, he became the playfellow of the boys of the vil- lage, and often accompanied them to the schoolhouse. After passing a few months in civilized society, however, he made his escape into the woods, and, after a few years, was almost forgotten. The schoolhouse, in the meantime, had fallen from the schoolmaster's to the schoolmistress's hands ; and instead of large boys learning to write and cipher, small l)oys and girls were taught, in the same place knitting and spelling. One winter's day, after a mild fall of snow, the door had been left open by some urchin going out, when, to tlie unspeak- able horror of the spectacled dame and her fourscore hopeful scholars, an enor- mous bear walked in, in the most famil- iar manner in the world, and took a seat by the fire. Huddling over the benches as fast as they could, the children crowd- ed about their schoolmistress, who had 52 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE .OF NEW HAMPSHIRE. fled to the farthest corner of the room ; and there they stood, crying and push- ing, to escape the horror of being eaten first. The bear sat snuffing and warm- ^ ing himself by the lire, however, show- 1 ing great signs of satisfaction by putting otf his moal until he had warmed him- 1 self thoroughly. The screams of the children continued ; but the schoolhouse was far from any other habitation, and the bear did not seem at all embarrassed by the outcry. After sitting and turning himself about for some time, Bruin got up on his hindlcgs, shoved to the door, and began taking down, one by one, the hats, bonnets, and satchels, that hung on several rows of pegs behind it. His memory had not deceived him, for they contained, as of old, the children's din- ners, and he had arrived before the hol- ydays. Having satisfied liimself with their cheese, bread, pies, doughnuts, and apples. Bruin smelt at the mistress's desk ; but, finding it locked, he gave himself a shake of resignation, opened the door, and disappeared. The alarm was given, and the amiable creature was pursued and killed — greatly to the re- gret of the town people, when it was dis- covered, by certain marks on his body, thnt it was their old friend and play- fellow. Training in 1686. — At a late annual May training in the town of Alstead, the exercises commenced with prayer, and, what is equally commendable, a laro-e maiority of the soldiers voted to abstain on that day from all intoxicating liquors. The commencing military train- ings with prayer seems to be the revival of a custom long and devoutly cherished in primitive times. John Dunton, an Englishman, who visited New England in 1686, gives the following account of a company training which he attended : " It is their custom here for all that can bear arms to go out on training day; but I thought a pike was best for a young soldier, and so I carried a pike. And between you and I, reader, there was another reason for it too, and that was, I knew not how to shoot oif a musket, but 'twas the first time I was ever in arms. Being come into the field, the captain called us all into close or- der, in order to go to prayer, and then prayed himself And when our exer- cise was done, the captain likewise con- cluded with prayer. Solemn prayer in a field upon a day of training, I never knew but in New England, whei'e it seems it is a common custom. About three of the clock, both our exercises and prayers being over, we had a very noble dinner, to which all the clergy were invited." The. Brave Defence of the Charlestnivn Fort. — The following is a letter from Captain Phineas Stevens to Governor William Shirley, commander of the fort at No. *4, Charlestown, dated April 9, 1747:— " Our dogs being very much disturbed, which eave us reason to think that the enemy were about, occasioned us not to open the gate at the usual time ; but one of our men, being desirous to know the certainty, ventured out privately, to set on the dogs about 9 o'clock in the morning, and about twenty rods from the fort fired off" his gun and saying che- boy to the dogs. Whereupon the en- emy, being within a few rods, imme- diately rose fi'om behind a log and fired, but, through the goodness of God, the man got into the fort with only a slight wound. The enemy being then disco.v- ered, immediately arose from all their ambushments and attacked us on all sides ; the wind being high and every- thing exceedingly dry, they set fire to all the old fences, and also to a loghouse at about forty rods, distance from the foi't to the windward, so that within a few minutes we were entirely surround- ed by fire ; all which was performed with the most hideous shouting and firing from all quarters, which they con- tinued in a terrible inanner until the next day at 10 o'clock, P. M., without intermission, during which time we had no opportunity either to eat or sleep. But notwithstanding all their shoutings and threatenings, our men seemed not to be in the least daunted, but fought with great resolution ; which doubtless gave the enemy reason to think that we had determined to stand it out to the last degree. The enemy had provided themselves with a sort of fortification, DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW HAMPSHIRE. 53 which they had determined to push be- fore them, and to bring fuel to the side of the fort in order to burn it down; hut, instead of performing what they tlireatened and seemed to be imme- diately going to undertake, they called to us and desired a cessation of arms until sunrise the next morning, which was granted, at which time they said they would come to a parley. Accord- ingly, the French General Debelin came with about fifty or sixty of his men with a flag of truce, and stuck it down within about twenty rods of the fort, in plain sight of the same, and said if we would send three men to him, he would send as many to us, to which we complied. The general sent in a French lieutenant, with a French soldier and one Indian. Upon our men going to the monsieur, he made the following proposal, viz. : that, in case we would immediately re- sign up the fort, we should all have our lives, and liberty to put on all our clothes wo had, and also take a sufficient quan- tity of provisions to carry us to Mon- treal, and bind up our provisions and ])lankets, lay down our arms and march out of the fort. Upon our men's re- turning, he desired that the captain of the fort would meet him half way and give an answer to the above proposals, which I did ; and upon my meeting the monsieur, he did not wait for me to give an answer, but went on in the following manner, viz. : that what he bad prom- irflied he was ready to perform ; but up- on refusal he would immediately set the fort on fire or run over the top, for he had seven hundred men with him ; and if we made any further resistance, and should happen to kill one Indian, we might expect all to be put to the sword. 'The fort,' said he, *I am resolved to have or die ; now do what you please, for I am as easy to have you fight as to give it up.' I told the general, that in (;ase of extremity his proposal would do ; but inasmuch as I was put here by my master, the captain-general, to de- fend this fort, it would not be consistent with my orders to give it up, unless I became satisfied that he was able to perform what he had threatened; and furthermore, I told him that it was poor encouragement to resign into the hands of an enemy, that upon one of them be- ing killed, they would put all to the sword, when it was probable we had killed some of them already. ' Well,' said he, ' go into the fort and see if your men dare fight any more or not, and give an answer quick, for my men want to be fighting.' Whereupon I came into the fort and called the men together, and informed them what the general said, and then put it to vote which they chose, either to fight or re- sign, and they voted to a man to fight it out as long as they had life. Upon this I returned the answer tliat we were de- termined to fight it out, upon which they gave a shout and then fired, and so con- tinued firing and shouting until daylight next morning. " It was now about noon ; they called to us and said ' Good morning,' and de- sired a cessation of arms for two hours, that they might come to a parley, which was granted. " The general did not come himself, but sent two Indians, who came within about two rods of the fort and stuck down their flag, and desired that I would send out two men to them, which I did, and the Indians made the following pro- posal, viz. : that in case we would sell them provisions, they would leave us and not fight any more, and desired my answer, which was, that selling them provisions for money was contrary to the law of the nation ; but if they would send in a captive for every five bushels of corn, I would supply them. Upon the Indians returning the general this answer, four or five guns were fired against the fort, and then they with- drew, as we supposed, for we heard no more of them. " In all this time we had scarce op- portunity to eat or sleep ; the cessation of arms gave us no great matter to rest, for we suspected they did it to obtain an advantage over us. I believe men were never known to hold out with bet- ter resolution, for they did not seem to sit or lay still one moment. There were but thirty men in the fort ; and although we had some thousand of guns fired at us, there were but two men wounded," 54 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW HAMrSHIRE. " By the above account you may form some idea of the distressing circum- stnncos wo wore under, to have such an army of (■icaturcs around us, wliose ne- cessity obliged them to be more earnest. They seemed every minute as thougli they wer(i going to swaHow us up, using all the language they could invent, with shouting and firing as if the heaven and earth w(M-e coming together. But, not- withstanding all this, our courage held out to the last. We were informed by their lieutenjint, that ciune into the fort, that our captives were removed from Quebec to Montreal, which they say are three hundred in number, by means of sickness thiit is at Quebec, and that tliey were all well and in good health ex- cept three who were left sick; and that three captives had died; which were said to be Dutchmen. They also informed us tliat John Norton liad liberty to preach to the captives, and that they have some thousands t)f French and Indians out and coming against our frontiers. " PuiNKAS Srnvr.NS." A very beautiful silver-hilted sword was ])urchased, by order and at the ex])ense of the honorable Commodore Charh^s Knowles, and ])resented to Cap- tain Stevens, for his bravery in the de- fence of the fnt above mentioned. Education. — Common schools are universal in New Ham])shire, as in other parts of New England. Each towti- ship is divided into school-districts, which are empowtu-ed to bviild school- houses. An annual tax is assessed on the town by the selectmen, and with the avails of it is distributed the income of tlie literary fund, which is raised by a lax of one half of one per cent, on the capital of banks. There are about one thousand six hnndriMl free-schoolhonses, and about forty academies. A few years since, it was ctmiputed that the number of children attending the free-schools, compared with the entire ])opulati()n of the state, was as one to five ; and these, added to those attending private schools, were as one to three and a half. Academies, or high-schools, are scat- tered all over the state. The oldest are those founded at Exeter in 1781, at Chesterfield in 1790, at Atkinson in 1791, and at Gilmanton and Haverhill in 1794. Phillips Academy has its name from its very liberal founder, John Phillips, LL. D., and has an income of about #70,000, with a library of six himdred volumes. 'The number of jjujjils is lim- ited to sixty. The whole number who attended it in the first forty years was one thousand five hundred. The Congregational Theological Sem- inary at (xilmanton, and the Baptist Academical iind Theological Institution at New Hampton, are also woi'lhy of particular notice. The latter has had above three hundred pupils at one time, nearly etpially divided among the three departments, classical, English, and fe- male. Lkaunkd Societies. — The New Ilai/ipshirc Medical Society was incor- porated in 1791, and holds an annual meeting in Concord on the Tuesday preceding the state election. The New Ham, J) shire Historical So- ciety was incorporated in 1823, and has published several volumes of collections. The annual meeting is on June 17th. Synopsis of the Constitution. — A con- stitution was established in 1787; in 1792 it was altered and amended by u convention of delegates held at Concord, and is now in force. The legislative power is vested, by the constituticm, in a senate and house of representatives, which, together, are styled the Grunoral Court of New Hamp- shire. Every town or incorpoiated township having one hundred and fifty ratable polls may send one representa- tive ; and every three hundred additional polls, one. The senate, of twelve mem- bers, is elected by the people in districts. The executive power is vested in a gov- ernor, and a council which consists oi five members. The governor, council, sciuitors, and representatives, are elected annually by the people on the second Tuesday in March. The general court meets annually (at Concord) on the first Wednesday in June. The right of suf frage is granted to every male inhabitant of age, except paupers, &;c. The judi- ciary power is vested in a superior court and a court of common pleas. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VERMONT. 55 Tins state is fliRtinf»^uishe(l nmonq^ tlic other New l^iigland states by several marked peculiarities. Iii situatioi), it borders, on one side, a forei[>^n country, and on another the grand route of northern invasion, in consequence of which its soil has been exposed to hostile incursions, in the successive wars with the In- dians, the French, and the Rno-lish. Its climate is so cold and healthful as to give hardihood and vigor to the inhabitants; while it possesses so much rich soil, and such abundant water-power and facilities for navigatioTi, as to encourage all the arts of life. Although circumstances retarded the settlement of the country, and led to unfor- tunate dissensions and conflicting claims for the possession, yet the happy adjust- ment of all, with New York on one side and Now Hampshire on the other, and the erection of Vermont into an independent state, gave an imj)ulse to improve- ments of every kind, which has produced most extensive and important results. Extending from forty-two degrees foity-four minutes to forty-five degrees north latitude, and near several lakes, the climnto of Vermont would have beeji rigorous in the winter, even if its surface had not betm elevated much above the ocean level ; but the Green mountain ridge is of such extent and elevation as to render the cold season very long and (juite severe. The longitude is between three degrees thirty-one minutes and five degrees east; tlu; gn^atest length of the state is one hundred and fifty-seven and a half miles, and the greatest breadth ninety miles. The whole area comprehended within the boundaries is 10,200 square miles. The Green mountain ridge forms a marked and natural dividing line between the counties of Windham, Windsor, and Orange, on the one side, and Beiniington, 56 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE. OF VERMONT. Rutland, and Addison, on the other. In all that part of it tluno is not a single passage to he found wide enough for a road, nor is its long and uniform eleva- tion so much as interrui)ted by the bed of any stream. Five turnpike roads, in- deed, pass it in diiferent places, but they have been constructed at considerable cost and labor, and are very laborious to travel, as they rise and descend the height of the ridge. In the southern part of Washington county it divides into two ridges, the principal of which borders the counties of (Uiittenden and Franklin on the east, and the olluu', known by the name of " The htMght ol" lands," strikes oH" in a northeast direction into the county of Cabulonia. This keeps a remarkably uniform elevation, and Ibrnis the dividing line between the waters of the Connec- ticut and the twtj lakes, Champlain and Memphnnnagog. The western ridge is cut through by Onion and Lamoille riv- ers, although its principal summits are the highest in the sliite. Among these is the Camel's Hump ; this ridge con- stitutes the grandeur of the scenery so much admired along the northeastern side of Fiake (Miamplain. Mount Ascutnoy is one of the emi- nences most celebrated in Vermont, more on account of the beautiful scenery upon which it looks (h)wn, and its vicinity to Windsor, one of the principal and most beautiful towns in the stnte. An excur- sion to its summit affords many fine views, as it rises abruptly from the bor- ders of the valley of the Connecticut, and the jKith, in its gradual ascent, opens to the eye many varying landscapes. Not less than twenty-cme rivers have their sources in the Green mountains, oi' which twelve tlovv into the Connec- ticut, and nine into the two principal lakes. From the nature of the country, these streams are necessarily short and small ; though in the season of floods, some of them drain ott" great quantities of water through their rocky channels. No country is bt>tter supplied with abun- dant and pure springs. The water of Vermont is generally good, except along the shore of l^ake Champlain, where the rocks are of limestone. Mineral spr'mgs of different kinds are found in several counties. Some are chalybeate, others sulphurous ; and some are resorted to by invalids for the im- provement of their hcsalth. Lakes. — Ijake C'hani})lain extends along nearly the whole western bound- ary of the state, and forms an im])ortant feature in several respects. It affords invalutiblo advantages of navigation, for it is of suflicient uniform depth for vessels of consideral)le size, and forms several good harbors ; while the canal which connects it with Hudson river offers a dii'ect, safe, and cheap channel of commerce to the city of New York. At the same time, fine steamboats of the largest class daily traverse the lake through its whole extent, on the grand route between the United States and Canada, touching at the principal towns alonu: the shore. Ijake Memphrcmagog, lying on the boundary line of the United States, has four or five miles of its southern part in Orleans county, Vermont, but its north- ern and larger portion in Canada. It is about thirty miles long from north to south, and three or four miles wide from east to west. It is about midway be- tween Lake Champlain and Connecticut river. Three small rivers — the Clyde, lilack, and Barton — enter the south part of the lake fn)m \ ermont. On an island two miles above the line arc obtained the ceU^brated oilstones, for sharpening tools, which are well known throughout our country, and highly prized, being worth half a dollar a pound. Whet- stones, for scythes, Ike, are obtained in the vicinity of the lake, at the place where the gneiss-rocks pass into mica- slate. In Lake Champlain are a immber of islands, the largest of which are North Hero and South Hero, in the northern pait and near the shore of Vermont, to which they belong. North Hero forms a township of the same name, in the county of Grand Isle. It is twenty-six miles north of Burlington, six west of St. Albans, and contains 6,272 acres. The first settle- ment was made on this island in 1783. In 1793 the British erected a block- DESCRIPTION OF Tl!!<: STATE OF VERMONT. 57 house on it, which was given up to the United States in 1796. The soil is good, and there is a small village, four school districts, a courthouse, and a jail, built of stone. The rocks ai'e of lime- stone. South Hero is a small island, of 9,055 acres, twelve miles northwest of Burlington, and sixteen southwest of St. Albans. The first settlement was made here in 1784. In the summer season, when the water in the lake is low, a passage can often be made by fording to Chittenden, on the mainland, a sandbar extending the whole distance. The surface is level and the soil good, being formed of limestone, like that of the adjacent shores and islands. Many riiiuks remain in them all of the numer- ous Indians who formerly resorted to them. Ill VERS. — -Two or three of the rivers of Vermont, viz., those which cross the Green mountains, being of considerable size, are navigable through most of their course in canoes, and communicating, by a short carrying-place, with the navigable waters of Lake Champlain, were as many printnpal routes of traffic and of war for the Canadian Irulians, nu their way to the Connecticut river. When the English first visited the latter strnaui, they found the savages on its banks, as low down as Hartford, had a trade in furs, &c., with those who in- habited the shores of Lake Champlain and the St. Lawrence, which was car- ried on by the channels just indicated. At later periods, when the Jesuits, who occupied Montreal and other places in Canada, as lords of the manor, incited and directed the fanaticism of the In- dians against the eastern colonies, these same routes were used in the secret, and often unexpected and bloody, incur- sions which were so numerous in the French wars. Onion River is seventy miles long. Rising in Cabot, Caledonia county, it runs south, then southwest, and finally northwest, falling into Lake Champlain, passing through Washington and Chit- tenden counties, five miles below Tur- lington. The principal branches are Dog, Steven's, North, Mad, Waterbury, and Huntington rivers. Many scenes along the course of the Onion and some of its tributaries are peculiarly wild and romantic. Its highest branch has a fall of five hundred feet, almost perpendic- ular; and at Bolton is a remarkable chasm, cut by the stream into the solid rocks, sixty feet wide, thirty feet deep, and two hundred and seventy yards long, where the descent is so ra))id ihat the stream rushes through with great rapidity. Four miles below Waterbury is a spot, where a wall of rock rises on one side to the height of one hundred feet, and large fragments have fiillen down, and lie in such a manner as to form a bridge. Three cpiarters of a mile above the falls, an artificial bridge commands a striking view, upon a ])lac«; where the chainiel of the river is sev- enty feet wide and sixty-five feet deep. A fine turnpike-road now leads through the mountains from this stream to White river and Royalton. This was the principal Indian route to the Connecticut ; and many captives, as well as loads of plunder, were in for- mer times carried by this route, from the New England frontier villages, by war parties returning to Canada. Tlie wator-power on tliis river is very great. It is mostly of little depth, as might be expected from its shortness and its small supply of water. It is, however, use- ful in navigation. Lake vessels can en- ter the river and sail up five miles, and boats forty. Two of the earliest and most spirited military measures taken in the revolu- tionary war were performed by a few men from Vermont, at important points just beyond the bounds of this state. We allude to the surprise of the two great fortresses on Lake Champlain, Ticonderoga and Crown Poiiit. These positions are very peculiar. The lake at these two points, about twelve miles apart, is very narow and crooked ; and the two fortresses were so placed as to completely command the passage. The guns, which were numerous and heavy, were mounted on strong walls, scientifically planned by accomplished British engineers, and constructed with great strength, of the limestone abound- 58 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VERMONT. ing along the shores ; while deep ditches, in some places cut far down into solid rocks, offered almost insurmountable obstacles to an approach. Lying on the very borders of this state, with some of their outworks actually erected upon the Vermont side of the lake, and owing their capture, as they did, chiefly to Vermont men, a brief description of Ticonderoga and Crown Point may with propriety be here introduced, being ex- ti'emely interesting to all interested in the war for independence. Motmt Independence is a hill on the Vermont side, of comparatively small elevation east of Mount Defiance, and separated from it by the lake, which has here reduced its size to that of a small .river. On a bank just above the water are the remains of a zigzag battery for about forty or fifty guns, running across a little coi'nfield behind a house, and making five or six angles. The Horse- shoe battery is traceable on an elevation about a quarter of a mile in the rear. A bridge once connected Ticonderoga with Mount Defiance, the buttresses of which are reinaining, to the great an- noyance of the navigators of the lake. On the west shore (near the stone store- house), Arnold, when pursued by the British, caused his flotilla to be run on shore. These hulks remain almost as sound as when first stranded. A forty- two pounder is said to have ranged from the Hoi"se-shoe over this channel (now marked by a buoy) and the fortress. After the revolutionary war, about five hundred cannon were lying about the foi'tress, lines, &c., many of them as left by the English, with their trunnions knocked off. A twenty-four pounder was taken to the forge at Fairhaven, some years ago, and discharged by the heat, after lying loaded for above twenty years, and a considerable time at the bottom of the lake. The view from Ticonderoga down Lake Champlain is very pleasant. It abounds, the greater part of the way to Canada, with fine natural scenes. The Fortress of Ticonderoga. — This famous old fortress, or rather its re- mains, are overlooked from Mount In- dependence. An elevated piece of land, gently sloping toward the south, and ending abruptly over a bend of the lake, appears partially covered with ti-ees, and crowned near its extremity witli a cluster of broken walls and chimneys. The old French Lines, where General Abercrombie was defeated in 1758, are the only part of the fortification which was ever the scene of a battle. They commenced on the east side, at a battery of heavy cannon on the shore, about a quarter of a mile south of the ferry. The remains of the breastwork can yet be seen. The lines were drawn in a zigzag ; first stretching off to the right, along the side of marshy ground, to a cluster of bushes where was a battery; and then to the left to the verge of a wood, where was another. Their course may be distinctly traced in this manner across the ridge of land at its highest elevation, over to the brow of a steep bank, looking toward the out- let of Lake George. The woods which now so much interrupt the sight have grown since the evacuation of the for- tress, after the revolutionary war. The fortress is of an angular form, and embraces a large tract of ground, being divided into parts by deep ditches. The walls were originally much higliur than at present, being raised by super- structures of logs filled in willi earlh. The Barracks formed an oblone, and the walls still remain of all except those on the eastern side ; their form is plainly distinguishable. The parade is fifty- two and a half yards long, and eight in breadth. The barracks, &c., the walls of which remain on the north, south, and west sides, are built of the roufih blue limestone of which the neighbor- ing rocks are formed, two stories high ; and these with the chimneys, several of which are standing, are the principal objects seen from a distance. The en- trances to this courtyard, or parade, are between the buildings, and quite nar- row. By the southern entrance, Ethan Allen entered with his eighty-three raw soldiers when he surprised the fortress on the 18th May, 1775 ; and on reach- ing the courtyard and calling on the commander to surrender, the British officer. Captain Deplace, made his ap- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VEUMONT. 59 peaiance at a window and submitted, delivering up thi'ee officers and forty- four rank and file. In consequence of this coup-de-main, this important place was in the hands of the Americans until the arrival of Burgoyne in 1777. The troops in the garrison had be- come loose disciplinarians. A body of men had been despatched from Con- necticut to surprise the place, and ap- proached upon the opposite shore, but were unprovided with a conveyance to the intended point of their enterprise. A countryman, who had been in the habit of frequently visiting the fort, was made acquainted with their views, crossed the lake by daylight, went care- fully into the fort, and observed in what part of the parade-ground the arms were stacked. Being almost domicil- iated by the frequency of his previous visits, he lounged away his time until night approached. He then possessed himself of a lai-ge bateau owned by the garrison, and recrossed the lake. Allen, having joined the band, embarked, ef- fected a landing about one mile north of the fort, and proceeded across the meadows, shrouded by the night, and made good their daring enterprise, by threatening the sentry, and taking im- mediate possession of the firearms, as pointed out by their avant-courier. The battlements of Ticonderoga first bore the flag of independence. This circumstance should, of itself, render this ruin, so fine in other associations, interesting to the traveller. At each corner was a bastion or a demi-bastion ; and under that in the northeastern one is a subterranean mag- azine. The cellars south of this, which belonged to the demolished buildings, and are almost filled up, have a room or two with fireplaces still distinguishable. The Grenadiers' battery is situated on a rocky point towai'd the east from the main forti-ess. They were connected by a covered way, the traces of which are distinctly visible. On a spot formerly occupied as the king's garden, Mr. Pell has a fine gar- den, abounding in the choicest fruits imported from Europe, and transported from the celebrated nurseries of Long Island. Mr. Pell has been a very suc- cessful propagator of the locust-tree {robi'/iia pseudo acacia of Linnaeus), thousands of which are growing on these grounds in the most flourishing manner; here is also the magnolia grandiflora, never before cultivated in so high a lat- itude ; the horse-chestnut {castanea equi- nus) ; and upward of seventy varieties of the gooseberry from Europe. Here, also, we find the beautiful catalpa, and the liriodendron tulipifera. On the neighboring Vermont shore, there are still some slight remains of Burgoyne's intrenchments. From Mount Independence the vis- iter enjoys, in fine weather, a delightful view of the lake and the surrounding country. On the left is the outlet of Lake George, winding through a dark and narrow valley, and spreading out to embrace an island of the brightest vei'- dure ; while more immediately under the eye lies the fortress of Ticonderoga, and the lake, stretching far away to the north. Mount Defiance rises on the left, about eight hundred feet higli, on the summit of which General Burgoyne's troops showed themselves on the morn- ing of July 4th, 1777, with a battery of heavy cannon, which they had drawn up along the ridge by night, and planted in that commanding position, whence they could count the men in the fort. The distance to the summit in a straight line is about a mile, so that the defence of Ticonderoga would have been im- possible ; and on the firing of a few shots by the British upon a vessel in the lake, which proved the range of their guns, the Americans made prep- arations to evacuate the place, and ef- fected their retreat to the shore below during the night. The shores are in this part strewed with the fragments of blue limestone- rock with organic remains. The immediate shores are genei-ally low all the way to Ci'own Point, where the lake suddenly turns to the west at a right angle, and, at the distance of a mile, as suddenly to the north again. A low stretch of land covered with a young forest, on the left, conceals the 60 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VERMONT. approach to this ancient fortress, which, for position as well as appearance and history, may be called the twin sister of" 1'iconderoga. ('himney point is on the north side of the lake, opjiosite Crown Point, to which is a terry three quarters of a mile. The Fortress of Crown Point.. — There are several old works thrown up along the shore, with little bays between them. The easternmost one is called the Gren- adiers' battery ; the middle one is the original old French fort of 1731, and now encloses a garden ; and that fur- ther west is an outwork to a bastion of the fortress. The fortress is situated about a quarter of a mile back from the shore, and appears much like Ticonder- oga from a distance, showing the walls and chimneys of the old barracks, and walls of earth surrounding them. In regard to its plan, however, it is mate- rially different. The fortress of Crown Point was a star work, being in the form of a pentagon, with bastions at the angles, and a strong redoubt at the dis- tance of two hundred and fifty or three liuiulrud yards in advance of each of them. The fortress is surrounded by a dhch walled in with stone, e.\i;ept wlierti it has boon blasted into the solid rock of blue limestone (as is the case in many parts, from five to twenty-five feet), and even into (juartz-rock which underlays it. Univalve shells are found in the litnostone-rock, frociuently four inrhos in diameter. The walls are about twenty or twenty-five feet high, and there is a convenient path running entirely round upon the top, interruptiul only by the gates at tlie north and south sides. Al- though much shaded by tall sumacs, some fine views are enjoyed in making the circuit, which is not far short of half a mile. Opposite the north gate is a small ledge of rocks, and, close by. the remains of a covered way to the lake shore. On entering the foi'tress, the stranger finds himself i!i a level, spacious area, Innnid- ed on the left and in front by long ruin- ous buildings of stone, two stories high, and the first two hundred and twenty feet long, while the ruins of similar ones are seen on two sides on the right. This parade is about five hundred feet in length. The place was surprised by Colonel Warner in 1775. The view from the walls toward the north is very fine : looking down the lake, which widens at the distance of two or three miles, you have Chimney point on the right, and two other points projecting beyond the distant peak, called Camel's Hump. Ranges of mountains on the western shore, beginning at the distance of eighteen miles, including Bald peak, gradually approach till they form a near and bold boundary to the lake on the left, scattered with cleared farms and houses, and then stretching away to the south, terminate in the mountain behind. This elevation, al- though it seems almost as well calcu- lated to command Crown Point as Mount Defiance does Ticonderoga, is not less than four miles distant. Eveiything about this old foi'tress bears the marks of ruin. Two maga- zines were blown up ; the timbers in the south barracks are burnt black ; a portion of the shingled roof which re- mains serves to cover a little hay-mow anaum set off for Bennington with five hundred regular troops, a num- ber of Canadians, above one hunprized that the force was large, when he called out his whole brigade, and sent an express to Man- chester to inform Colonel Warner of the danger, while he ordered the news to be sj)read in all directions. The next morning he marched, and soon met his advance on their retreat, pursued by the enemy, then only a mile in the rear. The Americans were immediately drawn up ff)r battle ; on seeing which, the enemy halted at a commanding j)o- sition, but made no demonstraticm of a further advance, thinking it prudent to send back for a reinforcement. Eager for the contest, the Amei-ican sharp- shooters pressed the enemy with skir- mishes, and succeeded in killing and wounding about thirty, including two Indian chiefs, without sutfering any loss themselves. To secure a better position, General Stark retired to more favornble ground, about a mile in his I'ear ; and the fol- lowing day, which was stormy, was spent in skirmishing. The battle be- gan the following afternoon. Colonel Symonds having arrived with some militia from J->erkshirc county, Mass. The enemy had by this time fortified themselves on a branch of Hoosick river, and were attacked according to a plan adopted by a council of war, which was designed to take them in the pear of both flanks, while an advance was made on their front to occupy their attention. Colonel Nichols, with two hundred men, marched for their left — Colonel Herrick, with three hundred, for their right ; while one hundred men marched toward the centre of their line, and two hun- dred more, under Colonels Hubbard and Stickney, marched against the right. The first two detachments were to unite in the enemy's rear, and then fall upon them together. The Indians fled at the onset, but the rest of the enemy's troops stood their ground for two hours, when, after an unsuccessful attempt by the Ger- man dragoons to cut their way through with their swords, all their works were carried, and the whole body, with but i'ew exceptions, were either killed or takoh prisoners. Baum received a mor- tal wound. The victory was so cojnplete, that the Americans, supposing all was over, be- gan to disperse, when General Stark was apprized of another large force ap- proaching in front. Happily, Colonel Warner arrived at the moment with a reinfoi'cement of Vermont regulars, who, without loss of time, pressed on to en- counter the enemy ; General Stark soon followed, with all the militia he could muster; nnd an obstinate engagement ensued, which terminated at sunset, by the rout and pursuit of the invaders. The' approach of darkness alone saved the greater part of the fugitives, who left behind two cannon and many wound- ed and prisoners. The whole amount of the enemy's loss in these actions was two hundred and seven killed, an unknown number wounded, and about seven hundred pris- oners ; four brass fieldpieces, twelve base- drums, two hundred and fifty dragoon swords, and four ammunition wagons. The American loss was only thirty killed and fi)rty wounded. The principal advantage secured by this victory, however, was in the cour- age with which it inspired the army and the people, who had been exceedingly depressed by the evacuation of the for- tress of Ticonderoga, and the undis- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VERMONT. 67 puted progress of Burgoyne onward toward Albany. The resistance which he met with, a few days after, at Bemis's heights, on the west bank of the Hud- son, is svipposed to have been rendered more spirited and successful by this great advantage, gained by the Vermont regulars and irregular troops, assisted by their bold and hardy neighbors. The supreme court has five judges, annually chosen by the legislature. The county courts, likewise, have the same number, two being chosen by the legis- lature every year in each county, the third and chief being one of the su- preme judges on the circuit. The coun- ty courts are held twice a year. The justices of the peace, also, are appoint- ed by the legislature. The first newspaper in Vermont was the " Vermont Gazette, or Green Moun- tain Newsboy," published at Westmin- ster in 1781 by Judah Paddock Spooner and Timothy Green. Two years after, their press was removed to Windsor. In 1810, the number of newspapers in the state was ten; in 1828, twenty-one ; and in 1834, twenty-six. T/ie Battle of Plattsburgh. — This was one of the most decisive and important engagements in the war of 1812 ; and like several others which we have no- ticed, although not fought on the soil of Vermont, was one in which many of the people of this state were engaged, and in the results of which inultitudes of them were personally and most deeply interested. Having given the particu- lars of the naval battle of the same date in our description of New York, and not having had space for the following account of the battle on land, we may with propriety introduce it in this place. Three points of our extensive counti-y appeared to the English to be fatally vulnerable. First, the outlet of the Mis- sissippi, against which Pakenham was to lead an army of veterans ; second, Washington — the seat of government — where in August, 1814, General Ross, at the head of his victorious legions, spread fire and swoi'd ; and lastly. Lake Champlain — the great highway of in- vasion to the most densely-populated portion of the Union — where Sir George Provost, renowned for skill and valor on many a battle-field, was to lead the largest division of the formidable troops of Wellington. On the 4th September, 14,000 troops, with their splendid uniform, and fault- less discipline, and admirable bands, and waving banners, and formidable trains of artillery, having crossed the lines and marshalled at Champlain, took up their line of march for Plattsbura^h. There was one regiment of these veter- ans, in which there was scarcely a man who did not bear a wound, and their disfigured faces, and ferocious and de- termined aspect, reminded one of the hundred dcsjiorate charges of the san- guinary conflicts of the peninsular war. At Plattsburgh about one thousand regular soldiers tmder the command of General M'C'omb, and some seven hun- dred militia under General Moore, were prepared to oppose tlie enemy. The nation, saddened and oppressed by the then recent sacking of Washington, and aware of the tremendous force of her formidable foe, looked with deep anx- iety and alarm to the issue of the con- test at this important point. On Monday, September 5, 1814, the British army having advanced to Chazy and found the state-road guarded by Colonel Appling's rifle corps intrenched at Dead creek, aided by a troop«of horse commanded by Captain Saflord and Lieutenant Standish, they crossed to the Beekmantown i-oad, and encamped du- ring the night three or four miles north of the Burdick house at Beekmantown. The militia commanded by General Moore, and composed of Colonel Miller's regiment, a part of Colonel Joiner's regi- ment. Major Sanford's battalion, and the thirty-seventh regiment, from Essex, spent the night at Beekmantown. Be- tween 9 and 10 o'clock at night. Gen- eral Moore sent Major R. H. Walworth to the quarters of General M'Comb, who commanded at the forts, with a request that he would send a small body of infantry and a couple of pieces of light artillery, to suppf)rt the militia in the attack which he intended to make on the British forces on their advance in the morning. Major Walworth ar- 68 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VERMONT. rived at General M'Comb's quarters about midnight, and the general imme- diately ordered a detachment of two hundred and fifty infantry under Major John E. Wool, who had previously and urgently requested such a command, and two pieces of light artillery under Cap- tain Luther Leonard, to be ready by daylight to start for Beekmantown. Major Walworth took a party of vol- unteers from Captain Atwood's company and those of Captains Cochran and Manley, marched rapidly on the bridge, and had just commenced taking off the plank, when the advanced guard of the enemy emerged from the woods within half musket-shot, and fired upon the party taking up the bridge, two of whom, belonging to Atwood's company, were severely wounded and taken prisoners. Major Walworth and his detachment immediately fell back to the position occupied by Major Wool, who, forming in the highway and flanked by the militia, opened a deadly^re upon the head of the British column, then just in front of Ira Howe's house, and momentarily ar- rested its progress. Here several of the enemy were killed, and Lieutenant West, of the Buffs, and twenty privates, severely wounded. Very soon the mi- litia broke and mostly retreated in con- fusion. Many, however, remained with the regulars to contest the ground, inch by inch, and retreat in order. Meanwhile, General l^oore, with the aid of other officers, had succeeded in rallying a jjortion of the militia, which, being ordered to join Major Wool with his detachment, awaited the approach of the enemy at Culver's hill, about four miles from Plattsburgh. This com- manding position was maintained with so much obstinacy as to compel the | enemy, after attaining the summit of the hill, to retire to its base with the loss of Lieutenant-Colonel Wellington, who fell while gallantly leading the , Third Buffs to the charge. Here, also, ] Ensign Chapman fell, and Captain West- j roff", of the thirty-eighth British regi- ment, was severely wounded ; and here several of Major Wool's men, and Pat- 1 ridge of the Essex militia, were killed. ' Nor was this position abandoned by | Major Wool, until after he had received notice from General Moore that a col- umn of 2,000 of the enemy, advancing on the west Beekmantown road, was gaining on his rear ; when the Vermont troops fell back within two miles of Plattsburg. Here Captain Leonard, with two pieces of light artillery, des- patched by General M'Comb, arrived to take part in the action ; and the fire of the artillery, the regular infantry, and a portion of the militia, literally mowed down the enemy's advancing column. In front of an overwhelming force, platoon after platoon delivered their fire, and fell back to load and form, in reg- ular succession, contesting every inch of ground, and seizing every favorable point to unlimber their artillery and pour a deadly shower of grape upon the advancing enemy. After repeated con- tests they were driven across the river, the bridges were taken up in the retreat, a final stand was made on the southern bank of the Saranac, and the enemy driven back beyond the reach of our guns. Forty-five of our men were killed in the retreat ; the British had one lieu- tenant-colonel, two captains, four lieu- tenants, and more than two hundred men, killed or wounded. Next morn- ing the British, in attempting to cross the river a few miles west of the village, were repulsed by Capt. Vaughan, The enemy were occupied, the four succeed- ing days, in erecting batteries to play upon the forts, during which theie were frequent skirmishes along the river ; the gallant Green mountain boys, under the patriotic General Strong, were wafted to our aid by every eastern breeze, swelling our force to upward of three thousand. On the evening of the 9th, one hundred and fifty of our men crossed the Saranac, stormed and took, at the point of the bayonet, a battery defended by four hun- dred of the enemy, spiked the guns, and made good their I'etreat, without the loss of a single man. The battle of Beekmantown, the spirited resistance to the enemy's advance, and the burning of the courthouse, &c., north of the river by the hot shot from our batteries, prevent- ed an immediate attack upon the forts, to resist which would have been fruitless. * This state, occupying a leading I position among the six eastern members of the Union, in extent, commerce, manufactures, wealth, and population, borders on Maine, New Hampshire, and Vermont, on the north, and Rhode Island and Connecticut on the south; while it is bounded on the east by the Atlantic, and on the west by New York. With the exception of the seacoast, the boundaries of Massa- chusetts are almost entirely art- ificial ; and, when we cast our eyes over the map, we can discover none of those natural advantages which distinguish most other countries re- markable for prosperity. Massachusetts is a portion of the western continent containing no mines of gold, no long navigable rivers, no broad and fertile plains, not even an accessible supply of timber; and a person unacquainted with the true source of her power and wealth would be at a loss in seeking for it. " A land of hills, and valleys, and fountains of water," as the early explorers represented her, in their favorite scripture language, they had little else to say in })raise of the natural features of the country. The coast presents a line of inliospitable rocks and reaches of sterile sand, and the approach is rendered difficult and dangerous by a broad tract of shoals, through which a ship can find its way only by pursuing narrow and intricate channels, by careful sounding. Harbors. — Massachusetts is distinguished by the number and excellence of her harbors, which will very naturally secure to her a large part of the entire commerce of- New England, with the exception of Maine, Rhode Island, and Connecticut. 72 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OE MASSACHUSETTS. Shoals. — Nantucket shoals line the coast for fifty miles, and are forty-five miles in breadth. They are very dan- gerous, being cut through by numerous channels of different depths, discover- able only by sounding. Islands. — Several islands of consid- erable size belong to this state, so situ- ated, and so well provided with head- lands for lighthouses, and with harbors for shelter in storms, as to be of impor- tant service to the extensive coasting and foreign trade — especially such as are in the vicinity of the shoals. 'Nantucket Island is fifteen miles by eleven, and forms, with five smaller islands, a county of the same name. It contains nearly thirty thousand acres. Its inhabitants have long been prover- bial for their skill in whalefishing, which was formerly carried on in boats in sight of the shore. They are equally distin- guished by their skill and boldness as pilots, many of them spending a consid- erable part of their lives in sailing about the shoals to [lilot ships. The island is thirty miles south of the mainland, sixty southeast of New Bedford, and one hun- dred south-southeast of Boston. Lat- itude 41^ 15' 22", lon'-irude 70^ T 5&" . Martha's Vlneyanl is twenty miles long and from two to five mile broad and lies west of Nantucket. Duke's county is formed of this island and sev- eral small ones in its vicinity. The first settlements were made at Plymouth by the passengers in the May- Flower, the first band of English dis- senters, called pui'itans, who arrived in America. They reached Cape Cod on the 22d of December, 1620, and, after a few days, fixed on Plymouth for their residence, which received its na.me from the last port in England from which they had sailed. The nnportant conse- quences which resulted from the arrival of this little band of exiles have invested it with peculiar interest ; and the event iud its concomitants have been com- memorated in numerous writings. The puritans received this title in derision. They had long been the chief advocates of principles which have since become extensively adopted in this coun- try and elsewhere, particularly civil and religious fi'eedom, and the universal dif- fusion of learning. Numbers of them had taken refuge in Holland from the persecution they were exposed to in their native land, from the laws which then forbade them to worship God in their chosen mannei'. But, although treated with kindness by the Dutch prot- estants, they at length determined to seek a country in which they might rear their children, without exposing them to evil influences or to the loss of their native language. A band of them at length proceeded to England, accom- panied by their pastor, the Rev. Mr. Robinson, where, arrangements having been made, after some delay they sailed for America. The part of the coast on which they were landed was farther north than they had intended to reach ; but this was probably, in the end, more favorable for their success. The In- dians had been almost all destroyed by a fatal disease, so that they found but little opposition among the natives for some years. The Plymouth colony was followed by several others. Salem was planted in 1628, and Boston in 1630. Most of the settlers being of the same class, a uniform system of laws and habits was established, which was gradually ex- tended, and most of the peculiarities of New Ensfland still retain the same char- acter. These first colonies were the sources or the channels from which the settle- tlements on the Connecticut, and many of those in New Hampshire and Ver- mont, derived their impulse and their population, and thei'e we find a general identity of sentiment and society. The first period in the history of Mas- sachusetts is that between the first set- tlement and the Pequod war, in 1636, when Rhode Island and Connecticut river had been occupied and exposed to powerful tribes of savages, against whom Massachusetts afforded them aid. Then commenced that active system of mutual support, which often secured the safety of the eastern colonies, and gradually extended to all the colonies from Eng- land, and resulted in forming the United States. 74 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. The second period extends to Philip's war, in 1675, wlien Massachusetts had several towns on Connecticut rivei', and had an extensive region to protect at home from a powerful savage combina- tion. The third period may be limited by the close of the last French war, in 1759, when the capture of Canada by the British put an end to the long and disastrous hostilities of France upon the frontiers of the colonies. The fourth period extends to the close of the rev- olution, and the fifth to the present day. Early Missions among the Indians. — Rev. John Eliot began to preach to the Indians fear Boston in IGIG. In 1650 the English " society. for the projiaga- tion of the gospel in foreign parts," opened a correspondence with the com- missioners of the United colonies, and appointed them their agents. Eliot (the apostle to the Indians, as he is often called) had, ere this, been so far suc- cessful in his exertions as to feel encour- agement, and to inspire the benevolent with hope. He continued his labors several years without reward or expec- tation of payment ; but afterward re- ceiving contributions from gentlemen in England, he was enabled to extend his operations, and to educate his sons at college, the eldest of whom afterward preached to the natives. By his exam- ple several other clergymen in the coun- try were encouraged to adopt similar measui'es. Mr. Bourne and Mr. Cotton acquired the Indian language to qualify them for the task, and preaciied at Mar- tha's Vineyard, &c. ; Mr. Mnyhew and his son preached at that island and at Nantucket ; while Messrs. Pierson and Fitch followed their example in Con- necticut. Eliot published his Indian translation of the New Testament in 1661, and the whole Bible soon after. The printing was done at the expense of the society for the propagation of the gospel. He prepared also translations of Baxter's Call, psalms, hymns, &c., and composed several works for use in the schools which he established in the Indian vil- lages. Some of the youth were sent to learn Latin and Greek. Several Indian towns were constituted by Massachu- setts, and courts established in them, each with one English judge, while other officers were all chosen by the natives. The first Indian church was formed in 1670, at Natick; the second at Pak- emit, now Stoughton, whose fii'st native teacher was named Ahawlon. The other Christian or praying towns in the Indian country were the following : Okomma- kummessit, now Marlborough ; Wam- esit, now Tewksbuvy ; Nashobah, now Littleton ; Mungunkook, now Hopkin- ton ; and there were others in Oxford, Dudley, Worcester, and L^xbridge, and three in Woodstock, The gospel was thus early made known to the Indians ; many of them received it, and it immediately began to produce its natural effects, by intioducing civil- ization with many of its advantages. The people became fixed in their hab- its and residences, attended to agricul- ture, began to acquire learning, erected more substantial habitations, and pur- sued the arts. In Plymouth colony the success of the early efforts of missionaries among the natives was still more remarkable. About five hundred Indians on Cape Cod, under the care of the Rev. Mr. Bourne, made rapid improvement. About two hundred soon learned to read, and more than seventy to write, and there was a church with twenty-seven communi- cants, with the Mayhews, at Martha's Vineyard. Printing. — The Rev. Jesse Glover, an English dissenting clergymen, has been called the father of the American press. He embarked for New Ensjlaud in 1638, with his family, and a printing- press which he had pui'cliased with money contributed by himself and his friends, accompanied by a printer, Ste- phen Daye, whom he had liired. Mr. Glover died on the passage ; but the magistrates and elders of Massachusetts encouraged Daye to put the press in operation at Cambridge, where the new-comers took up their residences. In January, 16.'?9, he printed the Free- man's Oath, an almanac, and the Psalms in metre. His first successor, Samuel Green, began to print in 1649, and died in 1702. He had nineteen children DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHU^TTS. 75 and many of his descendants have been printers. Manufactures, &c., in Boston. — In 1845, the amount of capital invested in manufactures, in Boston, was estimated at $4,330,600. The number of males employed in them was 5,260, females 970 ; and the value of the products was $10,648,153. The navigation and commerce of Bos- ton in 1845 were as follows : Number of American vessels entered, 929 ; ton- nage, 207,452 ; men employed, 8,398 ; boys, 322. Foreign vessels entered, 1,286; tonnage, 101,491 ; men employed 6,945. Total of vessels cleared, Amer- ican and foreign, 2,000 ; tonnage, 249,- 914; men, 12,806. Between 1840 and 1845, the whole number of foreisfn vessels which arrived at Boston was 5,491. In 1845, the total tonnage of Boston was 225,103, and that of all Massachu- setts 524,081. The banks of Boston are twenty-four, with an aggregate capital of $18,000,000. The insurance offices are fourteen, the oldest of which was founded in 1799. The first bank for savings was incor- porated in 1816 ; and several are in ex- istence, which are pronounced to " have fulfilled the high expectations of their founders, and their benefits are apparent among all and especially among the labor- ing classes, and those of limited means." Railroads. — Several principal rail- road tracks are already completed, whose termini are at Boston : — The Eastern railroad, seventy-one miles long, cost about $2,500,000. The Maine railroad, seventy-one miles, cost $1,887,328. The Lowell railroad, twenty-six miles, cost nearly $2,000,000, with a branch to Nashua fourteen miles. The Fitchburg railroad, forty miles, cost $1,500,000. The Worcester railroad, forty miles, with branches to Norwich, sixty-six miles, cost $2,000,000. The Western railroad to Albany, one hundred and fifty-six miles, cost nearly $8,000,000. The Connecticut river railroad, thir- ty-six miles, cost $500,000 ; Hartford, twenty-five miles, $300,000 ; Berkshire, twenty-one miles, $250,000 ; W. Stock- bridge, $39,600. The Providence railroad, forty-one miles, cost nearly $2,000,000 ; with branches to Taunton, eleven miles, 250,000 ; N. Bedford, twenty-one miles, $453,623. The Old Colony railroad, thirty-seven miles, cost $889,730, with a branch to i Middleboro' and Fall River. I The total length is seven hundred and ! ten miles, and cost nearly $27,000,000. Education. — Common schools were established by law very soon after the foundation of the colony of Massachu- setts Bay; and parents, guardians, &c., were required to have their children and wards instructed. Every larger village and town was to have a gi-ani- mar-school. Education, at least in the rudiments of learning, has always been universal in this state ; and the influence of Massachusetts in extending and sus- taining mstitutions of learning in other parts of the country has been great, and not less creditable to her citizens than beneficial to their fellow-citizens of the Union. In the recent improvements in common schools, and some other means of diffusing knowledge, she has been one of the most efficient states ; and many of the measures approved and practised by the intelligent friends of learning have been devised or broueht into use, or most early or effectually put into practice, within her boundaries. Yet Massachusetts, until 1835, has never had a school fund, and her common schools were wholly supported by the people. A fund was then provided for, limited to one million of dollars. Every town or district containing fifty families is required to have a school kept at least six months in the year; or, if several schools exist, they shall be ke])t long enough to equal one school for six months. For those containing one hundred families the requisition is doubled ; and for those containing one hundred and fifty families, eighteen months are required. The school, or schools, must be in charge of a school- committee of three, five, or seven per- sons, annually elected. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. 77 Massachusetts is therefore justly enti- tled to a large share of the credit of hav- ing given an impulse to the cause of pop- ular EDUCATION. The early settlers of that section of our country were fully sensible of the defects of the English in- stitutions which they had forsaken. That the schools of learninar and relisfion were corrupted, and the fairest hopes over- thrown by licentious behavior in those seminaries, was one among the many causes of their emiarration from the Old World, and of pledging themselves to the education of their cliildren In the year 1G6S, a document was published by order of the government and council of Massachusetts, and addressed to the el- ders and ministers of every town, in whicli paper was set forth an earnest desire ft)r the moral and reHgious instruc- tion of the people, and an appeal to those to whom the instrument was directed, to e^camine whether tlie education of youth in the English language was attended to. From the time of the Winthrops and their associates, who labored zealously in this field of usefulness, to the present period, New England has devoted her attention to the promotion of knowledge ; and in the industry, integrity, and fru- gality of her children, now beholds the brilliant results of her perseverance. When we consider that the tide of im- migration, which is sweeping before it the forests of the west, takes its rise in the eastern section of the United States, and bears upon its bosom the elements of enrichment — that it is composed, in a great degree, of those who have been enabled to obtain there the rudiments of learning, the first principles of valua- ble information — ought we not to be grateful to those who have toiled and are still doing all that lies in their pow- er to render the fountain pure and trans- parent 1 Too much can not be done in arousinar 1 • • • public opinion on the subject of the ed- ucation of children. Let the instruction of a child be considered the paramount duty of a good citizen, and then public sentiment will act much more powerful- ly to produce the results desired than the staff of the officer of police. Public opinion is the best balance-wheel of the machinery of a society constituted as that is in which we live. It must be by promulgating among the people the sen- timent of the necessity of education — by arousing their attention to its value — by demonstrating its beneficial results, as not only the best check on the increase of crime, the prevention of pauperism, but also the promoter of public order and private happiness — that we can hope to have education generally diffused. So soon as the people are convinced, we shall have the brilliant object which all should desire to see effected. To pro- duce great results, must be the work of time. The past labors of the people are the best evidences of their devotion to the advancement of learning, and give great hope that the system of education will be laid with a broad and deep founda- tion, on which the pyramid of the repub- lic's glory and security may rise, and re- main an imperishable monument of the benevolence and wisdom of her citizens. In connexion, however, with the above, we most unhesitatingly assert that mere intellectual improvement is not, or should not be, the exclusive or even the prima- ry object of EDUCATION. Moral and reli- gious principles are infinitely more mo- mentous to the character and interests of the future man than the cultivation of the mind alone, whether we look to the individual himself, or to the influence which he will hereafter exercise upon society. The talented and accomplished scholar may shine in public and social life — may astonish by the depth of his erudition, charm by the graces of his el- oquence, or dazzle by the coruscations of his wit ; but the truly moral and vir- tuous man — the man of principle only — is the centre around which domestic felicity revolves ; he only contributes to the real and enduring benefit of society, and his own near and dear connexions: Contemplated in this aspect (and few, we think, will refuse thus to contemplate it), the morality which may be learned from any system of religious opinions that professes to take the Bible for its basis, deserves to be estimated far more highly than even the most extensive ac- quirements and splendid abilities, if un- controlled by those motives and principles 78 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. of action which alone can direct them to the production of solid and abiding advan- tage. Devoid of these principles, they have been almost invariably found, like sharp and polished weapons in the hands of a lunatic, to inflict a mortal wound up- on the possessor, and strike deep at the best interests of society. " A people, to be truly free, must first be wise and good*" This is truly an admirable maxim, and so evident as not to admit of doubt, even if it had not been long since fully demonstrated in the an- nals of the past. Education is the ground- work of national freedom and civilization — the foundation on which have origina- ted the great and essential improvements of agriculture, the mechanical branches, and the pursuits of science — the main pillars which constitute a nation's power and character. These and the fine arts, which polish and adorn the whole — the beauties of nature, eloquence, and sci- ence, with all the social endearments, which refine and embellish society — as well as the higher and moi'e sublime character of th(jse moral and political in- stitutions, which bind together and direct the whole, — are all the effects of that strength and intelligence which educa- tion has imparted to the human mind. And when we consider tha,t ignora?ice is the grand cause of vice and crime among the poor — that it contributes to their mor- al debasement and misery, excluding them from the enjoyment of all rational delight — confining their pastimes and pleasures to mere feats of strength and inebriating hilarity — and how it prevents the mind from expanding for the recep- tion of virtue and morality — we can not but rejoice at the success of all plans for illuminating this darkness, and respect the names and memories of those great and good men who have contributed so largely and freely of their time, influ- ence, and earthly substance, to extend the blessing of a sound and religious ed- ucation to every son and daughter within the reach of their influence. Many of the most eminent men of the state and nation were natives or long citi- zens of Boston. The early clergymen were Cotton, Wilson, the Mathers, Oxen- bridge, Norton, Allen, Davenport, Wil- lard, Coleman, Prince, the Eliots, Byles, Thacher, Wadsworth, Pemberton, Cal- lender, Sewall, Cooper, Checkley, May- hew, Gee, Walter, Condy, Stillman, Chauncey, Lathrop, Howard, West, Bel- knap, Parker, Everett, Kirkland, Emer- son, Buckminster, and Channing. They were eminent scholars, as well as able theologians. We have only room for a few of the distinguished laymen of early times. These were Winthrop, Belling- ham, Leverett, Stoughton, Cheever, Bulk- ley, Drummer, Cook, Brattle, the Sew- alls. Belcher, Oliver ; and in later pe- riods, Otis, Bowdoin, Samuel Adams, G-ridley, Joseph Warren, John Hancock, Richard Dana, Governor Hutchinson, Thacher, Sears, Quincy, Mason, &c. Of these latter individuals especially, many of them made great exertions, and suf- fered much in various ways, during the war of the Revolution. Several of them were opulent merchants, and they loaned largely of their money to the government for its support. During that period not only was the commerce of this ancient metropolis long suspended and greatly injured, but many of its public and pi'i- vate buildings destroyed. It furnished great numbers of men in various ways in the service of the country ; they were obliged to be constantly under arms in times of danger and apprehension. The citizens of all classes — the merchants and mechanics, and the professional men — were zealous advocates of the Federal Constitution in 1788, and afterward the firm supporters of the administrations of Washington and Adams. We learn, from a series of articles, prepared and pub- lished by Edwin Williams, Esq., of New Yoi'k, that " the honor of origina- ting a suggestion which afterward led to the organization of the old Continental Congress, and prepared the way for the independence of these United States, was due to the name of Sears."* * Colonel Isaac Sears, the distinguished character here alluded to, was the originator and leader of the "Sons of Liberty'' at the opening of the American Revolution. He seems for a time to have represent- ed the spirit of that revolution more fully than any other person in the city and vicinity of New York. His life has never been written, which, including the doings of the " Liberty Boys," is an interesting and unexplored province of our revolutionary annals. He is often referred to in the correspondence of Wash- ington, Gouverneur Morris, and Messrs. Adams, as ft Of 51 n> o o s, o a a c o o o 80 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. These illustrious worthies of a past age being dead, yet speak to us. We do well to hallow their memories and record their noble deeds. Interesting associations cluster around these great actors in the drama of the Past. They belong to the nation ; for not the old states merely, but those which sprang in- to being but yesterday, look upon the o-lory of the Revolution as a common patrimony. This nation must ever be sensible of the worth of its benefactors, and real merit will soon dissipate the mists of party prejudice. Its effect, like that of a very strong sympathetic feeling running through the people, must be to knit more closely the bonds of national union. It has given freshness to the memory of common efforts in the great national struggle, which must always prove a powerful tie among men who e.\ult in the achievements of a common ancestry. It may have furnished some incense to the vanity imputed to our na- tion ; but this is as dust in the balance compared with the spirit which it indi- cates and the feelings which it has awa- kened. Here we may learn useful les- sons for the future, from the history of the past. Let us follow these distinguished men to " old age ;" when Nature seemed to demand repose, each had retired to the spot from which the public exigencies had first called him — his public labors ended, his work accomplished, his be- loved country prosperous and happy — there to indulge in the blessed retrospect of a well-spent life, and to await that pe- riod which comes to all. Did they pass their time in idleness and indifference 1 No. The same spirit of active benevo- lence, which made the meridian of their lives resplendent with glory, continued to shed its lustre upon their evening path. Still intent on doing good, still devoted to the great cause of human happiness and improvement, none of these illustri- ous men relaxed in their exertions. They seemed only to concentrate their energy as age and increasing infirmity contract- ed the circle of action — bestowing, with- out ostentation, their latest efforts upon the state and neighborhood in which they resided. There, with patriarchal sim- plicity, they lived, the objects of a na- tion's grateful remembrance and affec- rendering important services to tlie colonies, and is named in the journals of those times as a brave and heroic character. The materials of liis biography are yet extant in public and private documents in the city and state of New York, and ought to be collected and preserved, as important sources of history. tion — the living records of a nation's his tory ; the charm of an age which they delighted, adorned, and instructed, by their deeds of benevolence, and vivid sketches of times that are past ; and, as it were, the embodied spirit of the Rev- olution itself, in all its purity and force, diffusing its wholesome influence through the generations that have succeeded, re- buking every sinister design, and invig- orating every manly and virtuous resolu- tion. We can not set in too strong a light their history. It awakens the public gratitude for their services ; it tells their countrymen to be faithful to their prin- ciples, and vigilant in preserving those institutions free and unimpaired, to at- tain which they sacrificed their ease and safety. These eulogies are in fact the people's testimony to the excellence of our form of government. The venera- tion paid to such men as Adams and Jef- ferson is an acknowledgment of the worth of the political principles which they labored to establish. And when the kingdoms of the Old World are tot- tering to their foundations, what can be more proper or grateful than the sight of a whole people uniting to testify their love for the government under which they live 1 In other countries, one half of the nation is employed in preventitjg the oth- er from pulling the political machine to pieces. Here, all are united to up- hold IT. Of the present distinguished, patriotic, and benevolent citizens of Boston, a long list might be here given, and then not all be mentioned. It has been remarked, and with great truthfulness, that the lib- erality of her rich men is proverbial from Maine to Missouri, and has secured for that city a name which, we trust, future generations will not only respect, but en- deavor to add to its lustre, by imitating such men as the Lawrences, David Sears, the Appletons, Thomas H. Per- I I 82 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. KINS, and a host of others, whose coffers are not closed, but who are constantly contributing, by their princely individu- al donations often and twenty thousand dollars, to undertakings of philanthropy and charity — encouraging talent, promo- ting industry, and fostering the fine arts ; thus setting a most noble example to the wealthy of other cities which we could wish more generally imitated. Since the year 1800, more than two millions OF DOLLARS have been given in munifi- cent gifts by the* citizens of Boston to the cause of education alone. The first settlers of New England were exceedingly tenacious of their civil and religious rights, and they well knew that KNOWLEDGE was an all-powerful engine to preserve those rights, and transmit them to their posterity. They therefore very early laid the foundation of those FREE SCHOOLS of which all the sons and daughters of New England are so justly proud. Exclusive of infant and sabbath school children, about a quarter part of the population of Boston is kept at school throughout the year, at an annual ex- pense of about two hundred thousand dollars. Their ancestors have nobly imitated their bright and patriotic example. Such men are indeed the fathers of the nation, and must ever live in the affections of the people. When time has consigned them to their honored graves, the good they have done will live after them. Fu- ture generations will rise up and call them blessed. Their names will fill a niche in the temple erected in every one's memory, to commemorate those who, as ihey passed along the pathway of life, scattered the seeds of knowledge and morality, which have taken root, sprung up, bearing the most delectable fruits, agreeable to the sight, and of pleasant flavf)r. Williams College, at William stown, Berkshire county, in the northwest cor- ner of the state, was a public school or academy at its commencement, in 1791, and was incorporated as a college in 1793. It derives its name from its found- er. Colonel Ephraim Williams. Besides donations from the state and several in- dividuals, it has received a bequest of fifty-seven thousand dollars from Mr. Woodbridge Little. It is under the charge of seventeen trustees. Amherst College. — This institution is situated near the centre of the state, in Amherst, on the east side of Connecti- cut river, and was founded in 1821 and incorporated in 1825. The principal buildings are five, each four stories high, three of which are occupied by students, and the other is devoted to the chapel, cabinets, library, &c. Fifty thousand dollars were raised by subscription in 1832. Rev. Zephaniah Moore, D.D., was the first president, who was succeed- ed in 1823 by the Rev. Heman Hum- phrey, D.D. The Andover Theological Academy was the first institution of the kind in the country. It was commenced in 1808, having been founded the year before. It is situated in Andover, a pleasant vil- lage, in a fine, elevated tract of country, nineteen miles northwest of Boston ; the value of the property belonging to it has been stated at four hundred thousand dollars, for which it has been largely in- debted to the liberality of its principal donors, viz., John Norris, of Salem ; Samuel Abbott, of Andover ; Moses Brown and William Bartlet, of Newbu- The buildings of the institution con- sist of a dwelling-house for each of the professors; Phillips hall, of brick, nine- ty feet by forty, four stories, containing thirty-two rooms for students, built in 1S08 ; Bartlet chapel, an elegant brick building, ninety-four feet by forty, con- taining a chapel, library, and three lec- ture-rooms, built in 1818; and Bartlet hall, an elegant brick building, one hun- dred and four feet by forty, containing thirty-two suites of rooms furnished, presented by Mr. Bartlet in 1821. The buildings stand on elevated ground, hav- ing a commanding, variegated, and beau- tiful prospect. The library of the seminary contains about fifteen thousand volumes. Besides this, there are two other libraries : one, of the Porter Rhetorical Society, con- taining from two to three thousand vol- umes ; the other, belonging to the Soci- ety of Inquiry respecting Missions, con- < IS a 84 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. taining from one to two thousand vol- umes. There is an athena3um and news- room, supported by the students. An- nexed to the institution is a commodious mechanic's shop, where the students can exercise themselves in carpentering or cabinet-work. The term is three years. The principal study for the first year is the Bible in its original tongues. The second year is occupied in the study of systematic theology. The third year is devoted to the study of ecclesiastical history, and the composition of sermons. There is also a Teachers' Seminary near the institution, which will accommodate two hundred students. It is under the trus- tees of Phillips academy and four visiters. The Newton Theological Sejiiinary, under the patronage of the baptist de- nomination, was founded in Newton in 1825, and was incorporated by the legis- lature the next year. In 1828, a brick building, three stories in height, besides a basement story, eighty-five feet long and forty-nine wide, was erected, at an expense of about ten thousand dollars. Three convenient houses have been since erected for the professors. In the man- sion-house are accommodations for the steward's family, a dining-hall, a chapel, and recitation-rooms. The regular course of study occupies three years. There are two vacations of six weeks each — one from the last Wednesday but one in Auorust, the other from the last Wednes- day in March. The semniary is about seven miles from Boston, in a very salu- brious locality, being beautifully situa- ted on an elevated hill, which commands an extensive prospect of Boston and of , the rich country around. Harvard University. — This institu- tion, which is the oldest in the Union, and the most liberally endowed, was commenced in 1636 by the general court of Massachusetts, who then appropriated four hundred pounds toward the estab- [ lishment of a college, which was incor- \ porated in 1638, under the title of Har- vard College, in consequence of a legacy j left it that year, by Rev. John Harvard, of 66779 17*. 2d. The state and differ- ent liberal donors have since increased its funds to a large amount. It is situated in the town of Cambridge, 1 three miles west from Boston, and com- prises an academical department, as well as those of law, theology, and medicine. Four of the principal buildings are of four stories, for the accommodation of students ; two others contain the miner- alogical cabinet, the library, the chapels, &c. Besides these are the halls of law, divinity, and medicine. The libraries contain above forty thousand volumes, including those of the several depart- ments. Those belonging to the studies contain about five thousand volumes ; the cabinets and appai'atus are very valua- ble. This institution is under the con- trol of the unitarian denomination. Boston Waterworks. — These works are more than half completed, and the ex- penditure has akeady been about two mil- lions of dollars. The whole expense of construction, including interest, will prob- ably fall within three millions of dollars. The water is to be brought in an oval brick aqueduct, over six feet in height, about fourteen and a half miles from Co- chituate lake to Brookline, where it dis- charges itself into a reservoir of more than twenty acres in extent ; from Brook- line the water is forced by its own pres- sure through pipes of thirty and thirty- five inches in diameter, to the two reser- voirs in the city : the one on Mount Wash- ington, at South Boston, which will con- tain superfices of seventy thousand, and the other on Beacon hill of thirty-eight thousand feet. The latter will contain, when full, three millions of gallons ; this reservoir will enable them to have a fountain on the " Common," which will throw a jet to a great height. The two reservoirs will deliver to the city of Bos- ton ten millions of gallons a day, of the purest and best water, decided by chym- ists to be equal to that of the Ci'oton, and superior to that of the Schuylkill. Newspapers, &c. — The number of newspapers published in this state before the Revolution (in 1775) was seven, viz., in Boston, the Boston News-Letter, the Evening Post, the Gazette, the Massa- chusetts Gazette and Postboy ; in Sa- lem, the Essex Gazette ; in Newbury- port, the Essex Journal ; and in Wor- cester (first published at Boston), the Massachusetts Spy. cr" a W o a D O o B B o p ? or o w c or o o c o a 86 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. In 1810, the number in the state was thirty-two; in 1828, seventy-eight ; and in 1834, one hundred and eight. The first daily paper in Massachusetts was the Boston Daily Advertiser, begun in 1813. The earliest periodical pamphlets or magazines printed in the state were the following: from 1789 to 1796, the Mas- sachusetts Magazine, or Monthly Mu- seum, which extended to eight volumes ; in 1800, the Columbian Phenix and Boston Review, which ceased after the eighth number; in 1802, the New Eng- land Magazine; from 1803 to 1811, the Monthly Anthology, or Boston Review, in ten volumes, edited at first by Phineas Adams, and afterward by Rev. William Emerson, W. S. Shaw, A. M. Walter, James Savage, and others ; in 1803, the American Baptist Magazine was begun, which continued under several editors; in 1805, the Missionary Magazine, by Congregational clergymen; in 1806, the Panoplist, by Rev. J. Morse and others : these two were united in 1808, and ed- ited by Rev. Jeremiah Evarts from 1810 till 1820, when the Missionary Herald took its place, which is continued, under the American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions. Literary, reli- gious, and scientific publications of this class have since multiplied to such a degi"ee, that we have not room for any fixrther notice under this head. The North American Review, however, must be mentioned, as one of the oldest and most influential publications of the kind in the United States: it was commenced in 1815, forms two volumes annually, and has been edited successively by William Tudor, Jared Sparks, Edward T. Channing, Edward Everett, Alexan- der H. Everett, &c. The New England InAtitutiun for the Education of the Blind is one of the largest and most prosperous establish- ments of the kind in the Union, and very liberally endowed by pul)lic and private donations. It was incorporated it) 1829, and in 1833 was presented, by Thomas H. Perkins, with a house worth tliirty thousand dollars, and by individ- uals with fifty thousand dollars. Later donations have increased its funds. Learned Societies. — The American Academy of Arts and Sciences was in- corporated in 1780, and has published several quarto volumes. The Massachusetts Historical Society was established in 1791 and incorpor- ated in 1794, and has published many volumes of collections. The American Antiquarian Society was incorporated in 1812. The Massachusetts Medical Society was incorporated in 1781. The American Institute of Instruc- tion was founded in 1831. Boston, the capital of this state, is situated on a small peninsula at the head of Massachusetts bay, at the mouth of Charles river, and is the principal city and seaport of New England. The har- bor is accessible, large, and well pro- tected by both nature and art. This city contains an uncommonly large pro- portion of fine buildings, particularly private residences. The finest build- ings are of whitish granite, brought from the shores of the Merrimack river and Quincy. The market is of granite, and has a centre building, seventy-four and a half by fifty-five feet, with wings, ex- tending in all five hundred and thirty- six feet, with a fine faqade at each end, with granite columns of single pieces, twenty-one feet high, and weighing each fourteen or fifteen tons. A row of gran- ite buildings on each side, four stories high, fin" stores, is more than five hun- dred feet. The Boston Common. — This is a large and beautiful public square, in the western pait of the city, lighted by gas, encircled by an iron fence, and extend- ing down the long and gentle slope of Beacon hill. It contains about forty- three acres, exclusive of the malls which surround it, and the botanic garden west of it, the whole comprehending at least seventy-five acres of open land dedicated to the public. In spring and summer, when covered with a coat of verdant grass, and while the numerous fine trees which shade it are in full foliage, the sight is remarkably striking, and can not be contemplated without admiration, as one of the lai'gest and most beauti- ful public grounds in America^ Being 88 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. slightly relieved by several svv^ells and depressions, it is remarkably well adapt- ed to the mancBuvring and encampment of troops, to which it is devoted on days of military display. It was originally dedicated to this purpose, and was aftei'- ward used for the pasturing of cows, as appears from the recorded depositions of some of the oldest inhabitants, taken befoi"e Governor Bradstreet in 1684. In the centre of this park thei'e is a beautiful piece of water, known by the name of " Frog pond,'" of about half an acre in extent, and enclosed by edge- stones of hammered granite. It is the intention of the city government — on the introduction of pure water into the city, the works of which are already in a state of srreat forwardness — to erect a O jet d'eau, twenty feet high, in the broad- est part of it. Near this pond, and south of it, stands the celebrated old elm, which for nearly two centuries has triumphed over the heats of summer and the blasts of win- ter, and under whose shade were foi-- merly held the drumhead courts-martial of military law, and the parades of mil- itary executions ; but more recently it has been selected as the appropriate spot for meetings of happy children for their holyday sports. Before 1733, rows of trees had been planted on some parts of the common, as, in that year, it was resolved that more should be planted. In 1739, posts and rails were set up " from the granary in Common street," where Park street church now stands, "to Beacon street." Many of the fine old elms which now shade the old granary " mall" are prob- ably of the number. Since that time the trees have been greatly multiplied, so that the common is now surroimded with broad and shady avenues, where, on the smooth gravel- walks, thousands of citizens find a fa- vorite retreat from heat, and the enjoy- ment of a cool breeze, on the summer evenings. The number of elms now exceeds seven hundred ; and these are, in some parts, tastefully intermingled with other kinds of trees, lining the numerous shady paths which conduct across the grounds around their circuit, or by winding coui'ses up and down the gentle declivities. On three sides the common is bor- dered by long ranges of stately man- sions, being a favorite part of the city on account of its fine scenery, free air, and retirement. On the west it looks down on Charles river, there spreading out into a wide bay, from whose shores rise the swelling and cultivated slopes and hills of Roxbury, Brookline, Brigh- ton, and Cambndge — no less celebrated from the historical associations with the siege of the city in 177t'J, than from the embellishment they have received in later days, by the numerous rural res- idences of citizens. Overlookinsr the common from the summit of Beacon hill, on its northern I side, stands the statehcjuse, an old and venerable edifice, ornamented with a Grecian colonnade, and crowned with a i fine dome, which is the first object A'is- I ible on approaching the city from every direction. Near it, on the west, still remains the residence of Govenior John I Hancock, one of the most conspicuous men of the revolutionary period. On the same side and further west, rising from the rich foliage which surrounds i the spectator in the common, conspic- uous among many fine edifices, stands the mansion of the Hon. David Sears — a gentleman of large landed property, distinguished amonc;- those remarkable men of Boston to whom t!ic litei'ature and charities of the country owe so j much — a \-iew of which is repi"esented ! on the preceding page. I [ This edifice is in a plain, massive style I of architecture, but has a light and pleas- ins: etfect, beinsr constructed of white granite, and having the front broken by two semi-circular projections, like round towers, extending from the ground to the roof, and affording to the three sto- ries abundant light and commanding views of the beautiful and extensive scenery spread out around. In this vi- cinity are numerous fine dwellings, the residences of distinguislied gentlemen — of the princely merchants, the Law- rences and Appletons — of the eminent lawyers, Otis, Choate, and Mason — 90 DESCHIPTION OF THE tJTATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. of tlie historian, Prkscott ; and many olliers. Costly buildings may also be seen on the several streets which have, chiefly within the last twenty years, been built up parallel and at right angles with the north line of the common, on the upper slope of ISeacon hill ; but none surpass, in size or effect, the elegant mansion depicted and described. There are several other edifices on diiferent sides of the common, which merit more particular notice than we have room to give them. Park street church stands on the eastern side, and is one of the oldest churches in the city. The Gothic masonic temple, and St. Paul's church on the south, and other places of worship of different denom- inations, are seen in the neighborhood, adding variety by their different forms and styles of architecture. Ghantreifs Statue of Washington. — In this beautiful specimen of the skill of the greatest Bi'itish sculptor, Boston possesses a treasure. It was finished and sent to America in 1827, and a new apai'tmtMit was constructed for its recep- tion, adjoining the Doric hall, in the statehouse. The total expense of the statue and building amounted to about sixteen thousand dollars. Faneuil Hall. — This old building was erected in 1742, at the expense of a gen- tleman whose name it bears, and who presented it as a gift to the town of Boston. It was enlarged by consider- able additions in 1805, and the follow- ing are its ])resent dimensions : length, one hundred teet ; breadth, eighty feet; height, three stories ; great hall in the second stcn-y, used for jniblic meetings, seventy-six feet scpiare and twenty-eight high ; hall for military trainings, in the third story, seventy-eight feet by thirty. The basement story is devoted to stores. A broad staircase, entered from the east front, leads to the second and third sto- ries. The great hall has gtilleries on three sides, supported by Doric col- umns ; two rows of Ionic columns sup- port the ceiling. Stuart's portrait of Washington, and a portrait of Peter Faneuil, ornament this fine hall. The Oustomhouse. — This buildina: is located at the foot of State street, be- ' tw(!en the heads of Long and Central wharves, fronting east on the dock be- tween them, and on the west fronting India street, which is its principal front. The building is in the form of a cross ; the extreme length is one hundred and forty feet, exti'eme breadth ninety-five ; the hmgest arms of the cross are seven- ty-five feet wide, and the shortest sixty- seven, feet. The base of the building is nine feet high, the columns thirty-tw(j feet, entablature ten and two thirds feet, pediment eight and one third feet, and dome at the intersection of the crnss twenty-nine feet above that; making the whole height, from the sidewalk to the top of the dome, ninety feet. The style of architecture is the pure Gre- cian Doric. Each front has a portico of six fluted Doric columns, thirty-two feet high and five feet four inches in diameter, approached by a flight of four- teen steps, which are equal in height to the base of the building. The walls of the building are composed of sixteen three-quarter columns, four nearly full columns at the corner, all of the same height and diameter as those of the ])or- ticoes ; and four antee, thirty-two feet in height, five feet one inch by three feet eisfht inches at the intersection of the cross. The columns are each in one piece, of highly-wrought granite, cost- in20, l>earing the founders of New England across the Atlantic. On the 22d of December, after im- ploiing the Divine guithuice and pro- tection, the people landed and com- menced a settlement. This dav is still celebrated by the descendants of the pilgrims as the anniversary of New England's birth. Tliey gave the town the name of Ply- mouth, in remembrance of the hospital- ities they had received at the last ))ort in England from which they had sailed. Their first operations consisted in meas- uring out the land to the different fam- ilies, laying a platform for their ordnance and erecting habitations. It was not till the 31st of December that they were able to celebrate the sabbath, with its appropriate exercises, in a house on shore. The hardships undergone by the peo- ple, in exploring the bay and effecting a landing, sowed tlie seeds of fatal dis- ease ; their ])rovisi(m8 were scanty ; the winter was severe ; and the Indians, remembering the kidnapping exploits of Hunt and others, were hostile. More than half the colonists, including John Carver, their governor, died before the spring ; and those who retained their strength were hardly sufficient to admin- ister to the urgent wants of the sick and dying. In this employment, no one dis- tinguished himsfdf more than Carver, the governor. He was a man of foi'tune, who had spent all in the service of the colony, and readily sacrificed his life in discharging the humblest offices of kind- ness to the sick. He was succeeded by William Bradford, who was reelected for many successive years, notwithstand- ing his remonstrance, that " if this office were an honor, it should be shared by his fellow-citizens ; and if it were a bur- den, the weight of it should not always be imposed on him." 108 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. Tt appears that, previous to the ar- rival of the pilgrims in New England, a sweeping pestilence had carried off whole tribes of natives, in the region where they had now settled. The traces of former habitations were apparent, but no Indians were found i-esiding in their immediate vicinity. The spring, which restored health to the colonists, brought tliem also an agreeable surprise, in the visit of some Indians whose disposition was friendly. The visit of Samosct, whose previous intercourse with the English fishermen enabled him to salute them with " Welcome, welcome Englishmen !" was followed by that of Massasoit, the principal sachem of the country, with whom the celebrated treaty was con- cluded, which was inviolably obsei'ved for more than fifty years, and contrib- uted during that period, more than any other circumstance, to secure New Eng- land from the horrors of Indian warfiire. Tragarigzanda, or Cape Ann. — This promontoiy, at the extremity of Mas- sachusetts bay, was discovered (accord- ing to Dr. Holmes, in his " American Annals") in the year 1614, by the cel- ebrated Captain John Smith, in his first voyage to this part of America ; it was then called North Virginia. He gave it the name of Tragabip^ JldDIEIM Wni^f ieiIE(DIP5 POUNDER OF THE CITY OF BOSTON, AND FIRST GOVERNOR OF MASSACHUSETTS. 110 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. We can not close our description of | the fathers of New England in their strng- Massachusetts more appropriately, than ' gles, situated as we are in the midst of hy giving biographical sketches of two of her most eminent statesmen. Occupy ing as they did exalted stations at the ex treme points in her history, the impress ease and prosperity. Indeed the wliole character of thcjse who influenced and directed their councils, has never been correctly estimated. By some it has of their characters has been so strongly been viewed as a model for the present marked on the institutions of the state generation, possessed of every virtue, that it will never be effaced. We refer i without blemish oi- reprctach. Oiliers to John Winthn)p, the father of the have seen notliing but bigotry, hypocri- Mnssachusetts colony, and John Quincy sy, a spirit of persecution, gloomv super- Adams, wliose life, from early youth stition, and an aliseiiceof the social graces to a ripe old age, was devoted to the and virtues. Both of these views dn vio- service of his country, in its most im- portant offices. John Winthrop, first Govkrnok op Massachusetts. — We know of nothino;- lence to human nntiire, history, and truth. There is a manifest want of justice in deciding upon any portion of history in the abstract, or by views which are ob- in the history of colonies marked with so tained in a more refined atid cultivated many peculiarities, as the first settlement state of society, where questions of nat- of New Entjland. No others were ever ural ritjht are better understood. A more founded for purposes strictly religious, j correct ju.n)s was training his son for a life of patriotic statesmanship. A treaty having been signed by which France rec- oiinised the Ignited States as an inde- pendent power, Mr. Adams returned with his son in the same vessel which brought to our shores tlie first ambassador from Fiance — the first that ever came to us from any foreign power. Near the close of 1779. John Adams was again sent abroad by Congress, as minister plenipotentiary to negotiate a peace with Great Britain ; and again his son John Quincy, then in his thirteenth year, accompanied him to Paris, and thence, a few months afterward, to Hol- land. The st)n was placed in school first at Paris, then at Amsterdam, After- ward, while his father continued in Hol- land, he pursued his studies at the uni- versity of Leyden. In July, 17S1, Mr. Dana, of Massachusetts, who had accom- panied John Adams as secretary of lega- tion, went as minister plenipotentiary from Congress to tlie empress of Ivus- sia ; and John Quincy Adams, then just fourteen years old, went with him as his private secretary. A few months after- ward he returned to his father in Hol- land. With his father he went to Paris, where he was present at the signing of the treaty of peace with Great Britain — the act by which the independence of his country was consummated. At the age of eighteen, his father per- mitted him to return to this country. He immediately became a student in Har- vard college, where he graduated with distinguished honor. He pursued the study of law for three years, having the celebrated Theophilus Parsons for his instructor ; and then having been admit- ted to the bar, he commenced the prac- tice of that profession in Boston. In 1794, when he was just twenty- seven yeare of age, he received from President Washington the appointment of minister to the Netherlands. From that time to 1801, he was in Europe, em- ployed by his country in various dip- lomatic services. Just as General Wash- ington was retiring from office, he ap- pointed Mr, Adams minister plenipoten- tiary to the court of Portugal. While on his way to Lisbon he received a new- commission, changing his destination to Berlin. During his residence of about three years and a Ifalf in Berlin, he con- cluded an important commercial treaty with Prussia — thus accomplishing the object of his mission. He was recalled near the close of his father's administra- tion, and arrived in his native country in September, ISOl. In 1S02, he was chosen by the Boston district to the senate of Massachusetts, and soon after was elected by the legis- lature a senator in Congress for six yeai-s, from March 3, 1S03. He remained in the senate of the United States, until ISOS, when he resigned. While in the senate he received the appointment of professor of rhetoric in Harvard Univer- sity, an oflice which he filled with dis- tinguished ability. In 1809, he was appointed by Presi- dent Madison, envoy extraordinary and minister plenipotentiary to the court of Russia, where he rendered the most im- portant services to his country. By his influence witli that court he induced Russia to ofler her mediation between Great Britain and the United States, in the war of 1812, and when the proper time had arrived, he was placed by 118 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MASSACHUSETTS. President Madison at the head of five distinsfuished commissioners to net^otiate a treaty of peace, which was concluded at Ghent, in 1814. Mr. Adams was then associated with Mr. Clay, and Mr. Gal- latin, to necTOtiate a commerical conven- tion with Great Britain, and was forth- with appointed minister plenipotentiary to the court of St. James. While in Europe, in 1811, he was appointed as- sociate justice of the supreme court of the United States, which he declined. Peace being restored, he resided for two years as the representative of his country at the court of Great Britain. At the commencement of Mr. Mt)nroe'6 administration, in 1S17, he was called home to be secretai*i' of state. For eight years in the department of state, he was the guiding mind of that wise, peaceful, and prosperous administration. That memorable administration was perhaps as ■'much the administration of John Quincy Adams as it was that of James Monroe. In 1825, Mr. Adams was elected pres- ident by the votes of the states in the house of representatives, the voting in the electoral colleges having resulted in no choice. Of the measures and policy of his administration, we may not speak particularly. In general they were the ; same with those which had characterized the administration of Monroe. j Two years after his retirement from the presidency, the people of the con- gressional district in which lie resided, elected him to represent them in Con- gress. At the commencement of the session in 1831, he took his seat in the hall of the house of represenlntives, and in that place of honor and of duty, the representative of Plymouth Rock, with generous blood from the May-Flowor in his veins, was continued by nine succes- sive elections. It is believed to have been the earnest wish of his heart to die like Chatham in the midst of his labors. It was a sublime thought that where he had toiled in the house of the nation, in hours of the day devoted to its service, the stroke of death should reach him, and • there severthe ties of love and patriotism which bound him to the earth. Ho fell in liis seat, on the 21st of February, 1843, attacked by paralysis, of which he had before been a victim. He was removed to the apartment of the speaker, where he remained surrounded by afflicted friends, till the weary clay resigned its immortal spirit two days afterward. " This is the end of earth !" Brief but emphatic words. They were the last uttered by the dying Christian. In this long career of public service, Mr. Adams was distinguished by faith- ful attention not only to all the great du- ties of his stations, but to all their less and minor duties. He was not the Sala- minian galley, to be launched only on extraordinary occasions, but he was the ready vessel, always launched when the duties of his station required it, be the occasion great or small. As president, as cabinet minister, as minister abroad, he examined all questions that came be- fore him, and examined all, in all their parts, in all the minutife of their detail, as well as in all the vastness of their com- prehension. As senator, and as a mem- ber of the house of representatives, the obscure committee-room was as much the witness of his labcn'ious application to the drudgery of legislaticm as the halls of the two houses were to the ever-ready speech, replete with knowledge, which instructed all hearers, enlightened all subjects, and gave dignity and ornament to debate. In the observance of all the proprie- ties of life, Mr. Adams was a most noble and impressive example. He cultivated the minor as well as the greater virtues. Wherever his presence could give aid and countenance to what was useful and hon- orable to man, there he was. In the exercises of the school and of the college — in the meritorious meetings of the agricultural, mechanical, and commercial societies — in attendance upon Divine worship — he gave the punctual attend- ance rarely seen but in those who are free from the weight of public cares. He has been gathered to his fathers, leaving behind him the memory of public ser- vices which are the history of his country for half a century, and the example of a life, public, and private, which should be the study and the model of the genera- tions of his countrymen. This is one of the small states of the Union, but it has performed a part of much importance to the ijeneral interests of the country, in different ways and at diffeient pe- riods. It was not only one of the original states, but contained two of the oldest colonies, having been settled in 1636, sixteen years after the landing at Plymouth. The boundaries were long un- settled, and, on all its four sides, contesting claims caused agitation flud difficulty for years : on the east, with Rh(jde Island ; on the north, with Massachusetts; and on the west, with New York: which three states are now separated from Connecticut chiefly by artificial limits. Having settled several towns on Long Island, Connecticut long extended her jurisdiction across the sound; and the beautiful valley of Wyoming, in Pennsylvania, was once occupied by her, as part of her territory, being included in the royal patent of the colony, which extended to the Pacific ocean. The limits of the state, as long since finally settled, extend from latitude 40° 2' to 41° north, and between longitude 71° 20' and 73° 15' west. It con- tains 4,674 square miles. , • n i. The soil is generally poor, with some remarkable exceptions, especially on the feitile meadows of Connecticut river. By a glance at the map, the reader will see that this state is crossed by three principal ranges of high land, from south to north, which give their general direc- tion to the three chief streams— the Connecticut in the middle; the Thames, or Shetucket, in the east ; and the Housatonic in the west. Some parts of the hills are rough and of considerable elevation, but scarcely deserve the name of moun- tains. Most of them consist of granite and other primitive rocks; and to that formation most of the country belongs, except the meadows, which are a rich 120 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. alluvial soil, annually increased by par- ticles left by the floods, and washed down from the high land by the rains. These lowlands are generally of great fertility — those of the Connecticut, es- pecially, being considered as the best in New England, and equal to almost any other in the United States. The uplands, however, have a soil of but middling quality; yet being divided into small farms, and cultivated by an indus- trious and intelligent people, they are made more productive than some better lands in less favorable circumstances. In some parts of the state are small tracts, quite unfit for cultivation ; but in many of the roughest and wildest regions are found valuable quarries and mines, many of which are profitably wrought ; and the discriminating eye of science has recently recognised some of the rare minerals before discovered in only a few localities in the world.* The greatest treasure of the hilly regions, however, is an immense amount of water-power, aff"orded by the numerous streams which rush down their declivities, and now give motion to hundreds of mills and thousands of curious machines, which the intelligence of the inhabitants has introduced, or their ingenuity invented. These produce in great numbers the great variety of articles annually man- ufactured both for home use and for dis- tant markets. Most of these find their way first to the steamboats, or railroad cars, which now keep up an active inter- course with the city of New York, and are thence despatched in different di- rections, repaying, many times over, the cost of such raw materials as are brought from other regions. Large steamboats run daily between New York and New Haven, Hartford, Norwich, and Stonington, each commu- nicating with a railroad, and thus afford- ing frequent, rapid, and commodious means of travelling and exportation, scarcely to be exceeded, and highly ad- vantasjeous to commerce as well as to numerous travellers who are attracted by the beauty of the country. Steam- boats of smaller size ply daily between * See the Geological Survey of Connecticut, pub- lished in 1839. New York and the towns lying along the western part of the sound ; while numerous sloops still find employment in the coasting trade. Foreign com- merce is carried on to a limited extent ; and several vessels from Stonington are engaged in sealing, and more from New London in whaling. The aspect of Connecticut is gener- ally pleasing to the eye. Its small terri- tory embraces a great variety of natural scenery, everywhei'e embellished by art, and displaying the evidences of a numer- ous, intelligent, industrious, ingenious, and prosperous people. The surface is marked by roads running in all direc- tions, and subdivided into thousands of farms of small size ; while the flourish- ing towns and villages which meet the view in great numbers, consist of taste- ful and comfortable dwellings, as far removed from splendor on the one hand, as fi'om meanness and poverty on the other. These are evidences of the gen- eral degree of comfort and equality which prevails among the people ; while the churches and schoolhouses, distributed at short intervals all over the surface, indicate the attachment which the peo- ple have always shown for learning and religion. The facilities and accommodations here offered to travellers, are such as are afforded by the most advanced state of the arts and comforts of life. In 1818, the state adopted the present constitution, in place of the old charter granted to the colony by King Charles I. The history of Connecticut under the charter presents a remarkable example of stability and uniformity in govern- ment, a parallel to which it would be difficult to find in any country. All the legislative officers, except representa- tives, were chosen every year by the whole body of freemen, as were the governor, deputy-governor, secretary, and treasurer. The representatives were chosen twice a year by the towns. Many of these various officers, even the higher, held their places till death or advanced age. General Wyllys was elected sec- retary sixty-three years in succession, including the agitated periods of the stamp-act and the revolution. All ju- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. 121 dicial officers were appointed annually by the general assembly, and the members of congress by general ticket. Within a period of more than twenty years pre- ceding the adoption of the constitution in 1818, the number of men who lost their places in the assembly and coun- cil, in consequence of a loss of popular- ity, was only two; yet this was a time marked by excitement and violent polit- ical parties, embracing the wars of Eu- rope and the last American war. At the time when the constitution was adopted in the place of the charter, a change took place in the political opin- ions of the majority of the people ; and some of the conflicting views which have since existed in the country, have by turns prevailed in Connecticut. In the meantime, almost every kind of business for whicl the state is adapted has been carried on with activity, and great ex- ertion made to improve the natural re- sources ; while commerce, the carrying- trade, and the settlement of near and distant regions, have drawn away, either temporarily or permanently, thousands of the people, leaving but a small in- crease of population to be shown by the census tables. Exertions were made in different ways for the good of the Indians. For the security of their rights of property, a law was early passed by the legislature in their favor, prohibiting private pur- chases of land, &c. The influence of this law was, as may be supposed, most favorable to the In- dians. No man being permitted to hold land purchased of them without the au- thority of the government, all inducement was cut off' from unprincipled persons to overreach them, to abuse, destroy, or to drive them away. When land was purchased of the natives, they were gen- erally secured in the possession and permanent enjoyment of such tracts as they wished to reserve ; and some of these are still held by their descendants, unalienable without the express consent of the legislature. Officers, called su- perintendents, are intrusted with the oversight of them, and reports are made by these at every session of the legis- lature. Attempts to introduce Christianity among several of the principal tribes were made, in early times, under the authority of the legislature, but with lit- tle effect. Their chiefs and head men were generally attached to their pagan systems. Several of the Indians, how- ever, were converts, among whom was Samson Occum, long a distinguished preacher of the gospel. But it appears that no man was found with the zeal and perseverance of Eliot, called the Apos- tle to the Indians, who displayed such an unconquerable spirit in his prolonged exertions for the instruction and civil- ization of the Massachusetts Indians. Eliot himself felt so much the duly of having something done for the Indians in Connecticut, that he applied to the legislature and obtained a call for a meeting of the principal men of some of the tribes ; but they rejected his offers, and never accepted Chi'istianity as a people. The history of Connecticut impresses important reflections on the considerate mind. We have here an authentic account of the foundation of a state on principles of the highest nature, and for the most valuable objects that ever were proposed by any set of men. In this respect the history of all the kingdoms and empires of antiquity sinks into insignificance, and appears deficient in interest, as their origin was owing only to motives of ne- cessity, or the desire of profit or power. The Spaniards, it is true, pretended to have in view the introduction of Chris- tianity into South America ; but their real object was conquest, and the history as well as the results of their policy too strongly attests the fact. The objects and plans of the New England colonies would have been well worthy of our high estimation, even if their experiment had failed or had not been tried. But now, when the proofs of their success are laid before us, and it so far exceeds all anticipation, the mind perceives powerful reasons for attend- ing to this unexampled branch of human history. And the study is recommended by higher considerations than those of mere amusement. The characters de- 122 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. velopedhy the good and intelligent men who are presented, are useful subjects of contemplation ; the high value which they set on religion and learning, on pri- vate virtue and public faith, lead us more justly to appreciate and moi'c warmly to admire them ; while the disinterested- ness of their lives tends to make us bet- ter, wiser, more active, and more useful, in every sphere and in all situations in life. Considerable improvement has been made in aericulture in this state within a few years. Agricultural societies have diffused knowledge, encouraged experi- ments, and favored the introduction of improved implements and methods. Trade, manufactures, and the learned professions (as they are ])erhaps improp- erly called), have diverted attention too much from that business which , is so hisihly honorable and aff'ords ample room for the application of science. Improve- ments might probably be introduced in agriculture, which would furnish the state with a larger supply of grain than it now raises, and prevent the necessity of making the present large annual im- portations. Wheat has suffered greatly ever since the year 1777 from the Hes- sian fly, which derives its name from the fact that it first commenced its ravages on that important crop during the year when the Hessian troops came to the country. Silk has been made with success in Connecticut for many years, though on a limited scale. The cultivation of the white mulberry-tree was introduced into Mansfield in 1760. In 1783 the assem- bly offered for ten years a bounty of ten shillings, lawful money, for every hun- dred white mulberry-trees planted, and threepence for evei-y ounce of silk man- ufactured. In 1735 the American silk company was formed in New Haven, and a large number of mulberry-trees were planted there and elsewhere. In Mans- field, in 1793, three hundred and sixty- two pounds of raw silk were made. In 1832 a bounty of one dollar was offered for every hundred trees three years old, and fifty cents a pound for silk reeled and fit for manufacture. In 1834 the bounty was extended to the Chinese mul- berry, and a company was incorporated with a donation of fifteen thousand dol- lars, thirteen and one third ]>er cent, of which was to be paid to Messrs. Gray and Bolton, the inventors of improve- ments in silk-machinery, for the use of them in the state. The speculation in mulberry-trees which prevailed in 1839, and the subsequent revulsion, caused much loss in this state. In 1832 the paper made in Connec- ticut was valued at $561,000. This is connected with the manufacture of books, which was lately carried on to such an extent, that the number of volumes print- ed at Hartford was for several years greater than in any other place in the United States, excepting only Boston, New York, and Philadelphia. New Haven. — This city is celebrated for its beauty, being laid out in squares four hundred feet in size, divided by fine broad and straight avenues, planted with large shady elms and other trees, and well built with edifices in good taste, adorned with gardens, and inhabited by an intelligent and refined population. This is the largest town in the state, and one of its capitals. It is chiefly dis- tinguished, however, as one of the first colonies, and the site of Yale College. The oldest edifice belonging to this veir- erable and flourishing institution was of wood, and stood near the corner of Col- lege and Chapel streets. There are four buildings for students, each containing thirty-two rooms, a chapel, with a philo- sophical chamber and apparatus, and a lyceum, with recitation-rooms and the library. In the rear are the Trumbull picture-gallery, the common's hall, in a small building with the splendid miner- alogical cabinet above, purchased from the late Colonel Gibbs, of New York. A new building has lately been erected for the accommodation of the literary so- cieties of the college. In another build- ing is the chemical laboratory, where Professor Silliman delivers his lectures. The institution has above five hundred scholars. Next north of the college is the house of President Day, and the professors have pleasant residences in the town. I The medical institution is at the north 124 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. end of College street, and the theologi- cal seminary on the green. The burying-gi'ound is situated oppo- site the medical institution, and occu- pies a large extent of land, planted with trees, and containing a great number of beautiful monuments of dift'erent designs. The old burying-ground was in the middle of the green, in the rear of the Centre church ; and there are to be seen two ancient stone monuments, of a small size, which are supposed to mark the graves of two of the regicide judges, Whalley and Dixwell. The Farmitigton and. Northampton Canal, commencing near the head of the wharf in this city, is crossed by the traveller, in going up from the steam- boat, near the market. The basin is large and commodious ; and the canal, passing through a part of the city and bending round along the outskirts on the north side, intersecTs several streets, by which it is crossed on handsome bridges. It extends to Northampton, Massachu- setts. There are pleasant rides in various directions from New Haven, the roads being numerous, and the face of the country favorable. The Judges' Cave is on the summit of West rock, about a mile north of the bluff. It is formed by the crevices be- tween seven lai'ge rocks, apparently thrown together by some convulsion. It is small, and entirely above ground, with a rude rock, like a column, on each hand. That on the right has this inscrij^tion : — " Opposition to tyrants is obedience to God !" to remind the visiter that the place once afforded shelter to Goffe and Whalley, two of the judges of King Charles the First, who escaped to the colonies and secreted themselves for some time in this solitary place. They were supplied with food by a family which resided near the foot of the mountain, and a little boy was despatched for them every day, who left a basket of provisions on a rock, with- out knowing what cause he was sub- serving. The place commands an ex- tensive view upon the country below, with a large tract of Long island and the sound. The manufactory of muskets is two miles north of New Haven, on the road to Hartford by Meriden, and at the foot of East rock. It was established by Mr. Whitney, the well-known inventor of the cotton-jin. The New Haven and Hartford Rail- road, forty miles long, begins at the steamboat wharf, crosses Quinnepiack river, and passes through the townships of North Haven, Wallingford, Meriden, Berlin, and Wethersfield. It pursues the general course of the " old colonial road," the route taken in early times between New Haven and Hartford, which wei'e independent col- onies. It was originally an Indian trail. Beyond New Haven, in Long Island sound, lies a cluster of islands called the Thimbles, famous in the traditions of the neighboring Connecticut coast, as the ancient resort of Captain Kidd, the notable pirate, whose treasures of solid gold, it is still believed by some, are concealed somewhere hereabouts. Sayrrook. — At this place was the first settlement made by Europeans on Con- necticut river. It was undertaken at the earnest solicitation of many of the right- ful proprietors of the countiy on its banks, who had been despoiled of their possessions by their formidable enemies, the Pequods. The River Indians twice j made application to the English at Ply- { mouth and at Boston to obtain settlers from their native soil, offering to jjive them land enough, and to pay two hun- dred beaverskins annually for the bene- I fit of their society. But the undertaking j was considered too hazardous ; and it ; was not until the year 161)5, when the ! Dutch at New York showed a deter- . . . , mmation to seize upon the country, ' which they claimed as their own, that a ' small detachment of men was sent from \ Boston to prepare for opening a trade with the Indians, and to build a fort at the mouth of the river. Their haste was soon justified by events ; for immediately ' after their landing, a Dutch vessel en- tered, and, proceeding up to Hartford, landed a body of men, who soon estab- lished themselves in a fort they called Good Hope, on a spot they obtained '. from Pequod usurpers. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. 125 The settlement of Saybrook was be- gun under a gi'ant made to Lord Say and Seal, Lord Brook, and others, by George Fenwick, esquire, who fled to this country with his family. The old fort stood near the present fort hill, upon an eminence which has since been de- stroyed by the waves ; and the ground immediately behind it was afterward oc- cupied by the fields and habitations of tlie colonists. It was expected from the first that the situation would render the place a great city ; and after the fear of the Indians had subsided, the whole pen- insula, which bears the name of Say- brook point, was laid out with the great- est regularity into fields of an equal size, except such parts as were reserved for the erection of public buildings. Many emigrants were once collected in England, and prepared for a voyage to this place. Some persons of high rank and importance were among them; and it is a well-authenticated fact that Oliver Cromwell had determined to em- bark in the enterprise, and was once on the very eve of quitting England for ever, when some unforeseen occurrence prevented him. The want of a harbor, and the obsta- cles presented to a free navigation by a large sandbar at the mouth of the river, have effectually prevented the expecta- tions of the settlers of Saybrook from being realized ; and no remains of their works can now be discovered, except in the rectangular forms of the fields, and the cellars of some of their dwellings, just beyond the burying-ground, the foundation-stones of which have since been employed in building the neigh- boring fences. One of the largest exca- vations is said to have been the cellar of the old college building. The soldiers were frequently attacked within a short distance of the fort by the Pequods, but they afterward ran a palisade across the isthmus which leads from the mainland. Yale college was placed here for a time. Connecticut River. — The shores of this principal stream of New England pre- sent a continued succession of hilly and picturesque country, with few interrup- tions of level land, from a little above Saybrook as far as Middletown. The rouglmess and rocky nature of the soil prevent the cultivation of many moun- tainous tracts, yet there are farms enough to give a considerable degree of softness to the scenery. The variety of rocky and wooded banks, mingling with little patches of cultivated ground, and the habitations scattered along the river, is very agreeable, and often affords scenes highly picturesque and delightful. Essex. — This is a small village, situ- ated on the ascent and summit of a hand- some elevation, seven miles from Say- brook. During the late war with Great Britain, this place was taken by the en- emy, who came up the river in launches, and, taking the inhabitants by surprise, occupied the town for a few hours. Ea.st Haddam. — The landing-place here is rocky, mountainous, and wild, and a good specimen of a large portion of the town to which it belongs. This region is famous for a kind of earth- quakes and subterranean sounds, which were formerly common for a short dis- tance round. They gave occasion to many superstitious reports, but have ceased within a kw years. They were called Mood us noises, after the Indian name of the place. Large beryls and many other rare minerals are found in the neighborhood. Haddam is built on an eminence fifty or sixty feet high, which appears like the remains of an old bank of the river, descending to a little meadow which is covered with orchards, grazing ground, &c., while a range of commanding hills rise beyond. The Narrows. — Here the river turns abruptly to the east, and flows between two lofty hills, which it has divided at some long past period, before which, there is every reason to believe, the country for a great distance above was covered by a lake. Fort Hill is the last elevated part of the southern bank. It was formerly a little fortress belonging to Sowheag, an Indian chief, whose dominion extended over the present towns of Middletown, Chatham, and Wethersfield. Middletown is beautifully situated on the western bank of the Connecticut 126 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. river, where the water is spread out to a considerable breadth, and disappears so suddenly at the Narrows, that, from many points of view, it has the appear- ance of a small lake, with high, sloping, and cultivated shores. This is a most agreeable residence. The Wesleyan university has a build- ing one hundred and fifty feet long, fifty broad, and four stories high, with rooms for scholars ; a chapel, with recitation- rooms above, both of stone ; and an eat- ing-hall of brick, one hundred and twenty feet long, with a piazza. The quarries of freestone on the op- posite shore, in Chatham, have furnished a valuable building material for some years, and have been worked to a con- siderable extent. The Lead Mine is about two miles below the town, on the south shore of the river, whei'e are several old shafts, which were sunk in the revolutionary war, in a slate rock. The ore is sul- phuret of lead, in veins of quartz, partly crystallized, and affording a few speci- mens of fluate of lime, and other min- erals. The Cobalt Mine is about five miles east, in Chatham, at the foot of Rattle- snake hill. It is not worth working, at the usual price of the metal. Just south of it is a very pretty waterfall, about thirty feet high. Wethersfield. — This place is three miles from Hartford, and has a fine light soil, on an extensive level, probably once the bottom of a lake since drained by the deepening of the river's channel. It is peculiarly favorable to the culture of onions, which are exported in great quantities to various parts of the coun- try, the West Indies, &c. Wethersfield was the second settle- ment made by white men in Connec- ticut. In 1635, three or four men came to this place and spent the winter. The Contiecticut Statcprison. — The situation of this institution is healthy, retired, and convenient to the water and the great road. It was completed in 1817. What have heretofore been re- garded as the necessary evils of prisons will be found in this pi'ison to be greatly reduced, and in many respects, even with regard to the prisoners, converted into benefits. Here the Auburn system has been established with some few deviations. The whole is under the direction of the superintendent — a man of firmness, judgment, and humanity. The men are brought out to their work at signals given by the bell. They lodge in sol- itary cells, and are not permitted to con- verse together while at work. They take their food in their cells, and when going to and from work or prayers, are obliged to march with the lock step. No blows are allowed to be given by the officers except in self-defence. The smiths' fires are supplied with Lehigh (Pennsylvania) coal for fuel, and part of the heat is conducted away in pipes to warm the apartments. The cells are furnished with comfortable beds and bedclothes, and a bible for each. They are ranged in rows, and the keep- ers can look into them through grated doors ; at the same time the prisoners are not able to converse with each other. The effects of evil communication, so much and so banefully cherished in our old prisons, are thus effectually pre- vented. Neither officers nor convicts are allowed to use ardent spirits. Hartford, one of the capitals of the state, is on Connecticut river, thirty-four miles north of New Haven. It is a place of considerable business. There are the City hotel, coffeehouse and other inns, several fine churches, &c. The Charter Oak. — In the lower part of the town, in the street which runs east from the south church, is the ancient and respectable seat of the Wyllis family, who were among the early settlers of Hartford, and have made a conspicuous figure in the history of the state, as well as of the town, by holding the secretary's office for a long course of time. The principal object of curiosity here, the fine old oak, stands on the street in front. It is said to have been a forest-tree be- fore the land was cleared, yet it appears as firm and vigorous as evei'. In a hole in its trunk was hidden the charter of the colony, when Sir Edmund Andross sent to demand it in 1687 ; and there it I'emained for some years. This inter- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. 127 esting document is still preserved in the office of the secretary of the state. The As)i]7im for the Education of the Deaf and Ditmh, is about a mile west of the town, on Tower hill. It was the earliest institution of the kind in Amer- ica. The principal building is large, or- namented with pilasters, and surrounded by a garden and pleasant grounds. The house of the superintendent is near by, and the whole enjoys a fine situation, with a very commanding prospect and a healthy neighborhood. The number of scholars is about two hundred. Some of them are supported by a fund belonging to the institution, and others by the states of Massachu- setts, New Hampshire, &c. Ten sim- ilar institutions now exist in New York, Philadelphia, Kentucky, &c. The Retreat for the Insane, a little south of the city, makes a handsome ap- pearance, being a stone building one hundred and fifty feet long and fifty feet wide, the wings having three stories, and the main building four. It is capable of containing about fifty patients, and is warmed by flues. The grounds con- nected with the institution include about seventeen acres. A young lady who had been severely afflicted with deep melancholy, but recovered at this insti- tution, wrote the following lines, which were handed to the excellent matron on leaving the place : — "Farewell, Retreat; I will remember thee, For lliou liast been a hidiiif^ ])l;ice to me : Wliei), nil tlie waves of sorrow, liitlier driven, I fbuiui tills refuge to the helpless Lriven. Oh, what ail hour of darkness and despair, When not a ray of hope \vas shin'n',^ there, Rut one continued storm my sky o'ersfiread, And poured its waters on my weary bead! Then did thy gentle form, amid the gloom, Appiuir like Mercy smiling o'er tiie tomb; With tender accents sooth my fears to rest. And smooth the anxious billows in my breast; With gen(>rous feeling, still each want supply — Now seem to sympathize in every sigh. How deiir the hand that wipes the tear away. And kindnes!-, doubly sweet in such a day! Here memory, too, sliaU trace thy love sincere, And oft, in fancy, hear thy footsteps ne;ir. Deep ill my heart shall this remembrance be — The sorrows I have known, thy love to me. And, though divided by Time's Hying hour, Yet may we bow before the Mighty Power Which bids us live and strive to share bis love, That we may meet in brighter worlds above." Nkw London is fifty-four miles east of New Haven, and one hundred and twenty east-northeast of New York. It is situated irregularly, principally at the foot of a hill ficing the east, and wears an appearance of decline ; but some of the houses are handsome, and there are several fine situations near the top. The harbor is one of the most ac- cessible, safe, and commodious, in the United States, lying near the ocean and the sound, almost surrounded by higli land, and having water enough for ships- of-war quite up to the wharves, with a fine sandy bottom near the shores. Port Grinvold, opposite New Lon- don, was garrisoned by a few continen- tal troops in the year 1781, dui'ing the revolution, when Benedict Arnold, after his desertion of the American cause, appeared off the harbor with a British force on the 6th of September ; and land- ing eight hundred men on each point of the harbor, marched up and took Fort Trumbull, and burned the town. Col. Eyre, who commanded the troops on the eastern shore, proceeded toward Fort Griswold, and sending in a flag of truce, demanded a surrender. But, before this time, Colonel Led- yard had entered the fort and garrisoned it with one hundred and twenty men, chiefly militia volunteers from the neigh- borhood. The British troops had ad- vanced under cover of a wood, and in- vested the fort ; but the Americans, after defending themselves for some time, and beating off their enemies once, finally surrendered when resistance would have been entirely useless. The enemy had lost forty-one officers and men, who were buried near the spot ; with Colonel Eyre, the commander, wounded, and Major Montgomery killed. After the surren- der, however, a massacre of the prison- ers took place, which cast the deepest disgrace on the expedition ; seventy of- ficers and men being the victims, most of whom were heads of families. Fort Hill is a commandinar eminence about four miles east from New Lon- don, and derives its name from a Pequod fort which formerly occupied its summit. The road crosses it near the southern limit of the fort, and a small church stands a quarter of a mile above, within the extensive space once enclosed by that palisaded work. It was the great fortress of the terrible Pequod nation, which makes a very conspicuous figure in the early history of the eastern col- onies. They had fought their way from the interior, and seated themselves in the present limits of Groton, vvhei-e the few poor remains of their descendants still are found. On the arrival of the English, they had extended their con- quests a considerable distance up Con- necticut river, and the eastern and west- ern Nehantics were subject to them. In consequence of the murders they had committed, and the attack with which they had threatened the infant settle- ments at Hartford, Windsor, and Weth- ersfield, the inhabitants formed an ex- pedition in the spring of 1637, led by Captain Mason, and attacked their other fort on the Mystic, burning it, and kill- ing about six hundred persons ; after which the natives fled from their coun- try, and having suffered another terrible slaughter in the swamp at Fairfield, were reduced to slavery, and ceased from that time to be an object of terror. This hill commands an extensive and delightful view, being almost entirely clear of obstructions, and superior in height to the neighboring hills. A con- siderable extent of Long island and the sound are overlooked from the summit, with various islands, bays, and points, on the Connecticut coast. At the time of the burning of Mystic fort, it was occupied by the chief sachem, Sassacus, who hastened to the relief of his sub- jects, but ai-rived too late to render them any assistance. On his return here, he burned the wigwams and palisades, and immediately fled for refuge to the Mohawks, by whom he was beheaded. Stonington. — This is a small but busy town on the coast, long engaged in whaling and sealing. Steamboats run daily hence to New York. The Providence and Stonington Rail- road, forty-seven miles, leaves the shore of Long Island sound, at the steamboat wharf in Stonington ; passes through the town ; crosses Pawcatuck river into Rhode Island ; up Charles River valley to Sherman's pond. South Kingston ; north to East Greenwich ; and across a steam ferry to Providence, to meet the Boston and Providence railroad. It was finished in 1837, and cost two millions of dollars. Summit, three hundred and two feet ; maximum gi'ade, thirty-three feet ; four- teen miles nearly level ; minimum rad- ius, one thousand six hundi'ed and thir- ty-seven feet, in one spot four hundred and eighty. On descending the hill which leads into Stonhigton, Porter's rock, thirty or forty feet high, is seen a little off" the road on the right hand. Under the shel- ter of it, it is said. Captain Mason en- camped with his little army on the night of May 26, 1637 (old style), a few hours before his successful attack on the sec- ond Pequod foit, which was on the top of a> hill about two miles south of this place. The Mohegan Tribe of Indians. — The Pequods lived near New Lon- don, and the Mohjegans in and around Norwich. Uncas, the sachem of Mohegan, was believed to be of Pequod descent, but in a state of successful revolt at the time the English became acquainted with him. His chief residence was near Trading cove, now the centre of the Indian I'eservation ; but the burying- ground of the royal family was near Nor- wich landing. He had conquered the country as far north as about the present Massachusetts line, but became an early friend of the whites, and rendered them important services, particularly in war, as well as his successors, the later Mo- hegan chiefs. Before this part of the state was set- tled, Uncas was once so closely besieged by his enemies the Pequods, that he suffered extremely from a scarcity of provisions, and was relieved only by the care of a man named Leffingwell, who was despatched from Connecticut with a boat loaded with provisions. In grat- itude, Uncas gave him a large part of the present town of Norwich for this important service. There is a rock still pointed out on the shore, called Uncas's chair, where the sachem is said to have sat watching the arrival of his friends. The poor remains of this tribe reside on the lands secured to them by the state CJQ ft 55 o D- 130 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. government, and live in all the ignor- ance, idleness, and thriftlessncss, com- mon to the Indians in this part of the countiy — melancholy testimonies of the deoradation to which the most active human minds may sink when every cus- tomary impulse to exertion has been stiHed, and no new incitement extended. Norwich is in New London county, at the head of naviaratioii on the Tliamcs. It is eighty miles southwest of Boston, and has two villafjes, of which Chelsea landing is the principal. The city is remarkable for its singular situation, which is peculiarly beautiful and roman- tic — most of the buildings being on the declivity of a hill, and tiie streets rising one above another, ornamented with handsome clnu'ches, a towidiiill, an acad- emy, and many elegant dwellinghouses. It is equally remarkable for its appear- ance of business, which is much favored by the numerous manufactories in the neighboring country. In the rear of the hill, about a mile north, is a beautiful plain, on whicli are laid out several hand- some streets, sliaded with ancient trees, which render it a very pleasant place. On the way thither is seen the cove, at the upper end of which are the falls of Vantic, a stream which pours over a ledge of granite about forty feet high, and supplies several manufactories with water. Tiie place is liighly ])icturesque. A rock, seventy or eiglity feet in height, overhangs the sti'eam, whence a number of Narraganset Indians, pursued by the Mohegans, preci])itated themselves. The Bur ying-Ground of the Uncases. — This is on the elevated bank north of the cove. There are stones marking the graves of numerous members of the royal family of the Mohegans, and a few of them bear English inscriptions. The family is now extinct. Uncas, the old friend of the pilgrims, is buried here. He and his nation were the only steady allies they ever found among the Indians, firm and powerful enough to render them very essential service. He was a man of extraordinary talent, and withal extremely politic ; but he refused to join the Indians against the English, and died a friend of the white men. The Bridge. — The accompanying en- graving represents thehigli bridge across the Thames, just below the falls. The rocks are high and precipitous, and the violence and roaring of the stream, es- pecially at high floods, strike the trav- eller with awe and fear. The stream here makes a rapid descent down a rough and rocky channel, over which the passenger seems hanging in the air, and about to be borne away by the im- petuous and irresistible current. A short distance below, the bed of the river be- comes level, and soon the water spreads over a wide surface, forming a broad and beautiful cove, which looks like a small, resplendent lake, with varied and pleasing scenery displayed along its margin. Tlie Worcester and Norwich. Railroad, fifty-eight and a half miles long, passes up the valley of the Quinnebaug, near Jewett's city, and many manufactories, through Westfield, Pomfret, Oxford, &c., to Worcester, where it meets the rail- I'oads to Boston and to Springfield. It was opened in 1840; cost one million; the maxium grade, twenty feet. Sache?n\s Field, one mile and a half from Norwich, is a small elevated plain, on which a battle was fought, in 1643, between about nine hundred Narragan- sets, inhabiting Rhode Island, and five or six hundred Mohegans. The sachem of the former, Miantonimo, intending to chastise Uncas for his adherence to the English, secretly advanced into his coun- try with an army. Uncas, aware of his approach, met him on this plain, where both parties halted ; he then resorted to this stratagem : stepping forward, he challenofed Miantonimo to decide the quarrel single-handed. This, as he ex- pected was refused ; and while his ene- mies were unprepared, he gave a signal by falling dawn, when his men set up a yell, discharged their arrows, and rushed forward. The Narragansets fled, and many were killed. Uncas himself cap- tured Miantonimo, who was too haughty to ask for quarter or speak a word ; he was taken to Hartford, tried, and given to Uncas for execution ; he was brought back, and, while marching across the field, tomahawked near the road. L DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT. 131 First Govfriior of Coniiocticat John WiNTHROp, first Govkrnok of CoNNKCTicniT. — This (listina^uislied gen- tleman, for many years tlie governor of Connecticut, was the eldest son of John Winthrop, the first governor of Massa- chusetls, and founder Of the city of Bos- ton — that famous pattern of piety and justice, as he is called in the early chronicles of New England — who emi- grated to America in 1G30, and bi-oughl with him the confidence and respect of the government he had left, and the most exalted and upright faculty for the duties he came to assume. Graham, adopting the thought of a classic histo- rian, says of him that he not only per- formed actions wi^rthy to be written, but produced writings worthy to be read. His son John — the subject of this brief memoir — was scarcely less distinguished. He was the heir of all liis father's talent, prudence, and virtues, with a superior share of human learn- ing — much addicted to philosophical study, and especially to physical science. He was one of the early patrons of the London Royal Society. Sir Hans Sloane, and three other members of that society, some fifty years afterward, in commending the grandson of this gen- tleman to the notice of their associates, bear honorable testimony to the good repute in which the ancestor was held. They speak of the learned John Win- throp as "one of the first members of this society, and who in conjunction with others did greatly contribute to the obtaining of our charter ; to whom the i 133 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF CONNECTICUT Royal Society in its early days was not only indebted for various ingenious com- munications, but their museum still con- tains many testimonies of his generosity, especially of things relating to the nat- ural history of New England." John Winthrop was elected govern- or of Connecticut for several years, in which station his many valuable quali- ties as a gentleman, a philosopher, and a public ruler, procured him the univer- sal respect of the people under his gov- ernment; and his unwearied attention to the public business and great under- standing in the art of government, were of unspeakable advantage to them. He was twice married, his second wife l>oing the daughter of the cele- brated Hugh Peters. By this marriage he had several children, two of whom were sons. The elder, Fitz-John, fol- lowed in the footsteps of his fathei- — was elected governor of Connecticut, and held that post for nine years, com- mencing in 169S, and continuing till the dav of his death. Thus father, son, and grandson, died in the highest office to which the affections of the people could exalt them. The younger son was a member of the Massachusetts council, under the new charter granted by Wil- liam and Mary, and afterward chief jus- tice of the superior court of that state. His name was Wait Still, a compound of two family names — the middle name beinsf derived from the intcrmarriafre of Adam, his great-grandfather, with the family of Still. Wait Still Winthrop, the chief-justice, appears to have left but two children, of whom John, the oidy son resembled his grandfather in an ardent devotion to science, and like him became a dis- tinguished member of the Royal So- ciety ; his introduction to that body be- ing greatly facilitated by the respect in which the memory of his ancestor was yet held. Attracted by the love of his favorite studies, and his attachment to the society of learned men, ho removed to England, and died in 1747. He had seven children, of whom two were sons, John Still and Basil. On the 4th of Sept., 1750, the former married Jane Borland, of Boston, whose daughter Ann married the late David Sears, Esq.,* of that place. The name of Winthrop shall be re- membered so lono: as nations exist. It will rank with Newton, Boyle, and Locke, and those philanthropists of every age, who ai"e an ornament to human nature, and whose lives have been devoted to the cultivation of the moral graces, and the advancement of social and religious hap- piness ; enlarging the circle of the human mind, and adcu'ningthe principles of phi- losophy with the precepts of piety. Their fame is identified with the progress of knowledge and the diffusion of virtue. The history of such men sheds a bright and undyinglustre upon their country, and will call forth the grateful recollections of unborn generations, so long as truth shall triumph over error, and the influence of Christianity be felt in removing vice and superstition from the hearts of men. * Of this gentlenian a note will hardly allow ue the proper space to speak of his character and vir- tues. He was born on the 12th of August, 1752. He renioved from Chatham to Boston in 1770, and visited England in 1774. He became acquainted with Dr. Franklin in London, and took letters to his friends in France and Holland. He remained on the continent nearly two years, and with difficulty nmde his way back to Boston. In various modes his%r- vices were useful to his country. During the presi- dency of the elder Adams he was one of a commit- tee of the citizens of Boston for building a frigate (the Boston), towards which he subscribed three thousand dollars, and presenting it to government. He was largely interested in the India and China trade, and added much to his fortune. He was dis- tinguished as an intelligent and able financier — a di- rector in the first " bank of the United States," from its commencement to its termination — often a ref- eree in intricate cases of mercantile equity ; and his whole career was marked by the most incorrupt- tible integrity, which never for tlie sake of a paltry advantage violated that punctilious delicacy which is indispensable to the character of a gentleman. " An easy mien, engaging in address. Looks which at once each winning gi-aee expreea, A Ufe where love and truth were ever joined, A nature ever good and ever kind, A wisdom solid and a judgment clear. The smile indulgent, and a soul sincere." Mr. Sears was the proprietor of a large estate in Waldo countj'. in Maine, the .settlers and teuantrj- of which honored and revered him. and as they became proprietors of tlie soil testified their gratitude for ins patriarchal treatment by naming tlieir towns in his honor. He was generous and charitable — the founder of the widows' fund in Trinity church — and a contributor to numerous charities. He died in front of his bouse in Beacon-street, struck instantly dead by a stroke of apoplexy, aehe was getting into his carriage to make an afternoon visit, on the 19tb of October, 1816. " By this affecting event, this town [Boston) has lost an eminent merchant and excellent f itiren ; an only child, an affectionate parent; tliis church [Trinity], a distinguished benefactor; society at large, a well bred and hospitable gentleman." DKHCHIPTION OF THE STATE OF RHODE ISLAND. 133 Tnip state, the smallest in the Union, is 1)onnfled on the north and e;ist by Massachusetts, south by the Atlantic ocean, and west by ConTiecticiit. It is about forty- nine miles lon(j and twenty-nine wide, and contains one thousand three hundred and sixty square miles, of which one hundred and thirty are embraced in Narragan- set bay. The population in 1840 was 108,830. The northern portion of the state is hilly, and that near the coast is low and level, but healthy, being tempered by the Seabreeze. There are several islamds in and near Narraganset bay, the principal of which, Rhode Island (called after the isle of Rhodes in the Mediterranean), has given name to the state. There are several rivei's of great value for manufacturing, which is carried on in various branches, but chiefly in cotton, to the great benefit of the state. The principal rivers are as follows : Pawtucket, Providence, Wood, Pawtuxet, and Pawcatuck ; and several manufacturing villages, of considerable size, are built on their banks. The commerce of the state has long been considerable; but of late years it has been transferred from Newport to Providence, where it now centres. Un- hap{)ily the slave-trade was formerly carried on extensively from Rhode Island; but that inhuman traffic has ceased. Rhcjde Island presents several strong contrasts, when viewed in different aspects. Although the smallest state in the Union, and containing but a small number of inhabitants, yet it has a very large proportion of persons engaged in 134 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF RHODE ISLAND. manufactures, and was the first, in which the inanfacture of cotton was effVcted by machinery. Although the first of the colonies in which general reliijious tol- eration, or rather equality, was estab- lisheil. contrary to the general impres- sion, that system was allowed to exist but two years; for Roman catholics were then denied the liberty allowed to others. The history of this state is interest- ing for important events which occurred within its territory at difierent epochs. It was the scene of some of the first and the latest events of the eventful war of King Philip, or Metaconi, who was a native of its soil, and fell at the foot o( Mount Hope. The Narragansets, one of the most powerful Indian tribes in New England, were reduced by a war carried on in this territory. This tribe is now reduced to three or four hundred, composing about fitty fam- ilies, who reside on the Indian lands. Individuals of the tribe were lately in possession of three or four thousand acres of land, about one third of which was cultivated. The trib(> own twenty or thirty acres of wot^lland, seventy acres of swamp, and nineteen acres on Short Neck ; they have a church, with a reg- ular baptist clergyman (an Indian) ; and a schoolhouse. in which school is kept in winter by the Indians, and in sum- mer by the missitmaty society : it con- sists of forty or fifty scholars. In the revolution, Newport was taken and occupied by the British forces until relieved by a French tleet, cooperating with the American army. The following extract is from a letter written by a distiniiuished historian : — " Rhode Island was foremost in the following events : — ''Mai/ 17, 1744. The delegates from the town of Providence were instructed to prevail on the assembly to use their influence with the other colonies to pnv mote the convening of a continental con- gress — a few days earlier than the action of any other public body on the subject. " June 1.5, 1774. The assembly chose delegates to the coniiress two davs be- fore Massachusetts, which I believe has hitherto been considered the first to elect delegates. " Auf^uxt, 1775. The assembly recom- mended to the congress to build and equip a continental navy ; the first rec- ommendation of this sort by any public body. " Jf(n/, 1776. Act of abjuration on in- dependence was passed ; the only step of this description, as far as I know, taken by any assembly, or colonial con- vention, before the declaration of con- gress. The resolves of Mecklenburg county, in North Carolina, were of the s;ime tenor, but the meeting consisted of delegates from one county only, and these seem not to have been chosen upon the usual principles of representation. " There are passages in the colonial history of Rhode Islajid most honorable to the patriotic spirit of the people. The assembly petitioned against the famous ' sugar act' of 1773. " The petition was rejected by par- liament. A curious debate on the sub- ject nny be seen in Hassard's l^arlia- mentary History, vol. viii., p. 12G1." Sfdfisfics. — According to the census of 1840, the population of the state was 10S,S30. Of these there were: whj^ males, 51,362; females, 54,225: free colored males, 1,S25; females, 1,413; slaves (superannuated and suj)ported by their masters, and therefore excepted by the law of emancipation), 5. Persons employed in commerce, 1,340 ; in agri- culture, 16,000; in manufacture and trade, 21.000. Money-value of agricultural industry, 83.745,800, or 834 per head. The imports were S294.534 ; exports, 81 0.1 86.261. Exports of domestic prod- ucts. 8203,006 : foreign, 83,983. Ordinary revenue, $52,000. Nr.wpoRT. — This place possesses one of the best harbors in the United States. The entrance is guarded by Fort Adams, and the scenerv about it is asjreeable. Forf Adofnii, on Brenton's point, em- braces an extent of one hundred and thirty acres. A ransfe of jjuns lines the shore towai'd the west, and the case- mates, &:c., are very strong. Newport extends about a mile along the shoi'e, but presents the aspect of decay, as the commerce has been re- moved to Providence. The situation. 25 •a o 136 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF RHODE ISLAND. liowever, has many advantages, and this, \vitl\ the cheapness of rent, will prob- ably render it the temporary abode of many strangers during the warm season. The houses are thickly clustered about the margin of the town, but make rather a gloomy appearance on account of tlie want of repair, the place having expe- rienced a gradual declension caused by the success of Providence, thirty miles further up. The beach behind the town, like the whole circuit of the city on the land side, was defended by a line of troops, batteries, &:c., during the possession of it by the English in the revolutionary war ; and the opposite high grounds were occupied by the American army, whose head(|uarters were on Taumony hill, about a mile and a half from the town — an elevation which affords an ex- tensive view on eveiy side. General Prescott was taken here during the war by a bold party of men under Colonel Barton, who landed secretly from a boat in the night, went to the British head- quarters, and conveyed their captive away, before the land or naval forces, then in the harbor, could prevent them. The place was blockaded by the British fleet. During the possession of the place by the enemy, the trees were cut down for fuel ; and although the soil is admirably calculated for the growth of fruit-trees, and was before that period quite covered with the finest orchards, it is now so divested of trees of every description, as to appear remarkably naked and mo- notonous for an American scene. The fertility of the ground, and the excel- lence of the crops, as well as the neat- ness and precision with which the fields are cultivated and regularly divided by fine stone walls, present, however, a pic- ture of agricultural beauty rarely paral- leled in the United States. The island, fourteen miles lorn; and not three miles wide, contained in 1S27 more than thirty thousand sheep. Moufit Hope, famous as the ancient royal residence of the Narraganset In- dians, and particularly as the abode of King Philip, and the scene of his death, is seen from a few miles beyond New- j port, toward the northwest. It rises iu ' Warren, on the shore of an arm of the ; bay. Prudence island is about five miles in length, and presents the same fertile soil and gently-swelling surface as that of Rhode Island. The inhabitants are few, as are those of Patience and Hope, iislands of a much smaller size. Des- pair is a cluster of rocks on the loft, near the island of Hope, the north end of I which is twenty miles from Providence. ' Coal Mifn'. — An extensive mine of anthracite or incombustible coal was i opened a few years since near the end ' of the island, in Portsmouth, about two miles from Bristol ferry ; it was not ex- tensivelv used, and the work was soon abandoned. Provuikxce is the second city in New England, both in population, wealth, and beauty. It is beautifully as well as ad- vantageously situated at the head of navi- gation, on the river Providence, i The town was settled in the year 1636 I by Roger Williams, who left the old colonies in consequence of a disagree- ment in religious doctrines. He built his house on the shore, near the present episcopal church. Many of the society of quakers, or friends, afterward joined I him, whose descendants form a lart;e i share of the population of the state. Broirn Unirvrslti/, the principal in- stitution of learning in the state, is built on the summit of a hiirh hill, decorated with some of the finest houses in this part of the country, dispersed among spacious gardens, and mingling the de- lights of the country with the splendor of a city. It was founded in 1764; has about one hundred and fifty students ; and its library contains twenty-five thou- sand volumes. The academy, near the college, is a large institut.on, and was established by I the friends, or quakers. A man in borijig for water, a few years ago, at the end of a wharf, many yards distant from the original land, bored through a stream of mud; then through a bog meadow, containing good peat ; then through a sand and quartz gravel. At this point, water impregnated with copperas and arsenic broke forth ; but, ! determining to proceed further, he next struck a vineyard and drew up vines, grapes, grape-seeds, leaves, acorns, ha- zelnuts, pinenuts, and the seeds of un- know^n fruits, together with pure water. This was thirty-five feet below the bed of the river. The Boston and Providence Railroad, forty-one miles in length, begins at India wharf, in Providence, near the steaml)oat landing, and, passing through the town, leads through Foxboro', Walpole, Ded- ham, Roxbury, and other towns. It was opened in 1835, and cost nearly two millions of dollars ; the curvatures are gentle ; least radius, five thousand seven hundred and thirty feet ; highest grade, thirty-seven and a half feet; summit in Shai'on, two hundred and fifty-six feet above tide. There is a viaduct of gran- ite in Canton, seven hundred feet long, and above sixty feet high, over Nepon- set valley. There are many embank- ments and excavations in rock. Blackstone Canal. — This canal, which reaches from Providence to Worcester, Massachusetts, runs along the course of the Blackstone river for several miles. It is forty-five miles long, eighteen feet wide at the bottom, and thirty-four feet at the surface. There are forty-eight locks, all built of stone, which overcome a rise and fall of four hundred and fifty feet. The size of the locks is eighty- two feet in length, and ten in breadth ; and the cost of the whole work was about half a million of dollars. The water is chiefly derived from Blackstone river, but there are large ponds at different parts of the route which can be drawn upon at any time. The whole work was completed about 1828. Pawtucket is one of the largest man- ufacturing places in this part of the coun- try. The banks of the river are varied and somewhat romantic ; while the fall, wliich is under the bridge, furnishes a most valuable watei'-power. Cotton is principally manufactured here, though there is machinery devoted to other pur- poses. The village is divided by the Blackstone or Pawtucket river. The residents of the left bank call it " Paw- tucket, Massachusetts" — those of the I'ightbank, " Pawtucket, Rhode Island." The population is about six thousand. There is quite a number of handsome edifices for public worship, banks, tav- erns, &c. There are three distinct falls, on which manufactories have been erect- ed. The upper or Valley falls are about a mile from the main part of the village. Here there are five large mills. About half a mile lower down are the Central falls. Here are four large factories. Early History of Cotton Manufactures in America. — As Rhode Island was the state into which the manufacture of cot- ton by machinery was first introduced, the following brief sketch of its history may be appropriately introduced here. Looking back to the incipient state of our manufactures, we can not but be impressed with absolute astonishment I at the rapid strides they have made toward perfection. In 1727, the only spinning-machine in the whole extent of our country was one spinning-jenny, with twenty-eight spindles, worked by hand. At the present time, millions of capital are employed in spinning and weaving, every sloping stream is con- verted into a mill seat ; and by the in- dustry of our own hands, with the aid of labor-saving machinery, we manufac- ture not only what is necessary for our own consumption, but also for exporta- tion. We copy from a Providence pa- per the following facts in the early his- tory of cotton-spinning in the state, by Mr.William Anthony, of Coventry; they can not be uninteresting to our readers : " In 1786, Daniel Anthony, Andrew Dexter, and Lewis Peck, of Providence, formed a copartnership for the manufac- turing of what was then emphatically c^\QiS.liomcsjpun cloth. They commenced spinning by, hand, and manufactui'ed jane from linen-warp with cotton-filling. About that time machinery was imported from England by Major Orr, of Bridge- water, Massachusetts ; and this company sent Mr. Anthony to Brilgewater for the purpose of obtaining a draft of the ma- chinery, if practicable. The machinery was not in operation, nor was that the intention of Major Orr ; he kept it mere- ly for the purpose of being inspected by the curious, and others willing to hazard the experiment of establishing a manu- factory. From a draft of the machinery DESCRIPTION OF THR STATE OF KHODE ISLAND. 139 a jenny was constructed. The spindles (twenty-eight in number) and brassvvork were made by Daniel Jackson, of this town, an ingenious coppersmith. This jenny, probably the first ever put in motion in the United States, was placed in the chambers of the markethouse in Providence, and there worked by hand. "Joshua Lindley, about that period, built a carding-machine from Major Orr's pattern. It was something sim- ilar to those used at the present day for carding of wool, the cotton being taken off the machine in rolls and roped by hand. The company caused to be built from Major Orr's pattern a spin- ning-frame, somewhat similar to our water-frames, but very imperfect. It consisted of eight heads of four spindles each, and was carried by a crank turned by hand. The first head was made by John Baily,avery ingenious clockranker of Perabi'oke, Massachusetts ; and the other seven, with the brasswork and spindles, by our townsman, Daniel .lack- son. The lad who then turned the wheel has ever since devoted his attention to the manufacturing of cotton, and it af- fords us pleasure at this time to number him among the wealthy and most respec- table portion of our community. " In 1788, Joseph Alexander and Jas. M'Kerris, from Scotland, came to Provi- dence, and understanding the use of the flyshuttle, they undertook to weave cor- deroy ; a loom was built, agreeably to the direction of Mr. Alexander, and placed in the chambers of the markethouse ; it used the flyshuttle, which was probably the first ever introduced into this coun- try. The corderoy was wove with linen warp and cotton filling ; but the manu- facture of that description of cloth was abandoned, in consequence of no person being found who could cut the corderoy, and raise the pile which formed the ribs and gave it the finish. " The spinning-frame, after being used some time at Providence, was sent to Pawtucket, and there attached to a wheel and propelled by water-power. This machine was very imperfect ; all the card- ing and roping was done by hand. It was used a short time and then sold to Moses Brown, esquire. I " Manufacturing was in this infant and imperfect state when Samuel Slater, es- quire, arrived from England. He was I a manufacturer, and could buth liuiul I and use machinery. The old machinery j was all thrown aside, and that l»uilt j under the dire(;tion of Mr. Slater sub- j stituted in its place. j " But few had then sufficient faith in ! the experiment to hazard theii- caj^ital ' in so doubtful an enterprise as the man- ufacture of cotton. The manuf ictnrers ' at that season had everything to con- j tend against. By the policy of England, I the exportation of machinery was pio- I hibited. Our artisans, like our maiuifac- turers, were in their infancy ; our ii-on, steel, and brass woi'kers were few, and j they of course entirely unacquainted with j any kind of millwork, for we find that j the head to the fii-st spinning-frame was made by a clocl:maker. There also ex- isted a prejudice against manufacturing, I both at home and abroad. Every ai'gu- ment which ingenuity could devise was urged against the measure. It was rep- resented as demoralizing to s(jciety, as repugnant to republican principles, as ruinous to those engaged in it, and to the very liberties of the country. We were then a commercial people, and the commercial part of our community viewed with no little jealousy the estal)- lishment of manufactures. England, and Englishmen in this country, opjiosed it, knowing that our real advantages were so great, that, if once established, we would become a powerful and success- ful rival. But arguments, and remon- strances, and opposition of every kind, proved unavailing. The enterjirise nf a few individuals overcame every ob- stacle, and within forty years from the establishment of a single hand spinning- fi-ame, with no great assistance from' government, we find our manufactures in their present flourishing and enviable situation. We can not dismiss the sub- I ject without expressing a feeling of ] exultation, that our town was the first in I the country to establish and patronize ! this invaluable branch of national in- ' dustry, and our markethouse the reposi- tory of the first spinning-frame ever set I in motion in the United States." 140 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF RHODE ISLAND. Block Island. — This most southern part of the state is a lone and desolate little island, lying far distant from the mainland, with but an irregular and pre- cai'ious connexion with any other part of the country. No class of citizens of the United States — says a writer — are less under- stood in Rhode Island, than the inhab- itants of Block island. Shut out from the world by the barrier of the ocean, all communication cut off except when the waters are tranquil enough to per- mit their boats to float upon their bosom, this island appears to be a little world by itself, apart from everything but the white-crested billow, and the dense blue sea-fog. The island lies high in the water, on an average ten feet higher than Moutaug point, which is the nearest land. It is nearly destitute of a harbor, even for its fishing-smacks, as a north- west wind sweeps down Long Island sound on the one hand, and a south wind diives in from the Atlantic on the other, rendering insecure any position that might be taken around her fated land. Man)'' is the fine ship that has laid her bones upon the rocks that stud the ex- treme points of this no-man's-land, and many more have but just escaped a sim- ilar fate ; and scarce a mariner comes in view of it that does not call to mind some shipmate who made his last splice in that neighborhood, and died within view of his destined haven. Block island is a beacon of joy to thousands who come in from the " sheep-pasture," as the Yankees term the Atlantic, and who from a foreign land seek that of their nativity ; it is the point whence they take their departure, and the first land they make on their return, and for that rea- son is greeted by the returning seaman as the first glimpse of his much-loved home. But when they make it a " lee- shore," with a stiff" breeze, it is more an object of terror than anything else, for ten to one are the chances of escape from destruction. But from the island we turn to that sino-ular race who inhabit it. A Block- islander has been the same, without a shadow of change, since his island was first inhabited. One would know him by his look alone — his weather-beaten face, and an eye that, to all appearance, has been bleached while penetrating the fojj that hangs above and around the island like a canopy. One would know him by his form : built for strength rather than for beauty, and that natural strength increased by constant hardships and exposure to water and to sun, the frame is spread to a degree that could not fail to be ever known after having been known at all. But, most of all, he would be known by his dress. Having seen the costume of one Block-islander, you have seen them all — it is a curious mixture of the New England farmer and the seaman. There is the homespun pepper-and-salt, or black broadcloth, and upon its surface a huge patch of Russia duck ; the tarpaulin hat which marks the seaman, and the cotton bandanna hand- kerchief that tells of him from the Green mountains ; but most of all have we looked at what covers his legs from one extremity to the other, and are denom- inated boots : these are known wherever they are seen — from one extremity of the continent to the other; they could have been modelled at no other place, and an attempt to imitate them would be as fruitless as unprofitable; water could not penetrate, and fire could hard- ly consume, this part of their wardrobe, and they will stand for ages, as monu- ments of the taste of the people who invented them. They are worn by all classes, from young to old. The females of Block island, too, can face the gale, and defy rains, or snows, or freezing winters. They are almost as hardy as their husbands, and not un- frequently venture so far upon the sea that the sail of their clippei'-boats are seen only as specks on the horizon. j Rhode Island, small as it is, has been ' as fruitful in eminent men as any other i state in the Union, however large. As ! early as 1723, it was the residence of the j celebrated divine and philosopher. Dean j Berkley, afterward bishop of Cloyne. It is said that he wrote his Minute Philosopher while there. The first anatomical and surgical lec- tures ever delivered in America were given at Newport, about the year 1760, DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF RHODE ISLAND. 141 by Dr. "William Hunter. A year or two after, lectures on electricity, with the Franklinian experiments, wei'e given by Solomon Southwick, the father of the gentleman of the same name in Albany. From about 1756, there was more gen- eral literature in Newport, and through the island, than perhaps any other part of America, which was owing to a very well-selected public library given by Abraham Redwood, esquire, a very op- ulent and generous person belonging to the society of friends. He gave five hundred pounds sterling for the books in London. These were selected with great judgment by the colony agent, and some were added by private donations. President Styles was its librarian be- tween twenty and thirty years. After a British army took possession of the island, this valuable selection of books was despoiled of a great portion of the English classics, histories, voyages, and travels, and whatever came under the head of entertaininir books. The H- brary is still respectable. Among military men, Rhode Island gave to the nation General Green and Commodore Perry. The once very beautiful scenery which embellished the island, and its character for healthful- ness, drew to it every summer numbers of opulent invalids, with not a few men of property, who sought pleasure and figreeable residence. It was the perma- nent residence of many men of inde- pendent fortune, past the meridian of life, from different parts of Europe and the West India islands, and who chose that spot in which to spend their days. This accounts for the large number of tories, or gentlemen who wished for no alteration in government and the habit- ual order of things. Besides very handsome country-seats, that island contained three gardens that merited, in some measure, the name of botanical gardens, having greenhouses and hothouses, with curious foreign plants. Those belonging to Malborne, Redwood, and Bowler, were the most distinguished. The most elegant and costly dwellinghouse in the twelve col- onies was the country-seat of Colonel Malborne, which was accidentally de- stroyed by fire previous to the revolu- tionary war. The beautiful spot now belongs to another family. Before the revolution, Rhode Island with its capital (Newport) was the most agreeable spot on the Atlantic shores. It enjoyed a very considerable com- merce : the most lucrative, although not the most moral, was the trade to Africa. Newport was then, from the causes al- ready mentioned, a lively, genteel, and literaiy town, and Providence was com- paratively small. But after the British took possession of it, the town of Prov- idence rose rapidly on the ruins of the capital. Upward of nine hundred build- ings, of all descriptions, were destroyed by the British, principally for fuel ; and what was equally, if not more, to be la- mented, they also destroyed, through necessity, all the beautiful woods and ornamental trees on that fine island. During these calamities. Providence, Bristol, Warren, and several towns on the Narraganset shore, increased in size and consequence, leaving the island, like an old battered shield, held up against the enemy. If the general government can do anything to recover it to a con- dition in any respect equal to its former consequence, they ought, in gratitude, so to do ; f )r where is the spot in the United States that has suffered so much as Newport on Rhode Island ] While we are disposed to eulogize Rhode Island, there is one thing we have always regretted, and that is its penal code. In point of health and pro- priety, her prisons were far behind those of other states ; and the severity of their punishments far more rigorous than in most of the other colonies and states. Their whipping at the cart's-tail fell but little short of the Russian knot ; and their ear-croppings and brandings long contijmed after other states had me- liorated their punishments for theft and forgery. The following shows the population of the state at different periods : — In 1730, 17,935 In 1800, 69,122 1748, 34,128 1810, 76,931 1774, 59,678 1820, 83,059 1783, 51,809 1830, 97,199 1790, 68,825 1840. 108,830 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 143 NEW YORK. No state in the Union occupies, at the present time, a more prominent position than New York, or, in many points of view, a more interesting. One of the earhest in the history of the colonial settlements, occupying one of the largest territories among the original thirteen states, touching, with its extensive arms, the ocean, and two of the larger lakes, including for a century the most power- ful body of Indians within our borders, and some of the principal paths of for- eign invasion, her scenes of early enter- prises and military operations, often dis- tinguished by the bold and beautiful traits of nature, have been in turn the witnesses of extending civilization, and the triumphs of modern science and art enlisted in her service. Where the Indians, sent out or led on by the French Jesuits in Canada, laid the ambush, or fell upon the defenceless frontier settlement, or where the armies of France and England contended for the possession of American forests, in the course of years the same places witnessed the strife between the colonies and the mother-country ; and, since it ceased, have been enlivened by the passage of steamboats or rail-cars, or afforded sites for flourishing towns and cities. To give more than an imperfect outline of the past and present condition of so large, populous, and important a state, in the few pages allotted to it in a work like this, will be impossible ; and, to avoid the necessity of falling into a mere record of dry statistics, we must confine our attention to some of the leading natural features, the most important epochs in history, works of art, and other points of intei'est. Hudson River. — This stream, as one of the most important channels of commerce in the Union, merit special attention. Its natural advantages have been immensely surpassed by those added by art : for, since the construction of the 144 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. canals, especially the Grand or Erie canal, an extent of territory has been opened, surpassing, a thousand times, that which borders the stream and its branches. The railroads already made increase the amount of navigation and valuable freights annually borne upon the bosom of this noble river; and those proposed and partly completed, promise still greater and incalculable results. Of these, the Hudson and Erie railroad is by far the most important ; and when that shall be in use, it will form a sec- ond line of connexion, in this state, be- tween the east and the west, the river and the lakes. The Hudson rises in the wild, eleva- ted, and almost uninhabited region west of Lake Champlain, and ilows, at first, nearly north, then east, and finally south, till it falls into New York bay, passing through which and the lower bay, its waters mingle with those of the ocean, at Sandy Hook. The latter and princi- pal part of its course is remarkably straigiit, and almost due south. After T'eceivino: several small branches in the upper regions, it is swelled by the Mo- hawk at Waterford ; and soon after reaching Troy, the head of steamboat navigation, passes Albany, where the northern and Erie canals communicate with it, thi'ough a spacious basin. From that place to its mouth, the Hudson is navigated by a number of steamboats, sloops, canal-boats, and vessels of larger size, worthy of the principal commer- cial river of the United States, flowing into the Atlantic. Although it passes through a line of mountains at the High- lands, that are commonly regarded as the Allegany range, it pursues its way with a smooth and unbroken current, causing no interruption to navigation. It has two large expansions below that point, called Haverstraw and Tap- pan bays, after which it proceeds, with a breadth but little increased, till it reaches the city of New York. The tide is evident even at Albany ; but the water is perceptibly affected by the brine of the Atlantic only as high as Polopel's island, at the northern extrem- ity of the Highlands. The numerous and fldftrishing towns upon its banks, with the variety of taste displayed in the country-seats occupying the heights, declivities, and shores, intermingling with the beautiful and sometimes wild scenery with which nature has enrich- ed it, and which is widely and so justly celebrated — all these, combined with the evidences of industi'y and wealth, displayed by the fleets of vessels of dif- ferent kinds continually ploughing its waters, render the Hudson one of the most aeru8al, by language too strictly technical. The last volumes are soon to appear. The following o-eneral views of the regions, climates, and atnmals of the state, we abridge from those rei)orts. New York lies within the temperate zone, in an irregular triangle, with its apev on the Atlantic, and its sides on the western border of New England, the St. Lawrence and Lake Ontario, and the northern boundaries of Penn- svlvunia and New Jersey. Long island f\)rms a sandy spur, extending from the harbor of Ntrvv York, eastward, about land, furrowed by valleys lying north and south, once probably outlets of an inland ocean. The descent westward is sudden, to Lake Erie ; while ten or twelve small lakes in the middle are drained by the Genesee river, and visit- ed by salmon from Lake Ontario. The great lakes have much influence on the climate. Here are found the northern lynx, with the deer-mouse and porcu- pine. Streams flow from this district to the Mississippi, and to the Susque- hannah and Delaware. 2. The Northern District has mount- ains, some five thousand feet in height, with Lake Champlain, one hundred and forty miles long; and is inhabited by several ftir-bearing animals : the sable and beaver, and also by the mouse and the wolverine. It is the southern limit of migration of many of the arctic birds, 'Z^IS'Z fift ..iir-inclu;,;;;?, a, ..e Ca„aaajay,s-p,uce.,,.ouse. swan, ^^^:::!^ S ™tteT.o for- .!« fonn of a„ inverte., I,; and. .hough tv-iive degrees, of north latitude, with more than forty-six thousand square small, it is highly interesting, as it C(Ui- tains many of the animals of the adja- rco™ Jrru,- r, : te7;h;n ;;„. Nc»EngU,„.. .,».«., while o„ .he miles, ii -- — ■-' ., „. ., Poland, Scotland, or Naples and Sicily ; | three times larger than Switzerland, and almost equal to England. It is nearly in the latitude of Italy, the south of France, and the north of Spain; and resembles them in the heats of summer ; but yet the winters are as severe as those of the northern countries ot Eu- rope. The mean length of the winter in ten years was one hundred and sixty- five days, or about five months ; and the mountains, although none of them ex- west it has the Catskill mountains, some of which rise four thousand feet, and are still the habitation of wolves, deer, panthers, and bears. The Erie canal has brought into the Hudson the soft- shelled turtle and the rock bass from the lakes ; as the yellow perch and the mus- kalonge have found their way from Lake Erie to the Mississippi through the Ohio canal. The southern part of this dis- trict teems with inhabitants of the ocean. ' Tt is remarkable that some species of moun.ai..s. al.l.ougl. no.ie 01 "'""' ■''^- ; " . ' ^T^, ,,,„ Hu.is.m .heir na.ural ceeJ .he heigh, o fi™ *.«.andjeet. ™';,,^»;,,; ,,, „,,„, „. chain- the boundaries, are animals, which are found, in the old world, only at great distances from each other; as the Cer- vidK and Mustelidw of the south of Eu- rope, and the Muridae and Vespertihon- idie of the north. , There are four districts, distinguished by geographical peculiarities, and not less by zoological. eral other birds, come to its western borders, but never cross it. At the same time, there are some species which abound in the counties on the eastern side, but are never seen on the western. 4. The Atlantic District, or Long Is- land, runs about one hundred and fifty miles northeasterly, with a mean breadth of ten miles, having low sand hills m I 1 '^/K 'm*'« DMC. bounded on .he uorthen, P-'. ""'y,/" "^ P'^;; , .1 , fl.^ Mnhivvk vallev and is ' three hundred feet high. i He oeai, ^HeBTeleva^a TS::^!^ .able- wo,f, and o„er.have been ex.e.-,u.na.ed : DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP NEW YORK. 149 but the deer remain ; and, although much hunted, are believed to be on the in- crease, since they have begun to be protected by law during the breeding season. This remarkable tongue of land, stretching nearly at right angles from the coast south of it, is the first resting-place offered to many of the birds, on their migrations from the West Indies and other southern regions, after a long flight over the waters of the ocean. It happens also to lie in such a latitude, that it is at once the northern limit of the ti-opical birds, and the south- ern limit of the arctic. In winter the i eider-duck is found on Long island, the little white goose, the cormorant, the awk, and many others from the Arctic ocean ; while in summer are to be seen the turkey-buzzard, the swallow-tailed kite, the fork-tailed fly-catcher from Guiana, &c., &c. Here is also the nat- ural limit of certain species of fish, some from the north, and others from the south. •- "American quadrupeds have attract- ed but little attention," remarks one of the writers of the scientific reports. Dr. Dekay, "until within a short period; and wore then, at first only noticed by foreigners. The few Americans who afterward began to procure specimens, sent most of them abroad, where only they found them appreciated. De Li- ancourt, De Chastellux, and some other mere travellers, did much ; and such sci- entific explorers as Bosc, Kalm, Mi- cheaux, and Pal de Beauvois, have done much more. The Philadelphia Acade- my of Natural History, the Lyceum of New York, and other scientific societies in Boston, New Haven, and Salem, have accomplished much since their forma- tion." The American Journal of Sci- ence and the Arts, established and con- ducted by Prof. Silliman, has also pow- erfully conti-ibuted to the cultivation of zoological study and research, as well as of other branches. Many remains of mammoth and other extinct animals have been found in the state of New York ; and the only entire skeleton of the mastodon ever obtained was dug from the earth near Newburgh, in 1845. Lakes. — New York contains more lakes than any other state in the Union : and, if we cast our eyes upon the map, and observe their number and import- ance, with those larger ones which to- gether form a large proportion of its boundaries, we might be disposed to give it a new but appropriate geograph- ical appellation, and call it " the Lake state." Lake George. — The most picturesque of the American lakes, lies just within the southern limit of the northern mount- ain ranges, and combines the wildness and sublimity of Scotch scenery with the richness and beauty of native American forests, intermingled with occasional marks of progressive cultivation. Lake George, the beautiful sheet of water to which we allude, is twenty miles in length, and about one mile in width ; and is completely shut in by eminences of considerable elevation, which form a succession of bold scenery, as the trav- eller passes over the smooth surface in the steamboat which ploughs its crystal water. French mountain, at the south- ern extremity, looks down upon the ru- ins of Forts George and William Hen- ry, which were erected to repel the in- vasions of the people whose name the mountain bears, in the colonial wars ; and several other peaks rise conspicu- ously below, and, at the Narrows, in the middle of the lake, almost close up the passage, which is still more impeded by numerous little islands of various forms, which seem, from a distance, like a fleet of light-boats, becalmed, on a par- ty of pleasure. The beautiful sheet of water was, in former times, disturbed by scenes of war ; and the remains of military works near its southern extremity, with histor- ical associations connected with different points on its shores, redouble the inter- est of the intelligent traveller who re- sorts to its delightful borders, and glides over its glassy surface. The ruins of the two forts beforementioned, George and William Henry, and which were the scenes of important events, are seen on its southern shore. Lake Champlain. — Lake Champlain, interesting from its historical associa- 150 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. tions, is long and narrow, separates the states of Vermont and New York, and is distiiiguislied for its l)eauty. Its wa- ters are generally quiet, never being wrought into anything more than gentle billows ; and its width, being such that both shores are distinctly visible through its whole lenu'th, gives it somewhat the appearance of a broad river. The cel- ebrated fortresses of Ticonderoga and Crown Point are on its southern por- tion. In its wider parts, picturesque little islands seem to I'est on its bosom ; three of which, lying near together, ol" similar size and shape, are called the " Three Brothers." The " North and South Hero," are two larger islands, which occupy quite a considerable space in the length of the lake. They are inhat)ited by a numer- ous populiition, and have their schools and cliurchcs. About three miles from the Vermont shore, is a small island, in- habited by one family, who, like Sel- kirk, " have none to dispute their right" to their little secluded home. In a passage up the lake, through which ply the splendid steamboats on the grand route to Canada, you lookout upon two states at the same time. On tlie right is Vermont, with its verdant shoi-o ; and in the distance are the "Green mountains." On the left is the north part of New York, looking quite as mountainous, and as much diversified with hills and dales, rich in mines of iron, but still almost covered with for- ests. On botli shores, beautiful villages are frequeiitly seen, stretching down to the water's edge, and adding much life and interest to the landscape. None who pass up this lake, but feel a pecu- liar interest in that part of it, where the memorable " Battle of Plattsburgh" was fought. I'liat part of the lake abounds in de- lightful views, especially where we ap- proach Plattsburgh, and pass over the waters memorable as the scene of the naval victory ot Commodore M'Donough over the British fleet under Commodore Downie. War is to be deprecated in all its forms, and its existence e.xceed- ingly to be deplored, as a sad relic of barbarism ; still, as events of history ! and reality, all feel an equal interest in scenes that were acted here. History. — The histoi'y of this state naturally itself divides into periods, corresponding in general with those most remarkable in that of the older colonies and states ; and under each of these many interesting and instructive events and incidents are recorded, some of which will be alluded to in their ap- propriate places, with that brevity which is made necessary by the nature of this i work. Abundant sources of informa- tion are at hand, for any who wish to pursue any branch of New York histo- ry in detail ; for no state in the Union, perhaps, is better furnished in this re- spect, especially in works of recent publication. Although fewer men of letters were found among the early in- habitants in cokmial times, numerous hist(n-ians, as well as other writers, have devoted their pens to subjects around them ; and within a few years the His- torical Society has made great and very successful exertions to collect and pre- serve records of all kinds, calculated to throw light upon any period of history. The legislature, at their invitation, sent an intelligent agent to Europe, a few years ago, Mr. Brodhead, who brought back an invaluable collection of docu- ments, in different languages, from the archives of Holland, France, and Eng- land, respectively illustrating the peri- ods of Dutch settlement and rule, of English extension and French invasion. [ Future historians will hud here a rich addition to previous annals, and the means of correcting former errors and of illustrating numerous points which rcfjuire elucidation. Indian antiquities have been studied with zeal, and are now prosecuted with new advantages. Under the authority of the legislature, that well-qualified in- vestigator, Henry R. Schoolcraft, was employed in 1846, to take a census of the Indians in the state ; and he collect- ed a mass of the most valuable facts ev- er obtained, relating to any family of the human race, illustr.ating the chan- ges occurring in the transition state, from the savage toward tlie civilized condition. In this survey, as might be 152 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. expected, the influence of Christianity is strongly exhibited, as the gx'and civil- izing agent, and lessons of an impor- tant character are given, w^ell calculated to guide philantlu'opists in their future undertakings in favor of the much-neg- lected, abused, and belied race of red- men. The reader must be referred for in- formation on the history of this state in all its different periods and epochs, to the following authors among many oth- ers : Golden, Smith, Clinton, Campbell, Yates, Moulton, &c. Barber's volume is well adapted to the common reader, abounding in local descriptions and an- ecdotes, illustrated with many engra- vings. We have here merely room to allude to the chief events in the early history of the colony. Henry Hudson, an Englishman in the service of the Dutch East India compa- ny, discovered the Hudson river in 1609, and ascended it about one hundred and sixty miles. It was in consequence of this discovery, that the Dutch laid claim to the territory on both sides of the riv- er, and called it New Netherlands. The position now known as Albany, was, in 1613, named by the few Dutch who discovered it and built a fort there. Fort Orange ; and in the next year, sev- eral trading-houses were erected upon Manhattan island (now New York), to which they gave the name of New Am- sterdam. The English were not well pleased by what they considered the intrusions of the Dutch. They claimed that this pai't of the territory properly belonged to Virginia; and, in the same year. Captain Argal came with a fleet of three ships, and demanded the surrender of the fort. They submitted without re- sistance, because their numbers were very few. But a new governor arrived from Holland, and the Dutch would al- low the authority of the English no longer, and they retained possession until 1664. They built Fort Good Hope on the Connecticut, at Hartford, and another on the Delaware, and then claimed a right to all the extensive re- gions between these two rivers. But the Indians did not let the Dutch remain long in peace. In 1646, a bat- tle was fought at a place called Strick- land's plain ; and the savages were de- feated with great slaughter. The colo- nies of New Haven and Connecticut were at this time disputing vvath the Dutch ; but, in 1650, a treaty was made at Hartford, by which the Dutch gave up their claim to the territory belong- ing to those colonies, except the part which they then occupied. Five years after this the Swedes, who had settled on the west side of the Del- aware river, were attacked and subdued by the Dutch governor, Stuyvesant, with a fleet of seven ships. But ere long, the Dutch were met again by their old enemies the English. In 1664, in con- sequence of the giant which Charles II. had given to his brother, the duke of York and Albany, and which secured to him all the lands owned by the Dutch, a squadron appeared in the harbor of New York, which was commanded by Colonel Nichols. A surrender was im- mediately demanded by the English, who promised to secure the rights of life and property to the inhabitants. The governor wished to make resist- ance, but the inhabitants prevailed upon him to submit. The English thus took possession, and called it New York, in honor of the duke of York ; and not long after Fort Orange was also taken, and named Albany. Nichols now became governor ; and his administration was mild and success- ful. We have not room to notice the suc- cessive governors of the colony, nor the various events which distinguished the successive periods, through the contests between England and other powers, which had more or less influence on this side of the Atlantic. We can only re- fer, in their places, to some leading events in the French and the Revolu- tionary wars, and in that with England of 1812. Albany. — This city presents several superior claims to our attention. In point of history it is the oldest settle- ment by Europeans on the Hudson for, unusual as it is in founding colonies, the mouth of the stream was not occupied a- » a a> g > o p a. 3 154 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. by the Putch until tliey liatl first estab- lished tlieuisclves at this place, one hun- dred and fifty miles and more from the sea. This was the scene of many im- portant councils and treaties with the Indians, especially the Five Nations ; and in the grounds of the old capitol were interred numerous savasfe memo- rials of peace and amity. During the French wars, Albany was often the graud point of rendezvous for the troops required of New England and New York, in military expeditions against Canada. Burgoyne's expedition, in 1777, had the capture of this city as its first object, after gaining possession of Ticonderoga, and it was saved only by the battles of Saratoga. Albany has been the capital of this state ever since its formation ; and here is the point at which concentrate the principal canals and railroads of New York — the uniting link in the chains connecting the com- merce of the lakes with that of the great northern ports, Boston and New York. Albany is well situated to make a striking appearance to a person ap- ]>roachiiig by the river, or viewing it from the opposite, elevated shores of Greenbush. A crowded mass of houses seems to cover the entire declivity, which rises suddenly frojn the level of the shore to the summil, which is crowned by the statehouse with its dome. The broadest and perhaps the principal street (State street), well built, with many large edifices, hotels, stores, and private residences, leads from the base of the hill to the gates of the statehouse, start- ing from the chief avenue of business, Market street, which extends, with sev- eral parallel streets, far up and down the city, north and south. The canal-basin occupies the front of the town for about one half its length, being shut in from the river by the pier, whicli commences at the north, and ter- minates opposite the foot of State street. Here are seen mingling the boats of Lake Champlain, l^ie, and the Ohio canal, with the steamboats sent from New York to tow them to the mouth of the river, where many of them exchange the abundant products of the interior for the various stores brought from our own and foreign coasts. The railroads come in with their share of valuable freights ; and Albany presents, on every hand, abundant and gratifying proofs of the sagacity of those enlight- ened councils, which opened the grand channels of commerce, for the wide and lasting benefit of the state and the coun- try. The Albany FcfnaJe Institute. — This seminary was founded by private sub- scription, and has been a flourishing and useful institution, conferrino' a hiq-h and solid education on thousands of the youths of this city and other places near and distant. The plan, in some impor- tant respects, was new : it being the design to afford, «t the cheapest possible rate, a superior education on females of all ranks in society; and so successful has it proved, that several other institu- tions have been formed in imitation of it, which have in like manner been high- ly useful, particularly the Rutgers Insti- tute in the city of New York. The Alhanij Female Seminary. — This is another institution occupying a com- manding situation on the top of Capi- tol hill, near the statehouse and several other public buildings. It is founded on a plan which does great credit to the state of New York, which has so hon- orably distinguished itself by its liberal provision for the diffusion of education. The central Normal School is also es- tablished in Albany, and is doing impor- tant good by preparing teachers for the common schools. The City-Hall was built in 1832, of white marble from Sing-Sing, quarried and hewn by the prisoners, with a base- ment, and a facade with six Ionic col- umns and a dome covered with gildinsr, the only specimen of the kind in the United States. The circular hall or ro- tunda contains a statue of Hamilton, copied from one by Greenough, which was destroyed in the New York ex- change by the great fire. There are al- so portraits of Clinton and Walter Scott in relief, surrounded by emblems. The State- Hall. —This edifice stands near the city-hall, and is one hundred and thirty-eight by eighty-eight feet. Ift6 nKSCKiniON OK TUK STATK OF NKW VOUK. «t\»l ^sixty fi^•<» feet in hoisiht. Tt is ot" brirk .'»u>l st»>n»*. fttVil witli m;ublo. juul Ct»ntaius tho vUlurs of tho i'oinptri>llor, tivasuivr. at tornoY-jivutM-al. 8iurY«>Yoi^ The i\}f>itt*f is oonstruoltnl of sl»n\«\ HAuJ Otisl ono luntiiivii and twonly thou- san*! iloUnt^. It oontaius thr oh;>inl>oi-^ of tho souato »nvl ti»o i\*pjvsotitativos. in wluv-h a»v fv>UH«l tull-ltMi^th portrait;* of \V;»sh\uv»'ti>n aiul tho sivnvrnoi'^ of Nt>\\ York. riuMv aiv six hanks, «n»l twonty-ttvo ohmvhos of tUtFonMit ilonomi\»aiiot»s. TW }ic»iS!tfJ,itr M.mxum is a vonon»- hh^ tHlifu'o a iwilo north of tho oily, tl»o jx>siilonoo of tho PainHMis of that jiamo. pi^>prioiur8 af oxio af tht» giVvHt otiiaiUnl esiMtos in this stato. whii^h havo boon rt^t«ino*l i»< sovoral oU Putoh tamilios fi\>m past j>vnoratio«s, Tht> ostato om- hraooA vast traots i>f la»ul in ihtftMvnt oo»»ntit>s. hu'i>v portiotis v»f whiv-h ooou- pvovl by touants. at various tvnts. usual- ly small, anil i>rtou iriflinjf. Within a ftjw yoa»-s mvaf ilissatislav-tion has boon Wtoitovl anuMiii tho pooplo, atul, in tS-li'^, Katuls of nu>n. on this and othor n\amn^. arnunl anil ilis-k>-uis at lU^ tianoo. atul oontmittoil sonu'' aols of Yii>- louv'o. OYxMt nnu\lor. IMio n>iUtia woiv oalUnl out. arnvsts wailt\ tuui trials an J intprisonnuMJts at lonji'lh supjMVSStsl tho •• anti-ivnt rii>ts." Tho Indians knvw Albany by tho t\an\t^ of ^vnjj: v^»".iri-/«i-4? Invn appUtnl to Si^hon«vt«dy. thd town at tho uvstovn o\ttvn»ity v^f tho olovaltnl j>ino-banvt\ traot whioh >vas thus alluvUnl tw thort^ tit^xHMi wiUvs across, and still almiv^t uninhabittHl. Tho Outoh oalUsl tho plaoo HoaYx>r\vyok, on ai^ count of tho principal article of tho t»n»\io which thoy hort» carritHl on willi tho na- tivxv<; and at"kor\vai\l Willomstadl, Tho namo Tratvia. or Fvmi (."^ranjjv, \v^»s nov- *r (pxtondisl to tho town, it is atHrmt\l. but contimvl ti> tho sntall t'orl which w»s or^vt^^l by tho Putch ot\ thoir tir*t iv- cupyinjj this rKMul. Tho ptvsont n;uno WT»s cv>ntVrrxM by tho Kuvilish. as has l^J{>vx» Ih»ou tvtttarkod. It is suppivf Hudson. Hardwicko rhryslanco, who was sont tnun his vessel on an oxplorinsj" party, in Septond>or. It>l0. Tradition J says ho l.-uulcd son\ewhero tioar the j ptvsont North Market st«vet. Tho tra- | dinji-honso and fort was built that year or the next ot» the uorthern oxtivnuty of Hoyd's isUuul. a little south o( th« pivsont terry. U was. however, ovor- tlu>>WH and earned away by tho tl»H>d, in tho next season. .\ higher stativMi w;»s then clu^sen. on a hill two miles distant, at a nlaco called ''KithifrAMi^A- i ,V*»." by tho Pntch. and by the Itulians. '* 7u-wywANi-» wotv moutittHl Km* detoju-e, of the sort then known to the Holland<^i^ by tho name. " »titit ^fsttMcktrm,"* or ston«>-pioitM», Kvauso, as is said, they wetv capable of th?vw'.r ' -e stones insteavl of iron shot. Hut. fv>r about tvwnty > - ^ -it^or this ivcupation v>f the spvn, ll\e Putch spent v ot\ly the tradiivjj seasons at Fint iVan\;v, ! ivturninjj- annually to their own counlrv. witl> the pn^lucts of their trade. In U>wO. tho Putch West India con>pany otVeivil largx' tracts of land to any pet^ , sons who \vx'>uld coloniKe the wuntry. I and sijtvat numbers came over Ivtween that time and the ye.sr lo.^.'i. tivni son;c of whvMJt many of the principal tamilios of tho pit>sent day have deriY'tHl their names. WvhhI was us«hI in AlKany in all build ings except the fort until 1647. The towu WHS sx»rrv>«tidtHl by a palisade tor about a i-^Mitury. and the stnct laws iv- spectinjT tnule with the lndia)»s, induv"t\l tunuln^rs of jh^j^ous to rtnuov<» to the SchenectadT Flats, where thev could trade with the native's with greater t'rtn^ dom. The tii-st chnivh-buildiJi^ ertvted w«s at the ivrner of State. Market, mm! Court sttwts. and, at\er Innn*; enlan»ed sevtM'al tinuvs »-?»s taken down in lSOt\ and the stone usisl in buildinsi; the pivs- ' ei\t Sv>uth Patch chuivh. The hous«« of AlKanv »viv built in the stvle of 158 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. Holland, of small bricks, with the gable ends to the street, and troughs under the eaves projecting far over the streets. The Dutch language has not even yet wholly fallen into disuse, in some fami- lies. The city charter was granted in 1686, and extended westward to the dis- tance of a mile ft-om the river, and north- west to the north line of the manor of Rensselaerwyck, being 13-| miles in lengtli. In 1815 the limits were en- larged, by adding the small town of Col- onic. Canals. — The Erie Canal was the first of any considerable extent in the United States, was planned and execu- ted by the influence of Dewitt Clinton and his friends, and must ever be regard- ed as the result of labors creditable to them and the state, the period being one m which much opposition was exci- ted against it, in consequence of the ig- norance of the people of works of that kind. The project of connecting the navicration of the lakes with that of the Hudson, by means of a channel three hundred and sixty-three miles long, al- most every foot of which was to be ex- cavated, and which must be taken across streams and over hills and valleys, ap- peared to many as visionary and ridicu- lous ; but the difficulty of acquiring land and of reconciling: conflicting interests in the choice of routes, conspired to in- crease the discouragement of the under- taking. Had the calculations of the projectors been unfounded, the result would doubtless have discouraged imi- tators : but the Grand canal of New York has long been, and will ever be, a monument of successful enterprise, transcending: in its beneficial effects the most sanguine expectations. The Erie canal was commenced in 1817, and finished in 1825. It extends from the great basin at Albany north- ward, along the right bank of the Hud- son, to the mouth of the Mohawk, and thence I'ising, by nine double locks, to the level of the banks, crosses the Mo- hawk twice by aqueducts and follows the valley of that stream to Rome. Thence it crosses to the Oswego river near Syracuse, whence the Oswego canal leads to Lake Ontario ; and up the val- ' ley of that stream it proceeds to the Genesee at Rochester, and onward to the Mountain Ridge, at Lockport, where it rises by five double locks to the level of Tonawanda creek, a tributary of Ni- agara river, and, a part of the way, by the channel of the former, goes on to Lake Erie at Buffalo. The canal is thei'e about 500 feet high- er than the Albany basin ; 200 of which are attained at Schenectady, nearly 300 at Canajohari*, and 400 at the Long Level, above Little Falls. Beyond that ' are the only two descents on the route, ' and these are but small. Among the principal constructions on I the route, are the grand embankment, near Rochester, 100 feet high and two miles long ; the fine stone aqueducts at Little Falls and Rochester, the former 214 feet long, and the latter stretching across the Genesee, 900 feet, on nine beautiful arches. At Buffalo, is a fine harbor, lined with spacious storehouses, crowded, in the season of navigation, with the numerous steamboats and oth- er vessels employed in the navigation of the lakes. The branch from Syracuse extends through the great salt region ; and there are several other branchesi Tl/e Champlain Canal. — Parting from the Erie canal at the junction, eight miles from Albany, this important work crosses the mouth of the Mohawk, pass- es through Waterford, and along the west bank of the Hudson, at the foot of the hilly range called Behmis's heights, the scene of the battle of Saratoga, crosses it at Miller's Falls, to Fort Ed- ward (in the French wars known as the First Carrying Place), passes on to Fort Ann, or the Second Carrying Place, where it enters Wood Creek, following it to its mouth at "WHiatehall (formerly Skeenesborough), at the southern ex- tremity of Lake Champlain. The ele- vation overcome on this route is 150 feet, from which the descent is about 75 feet toward the noith : the lake being about that height above the river's level at Al- bany. The length of the route is about 60 miles. The Delaware and Hudson Canal. — This canal commences at Rondout, and extends to the Delaware river, having DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 159 been formed for the purpose of brint^ng coal to New York city from some of the Pennsylvania mines. The Delaware and Hudson canal was bejrun in 1825, and finished in three years. It is 108 miles long, and ex- tends from Rondout, 90 miles from New York, to Port Jorvis, on the Delaware, a distance of 59 miles, then 24 miles up its eastern bank, to Lackawana river, and up that stream 25 miles to Hones- dale. In some places great expense has been laid out in blastings. A railroad of 14 miles connects its extremity with Carbondale, Pennsylvania. The canal is from .32 to 36 feet wide, 4 deep, with locks 9 feet by 76, for boats of 25 or 30 tons. Railroads. — A continuous line of railroads now extends fi'om Albany to Buffalo, with branches, from several points, and a connexion with the great Massachusetts railroad to Boston. Hudson and Eric Railroad. — Routes were surveyed several years ago for a railroad fi'om the Hudson to Lake Erie, through the southern line of counties ; and the first section has been completed and in use for several seasons. Difficul- ties and delays, however, have occurred on other parts of the route, partly ari- sing fz'om the conflicting interests of oth- er public works for communication in the regions through which it passes. The work is now proceeding, and when completed the road will be of immense \ benefit. It will open a trade with fer- : tile regions hitherto difficult of access, ! while it will bring to New York a large part of the increasing products of the lake countries, so disproportioned to the capacities of the Erie canal. The New York and Albany or Hud- son River Railroad, is soon to be con- structed along the valley of that river ; and this will form one of the most im- portant means of transport and travel- ling within the limits of the state. It is to pass close along the eastern bank, to Poughkeepsie, and then probably leave it for some distance. The charter re- quires the whole to be everywhere within two miles of the river. It will be nearly straight, and about 150 miles hjng. The Lonq Island Railroad 'extends from Brooklyn to Greenport, from which point steamboats carry passengers across Long Island sound to Stoningtrm in Connecticut, whence a railroad leads to Boston. The New York and New Haven Rail- road is projected, and when made, will afford an uninterrupted line of railroads to Boston, through Connecticut and Massachusetts. The f()llowing were the receipts and expenditures, including interest on debt, of most of the raihoads in the state of New York for 1846. The expenditures are exclusive of new fixtures and con- structions, and the receipts are the ordi- nary earnings only: — Receipts. Expnci'.s. Mohawk road $1 13,857 $()f),i»26 Utica and Schenectady 428,395 107,826 Syracuse and Utica 257,637 124,932 Auburn and Syracuse 119,038 46,164 Auburn and Rochester 290,170 1 10,325 Tonawanda 143,818 89,534 Attica and Buffalo 86,494 33,564 Schenectady and Troy 36,788 31,515 Rensselaer and Sa ratoga .50,534 38,639 Cayusfa and Susf)uehanna. . . . 17,1.57 14,557 New York and Erie 18.5,516 123,173 Saratoga and Schenectady 32,118 26,358 $1,761,525 $886,664 The aggregate length of these roads is about 500 miles, and the amount of capital invested $12,750,500. The net income, therefore, is al)out seven per cent, per annum. Some of the roads have divided eight per cent, during the year. Skminaries op learning and reli- gion. — Ere concluding this brief notice of the public affairs of the state, a few facts may be appropriately added re- specting this important department. Universities and Colleges. — Columbia college, in the city of New York, was founded in 1754; Union college at Schenectady, in 1795 ; Hamilton col lege at Clinton, Oneida county, in 1812, Geneva college at Geneva, in 1824 ; and the New York university in the city of New York, in 1831. The universities and colleges are un- der the inspection of the regents of the university of the state, and have the dis- tribution of the literary fund. 160 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. Theological Soninaries. — Lutheran at Hiirtwick, in 181G; Protestant Epis- copal in New York, 1819 ; IJaptist at Hamilton, 1820; Presbyterian at Au- l)nrn, 1821 ; ITnion at New York, 1834 ; llonian Catholic at Fordham, N. Y. co., about 1810. Medical Colleges. — There are two in the city of New York : viz., the colle^^e of physicians and surgeons, and the New York school of medicine ; and a third at Fairfield, called the college of physicians and surgeons for the western district. Academies are numerous, and the prin- cipal ones are under the direction of the state, and make annual reports of sci- entific t)bservations, &c. Normal Srmi/>ar//. — At Albany is a central school for the instruction of com- mon school teachers. Here also is pub- lished a journal for the benefit of the schools, extensively diffused among teachers and school officers. Common Schools. — On the first of July, 1845, there were in the 59 organ- ized counties in this state, 921 towns and wards, divided into 11,008 school districts, the schoolhouses of which were situated in the town or ward re- ported, of which 8,327 were whole dis- tricts, and 5,348 were parts of joint dis- tricts, composed of territory in adjoin- ing towns. Of these, reports have been received from 8,193 whole, and 5,207 parts of districts, leaving 134 of the for- mer, and 141 of the latter, which have not reported. The number of unincorporated select and private schools returned in 1845, was 1,981, and in 1846, 1,731, thus showing a decrease during the year of 250. The whole number of common and unincorporated select and private schools, was 12,738, averaging nearly 14 to each town and ward. The whole number of children be- tween the ages of 5 and 16 in the state, exclusive of the city of New York, on the 31st of December, 1845, was 625,- 399, being an increase of 4,485 on the previous year. Returns of the children between the ages named are not made to the department by the school officers of New York city. The number of children of all asres. under instruction in the state during some portion of the year, was 742,433, being an increase of 6,388, on 1844. Of these — 4,128 attended school the whole year. 12,()(j1 10 and less than 12 months. 40,951 8 " " " 10 " 90,64/ 6 " « " 8 " I4I,10() 4 " " " 6 " 18(i,.no 2 " " « 4 " 200,626 less than 2 " This statement does not include the 73,851 children in the city of New York taught during some portion of the year. The number of children enfjasred in the common schools in the study and prac- tice of vocal music was 72,811, The average number of pupils in at- tendance at the unincorporated select and private schools in the state, exclu- sive of New York city, was 31,240. From the city there were no returns for 1845. The number returned from there in 1844, was 20,000, while the census returns of July 1, 1845, are only 8,354. In the following table, intended to show the number of children instructed in all our schools, the latter is assumed as the correct number. Whole number of children taught in the coinuion schools some portion of the year 742,433 Whole number of pupils attending the private schools, reported by trus- tees 31,240 Whole n umber of same attending in the city of New York, taken from the census returns 8,354 Whole number of students attending the incorporated academies, not al- lowed by the regents " to be classical scholars or students in the higher branches of English education". . . . 11,692 Whole number attending same, allowed as classical scholars or students. . . . 13,481 807,200 The population of the state, according to the census of 1845, was 2,604,495. From the above table, therefore, is de- duced the I'emarkable statistical fact that of the whole population four of ev- ery thirteen were under instruction, some part of the year, in the elemen- tary and more advanced branches of English education, and in the classical departments of the academies. The compensation paid to male teach- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 161 ers, during the last winter term, aver- ages $14.16 to each, per month; and during the summer term $15.77, exclu- sive of board. The average monthly compensation paid to female teachers during the former, was $7.37, and for the latter, $6.02, also exclusive of board. The receipts and apportionments by the town superintendents during the year 1846, including the sums raised in cities under special laws, were $772,- 578.02, but this does not embrace the contributions by rate-bills. The estimated expenditures for the year 1847, including the sums raised under special laws in cities, and by rate- bills, are stated at $1,290,473.81. The whole amount of the revenue of the common school fund during the past year, including the appropriation from the TJ. S. deposite fund, was $375,287.08. The Common School Fund. — The ag- gregate capital of the school fund is as follows : — Total, Sept. 30, 1846 $2,1.33,942.05 " " " 1845 2,090,632.41 Increase this year 43,309.64 Of the 991,659 acres of land, origin- ally ceded to the school fund by the state, all have been sold but 327,734 acres, valued at $163,800, and classed with the unproductive capital of the fund. The state, including the canal and other stocks, is now a debtor to the capital of this fund nearly $600,000, and this bal- ance is rapidly increasing, under the op- eration of applying this capital to the ordinary purposes of the treasury. The present method of distributing the fund is to divide it among the towns according to the ratio of their popula- tion respectively, as compared with the population of the whole state. The number of volumes in the dis- trict libraries, on the 1st day of Janu- ary, 1846, was about 1,200,000 having increased during the year 57,889 vol- umes. Indian Schools. — During the year, schoolhouses have been erected on the Onondaga and St. Regis reservations, and schools opened for the instruction of Indian children, which are now in successful operation. The whole num- ber of Indian children residing upon the several reservations in the state, on the first day of July, 1845, given in the cen- sus reports, was nine hundred and eigh- ty-four, (984), distributed as follows: on the Oneida reservation, 59 ; Onon- daga, 169 ; Tuscarora, 63 ; Buffalo, 117 ; Cattaraugus, 121; Cayugas, on the Cat- taraugus reservation, 21 ; Allegany, 227 ; Tonawanda, 126; St. Regis, 81. The aggregate of the whole Indian popula- tion upon these reservations, is 3,753 : and the propoition of children, of the above ages, to the whole population, is nearly one to four, or twenty-five per cent, a ratio almost as large as that giv- en by the census for the white popula- tion in the state. Schenectady. — This is one of the oldest towns in the state, and was for a long time important as a frontier posi- tion, nothing but a wilderness being found between it and Canada. For a number of years it has been distinguish- ed as the seat of one of the most flour- ishing literary institutions in the state. Union college, the edifices of which oc- cupy a pleasant and commanding posi- tion, overlooking the extensive meadows of the Mohawk, surrounded by a suc- cession of undulated and hilly country, and enlivened by the Erie canal and the lines of railroads which here meet by various routes from Albany, and pro- ceed on in company, with occasional separations, to Rochester, and finally terminate together at Buffalo. In the year 1769, Schenectady, while a mere village, fifteen miles west of Al- bany, garrisoned by a iew troops, was the victim of the jealousies and conten- tions of those sent for its protection ; for the soldiers having deserted their posts, one of those secret predatory bands of savages, which were long the scourge of our frontier settlements, led on by Frenchmen fi-om Canada, fell upon it in the dead of night, massacred almost every man, woman, and child, and burnt their dwellings. A few fugitives esca- ped, and carried the shocking tale to Albany. The exposed state of the country west of this place was so great, and the number of the people so small compar- j 11 162 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. ed with the extent of unoccupied land, that iuduciMnoiits wove not found to ox- tiMid st'ttlriiiriits fast hoyond tliis point; and I'vcn down to the period of the Ixt'volutioiiaiy war, nearly the whole luiddle and western parts of New York were included in a single county. A thw scattering villages only were then to be seen, at Cooperstown, Johns- town, (Sic, tS:c., usually witli block hou- ses, or other slight means of protection, provided against the aj>prehendod dan- gers of savage parties. The five na- tions of Indians, viz., the Mohawks, Oneidas, Cayugas, Onondagas, and Sen- ecas, who had boon, for the most part, friendly to the Kiiglisli througii the French wars, were, many of them, drawn over to the British interest by John Johnson, one of the sons of Sir William Johnson, who had long exer- cised the most important influence over those savage people. Hy the aid of the celebrated Brandt, a half-blood of doubt- ful character and courage, a series of calamities was brought upon those weak and defenceless settlements, which can not be recounted without exciting the minified feelings of commiseration and horror. But, for those events, as well as for other particulars, relating to the history of that now populous and pros- perous portion of the state, we must re- fer our readers to the works of Mr. Campbell (a descendant of a family of the sufferers), the Life of Colonel Wil- lot by his son, and the Life of Brandt, by ^Ir. Stone. Schenectady Lj/ceum. — This institu- tion (a view of which is given on the previous page) was erected a few years since, to supply a deficiency, long felt, in a city so long and so honorably dis- tiuQ^uished as the seat of a seminarv of thehisfhest class. It is desiirned for the instruction of boys in studies preparato- | ry to college and business ; and enjoys an advantageous and convenient situa- tion. The principal building is of an octagtmal form, of brick stuccoed, in a fanciful Gothic style, with pointed doors | and windows, and surmounted by a stee- ple. In advance of this, and of the line of the yard-fence, are two small buildings belonging to the institution ; and the grounds beyond are shaded with large and fine trees. The upper rooms in the main building are occupi- ed by the Lyceum society, and for sci- entific purposes. Cooperstown. — This pleasant vil- lage, two hundred miles from New York, by way of Catskill, and sixty-six from Albany, enjoys a beautiful situa- tion on Otsesro lake, on a s^entle emi- nence at its south end, backed by a hil- ly range of considerable elevation, in which the cleared and cultivated land is agreeably mingled with the forests. The streets, broad and straight, are well shaded with trees, and lined with dwel- ling-houses, many of them of rather an old and venerable appearance. To the Indians it is said to have been a favorite place of resort. The first white inhabitant was Mr. John Christopher Hardwick, who resi- ded here for a short time, about ten years before the Revolutionary war ; but in 17S8, the first permanent settlement was made by Mr. William Cooper; and two years later, the covuity of Otsego was formed, of which this town is the capital. Kemains of a road are still to be seen, which was cut through the for- est by a brigade of General Sullivan's army, from Fort Plain to the head of Otsesro lake ; aiul at the outlet ai'e some traces of a dam constructed by the troops, at the direction of their com- mander. General Clinton, by which the water was made to rise, and then, the dam being broken down, allowed it to rush down in a torrent, which cleared the channel of the incumbrances of logs that impeded the passage. Cooperstown is deservedly admired by travellers, and annually the resort of citizens, seeking the pleasures of the country in the summer season. The population however is small, the num- ber of dwelling-houses beingonly about a hundred and sixty. Tiie people are distinguished for their refinement and courteous manners. Cooperstown may be taken as a fa- vorable specimen of one of the several classes of New York villages : such as have grown up since the Revolutionary war, and have no associations with the 164 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. sufferings and dangers of the earlier settlements, and yet removed from ca- nals and railroads, and every other in- fluence which might have given it a rapid growth or sudden and great pros- perity. Left to the steady but slow improvement of an agricultural neigh- borhood, it presents fewer evidences of increase in wealth or numbers, but is less liable to some of the evils incident to many other places. There are a few small manufactories along the banks of the outlet of the lake, where about eight thousand spin- dles are employed in cotton-spinning, and on that of Oak creek, one of the numerous small streams in this county, most of which flow southward into the Susquehannah. Otsego county is hilly, and in some parts mountainous, being crossed by the Susquehannah and Kaatsberg ranges. There is much good grass land. Lime- stone is found near Schuyler's lake in Cherry Valley, and iron ore in several places. Cherry Valley is one of those uiifoi*- tunate villaares which suffex-ed from In- dian barbarity in the Revolutionary war ; and it may be noticed in this place. It is fourteen miles northeast of Cooperstown, and fifty-three west of Al- bany, amidst the high and irregular ground which gives rise to Canajoharie creek and several other early tributai'ies of the Mohawk, with the head stream of that river. Several vales lie between the neighboring hills, which possess a fertile soil ; and one of these, with the wild cherry-trees that naturally abound- ed in the neighborhood, gave to the place its pleasing name. It happened to lie so exposed and de- fenceless, in the early years of its histo- ry, that it shared in the dangers of the other scattering settlements in the neigh- boring region, and was finally surprised by a band of Indians, led by the notori- ous Col. Butler, from Canada, and fell under a general and indiscriminate mas- sacre, in which whole families, men, women, and children, bled under the tomahawk. The particulars given of this mourn- fiil tragedy by VVra. W. Campbell, in his valuable "Annals of Tryon County," are painful in the extreme, but yet valu- able to impress future generations with abhorrence of war, and especially that unwarrantable practice, in which sever- al civilized nations have engaged, of hiring savages to exercise their blood- thirsty ferocity upon the innocent and defenceless. The sketch given in that work, of the history of the settlement, and the character of the people, renders their fate the more deeply interesting. We shall here introduce an account abridged from its pages. The survey was made in 1739, and the ground first occupied by Mr. Linde- say, a Scotch gentleman, of some for- tune and distinction. He took with him his wife and his father-in-law, a Mr. Congreve, a lieutenant in the British army. The low ground was then cov- ered with a thick forest of beech and maple, mingled with wild-cherry trees, the highlands with evergreen ; and the native wild animals, even the deer, elk, bears, and wolves, undisturbed by civil- ized man, ranged through _the woods, being hunted only occasionally by the Mohawks. The settlers . sought the friendship of the wild men, and with success. In the winter of 1745, while the snow lay very deep, and the journey to the nearest neighbors, on the Mohawk river, 15 miles off", was impossible for any of the family, all the provisions were consumed, and nothing but famine and death were in prospect. An Indi- an, travelling on snowshoes, becoming acquainted with their situation, supplied them with food through the remainder of the season, by bringing, repeatedly, loads upon his back all that distance. The following year, the settlement was inci'eased, by the addition of sever- al Scotch and Irish families, who re- moved from Londonderry, in New Hampshire, at the invitation of the Rev. Samuel Dunlop, one of their country- men, a gentleman of education and travel, who had been induced by the present of a large tract of land, to join Mr. Lindesay. They brought an addi- tion of thirty persons, and the aspect of the place was speedily improved by their industry. A house was built of logs, for religious use, on the declivity of a little hill, near the house of the pastor, whose support was secured by the payment of ten shillings for every hundred aci'es of land, added to prod- ucts of his own labor, and the voluntary contributions of his parishioners. In 1744, Mr. Congreve joined the British army as lieutenant, in place of his father-in-law; and Mr. Dunlop open- ed the first grammar-school in the state west of Albany, at which were taught a number of boys from the settlements on the Mohawk. Several of these were distinguished men in the Revolutionary war. In 1778, the appi-ehensions of an in- vasion from Canada was general in Tryon county ; and, on account of the weakness of this solitary village, num- bers of the inhabitants left their homes for places of greater safety. In the au- tumn, however, the danger being sup- posed to be past, they returned. But an expedition had been prepared at Montreal, consisting of seven hundred tories and Indians, who proceeded, with Brandt and Butler at their head. Ru- mors of their approach spread a new alarm ; but Colonel Alden, commander of a few soldiers, stationed at Cherry Valley, refused to admit the women and children into the fort, and to quiet their apprehensions, sent out a scouting par- ty, who were surprised asleep, and cap- tured by the more cautious enemy. The invaders, on the 10th, reached a hill, a mile southwest from the fort, where they remained concealed till the next day ; and then, having learned from their prisoners, that the officers lodged in several dwelling-houses in the vil- lage, made preparations to surround them all by small parties, while the main body should assail the fort. Mr. Hamble, who was that morning riding into the village, being unable to discov- er distant objects, in consequence of the hazy weather, and the falling sleet, was fired upon and wounded by some of the Indians, and hastening on his horse, gave the alarm to Colonel Alden, and then turned for the fort. The colonel, who had always discredited the reports of danger, still doubted them ; but, on his way to the fort, was pursued and scalped by one of the enemy. The Senecas, who were the most fierce of the Five Nations, were foremost in the attack. They assailed the house of Mr. Robert Wells, and killed the whole fam- ily within, consisting of the father and mother, four children, his brother, sis- ter, and three domestics. A little son alone remained, who had been sent to school at Schenectady. He was after- ward a distinguished counsellor of New York city, the Hon. John Wells. Miss .Tane Wells, the sister of the proprietor of the house, and a young lady of supe- rior character and exalted piety, having escaped by the door, sought safety in the woodpile ; but an Indian discovered her, and, after deliberately wiping his scalping-knife on his legging, sheathed it, and seized her by the arm, at the same time, brandishing his tomahawk. The captive remonstrated with him in the Indian language, with which she had some acquaintance ; and one of the to- ries among the invading party, named Peter Smith, who had once lived with the family of Mr. Wells as a servant, interposed and begged the savage to spare her life, pretending that she was his sister. But this availed only to pro- cure a short delay. The next moment the interesting young lady fell dead from a blow of the tomahawk. The house of the venerable pastor was entered by the enemy, and his aged wife immediately put to death ; but one of the Mohawk chiefs, named Little Aa- ron, led him out of the house, and kept him under his protection. An Indian, running by, pulled off the old gentle- man's hat ; and the chief pursued him and brought it back. The old man was thus rescued from massacre ; but the shock he received was so great, that, although he was set at liberty soon after, he died a few months subsequently. The fort was not taken by the enemy ; but, on the first alarm, a gun was fired from it, which gave intimation of the attack. One of the householders, Mr. Mitch- ell, discovered the enemy, while at a distance from his house ; and finding it impossible to reach it, he escaped to the 166 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. woods, and remained concealed until tlie savages had accomplished their work of" destruction, and taken theii- departure. On returning home, a sad spectacle met his view — the bodies of his wife i and four children. The house was burn- ' ing, but he succeeded in extinguishing ' the fire. On examining the bodies, he found evidences of remaining life in one of them — his little daughter. He imme- diately raised her, and endeavored to resuscitate her ; but just then, observing some of the enemy approaching, he con- cealed himself, and, when they came up, saw one of them, a tory, named Newbury, strike the innocent little vic- tim with his hatchet, and thus put an end to his last hope. The next day the disconsolate father, wholly unassisted, removed all the corpses, on a sled, to | the fort, where the soldiers assisted him I to inter them. The same Newbury was executed for his crimes the next year, on the testimony of Mr. Mitchell, having been arrested when engaged as a spy, in the army of General Clinton, at Can- ajoharie. Mr. Campbell's house was attacked, and his family were takeia into captivity. He was absent ; but, although he hast- ened homeward on hearinsr the Sfun fired in the fort, he arrived too late to render any assistance. The number of inhab- itants killed was thirty-two, and of sol- diers sixteen. A few persons escaped to the Mohawk, and the remainder were made captive. The buildings were all ; burned, the settlement was laid waste, and abandoned by the survivors, un- j til more peaceful times. j Little Falls. — This is one of the favorite spots with travellers of taste ; and there are but few points at which are assembled, within so narrow a space, such a display of picturesque scenery, with so many works of useful science and art. Here the Mohawk river, hav- ing reached the eastern boundary of the rich German Flats, once the bottom of a lake, pours through the descending, rocky channel cut by the current, where the waters, in some long-past age, found an outlet through their ancient barrier. Here, to form an artificial passage for boats arriving at the end of the Long level on the Erie canal, the rocky shore has been excavated, and lofty walls erected, and sufficient breadth gained, to conduct that noble work, by successive locks, down to the level which ex- tends below. The railroad has since found a path for its more rapid vehicles; and now the roar of the river mingles with the sounds of the locomotive and the Imgles of the boatmen. The accompanying engraving gives an accurate and pleasing view of the natu- ral scenery, and some of the works of art, which stand in such striking contrast in this picturesque and remarkable pass. The village in the distance is that of Little Falls, which takes its name from the continued series of cascades, by which the Mohawk here finds its way to the meadows stretching through the eastern valley. The principal fall on this stream, the Cohoes, near its mouth, makes these comparatively second in importance ; and hence the term by which they are distinguished. The channel is in several places divided by rocks and islands, of rough and ragged foi'ms, which bear the appearance of having been worn away by the force of a current far more deep and impetuous than any now ever produced by the riv- er, even at its highest floods ; and the descent of the channel is so great as to render the passage impossible, even in small boats. It is, therefore, doubly interesting to the spectator to observe the triumph of art, with the obstacles of nature which have been overcome, in full view. If passing through this dark, wild, and ro- mantic gorge, in a canal-boat, he glides smoothly along upon the glassy surface of the canal, and here and there is grad- ually raised or let down, by the locks, from one level to another, without injury or inconvenience, by the same element which is seen, in its natural, untamed state, rushing and raving furiously be- low. Or, if he is a passenger in one of the cars which pursue the railroad track, from the other side of the river he beholds the same scene, from a different but no less striking point of view, and, in a few moments, makes a rapid transi- tion from one to the other of those 168 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. smooth and fertile meadows which ex- tend along the banks of the Mohawk, at different levels, above and below the falls. One of the high hills on the southern bank of the river, at this place, has a re- markable cave ; and the geological fea- tures of the region are worthy of atten- tion. Beautiful crystals of quartz are found in the neighborhood, in consider- able abundance, and are washed from the micaceous slate by every rain. Pas- sengers in the rail-cars sometimes have an opportunity to purchase a few, of the children who take pains to collect them. The Marble Aqueduct, two hundred and fourteen feet long, and sixteen feet wide, is one of the best-constructed and beautiful works on the line of the canal, crossing the Mohawk on five large arch- es, to bring over a supply of water from the old canal on the northern bank. The central arch is seventy feet span. Few constructions can be found which present to the eye, in so forcible a con- trast, the rude obstacles of nature with symmetry and beauty of useful art. The first settler in this wild spot was a Scotch gentleman, Alexander Ellis, who, by the aid of Sir William Johnson, obtained a patent of the surrounding tract. The river makes a descent of forty-two feet, by two rapids, within the distance of two thirds of a mile, with a bi'oad interval of smooth and deep wa- ter. Above these is a dam, divided by an island, over which the water pours in small cascades. The romantic pass which opens through the ridge of mount- ains, is about two miles in length, and of an average breadth of only five hun- dred yards,-, while rough and woody heights, rises on each side nearly four hundred feet. Everything here, and above and below, indicates that a lake once covered the great German Flats ; and it is calculated that, if a dam were now built here seventy feet high, that rich and extensive alluvial tract would soon be overflown, and the new lake would find an outlet through Wood creek into Oneida lake and Ontario. The rocks are deeply worn, often by large and deep circular drills, such as are found at many similar spots. One of these is two and a half feet in diameter, beginning at the top of a rock thirty feet above the present level of the river ; and, being broken below, allows a vis- iter to see the sky above, through the whole length of the fuimel. The canal descends at this place by five locks, each of eight feet lift. In 1789, several prisoners were taken by a party of Indians, at a mill ; but two men escaped, by retreating under the watcrvvheel, whence the savages could not dislodge them. Rome. — This village was named at a time when unfounded expectations were entertained of its rapid and extensive growth. Its population, in 1840, was 5,680. It occupies a place of great im- portance in the French and Revolution- ai-y wars, as it was one of the carrying- places on the ancient Indian route be- tween Lake Ontario and the Mohawk, by the way of Oneida lake and Wood creek. The Black-river canal (an im- portant work) passes the village, as well as the raili'oad and Erie canal. The ground is the summit-level between Lake Ontario and the ocean, four hun- dred and thirteen feet above the Hud- son at Albany, from which it is distant one hundred and twelve miles. The United States arsenal, and barracks for one thousand men, were built in 1813. Fort Stanwix (of which only some marks remain in the soil) was erected in 1758, and was at first merely a square fort, with four bastions, a covered way and glacis, smTOunded by a palisaded ditch. It cost =€266,400, but, through neglect, was in ruins at the beginning of the Revolution. Having been hastily repaired, and named Fort Schuyler, on the 3d of August, 1777, it was invested by Colonel St. Legei*, with a large mixed force from Canada, comprising one thou- sand Indians. Colonel Ganzevoort, how- ever, resolutely refused to surrender ; and, although in command of only seven hundied and fifty men, sent out Colonel Willet to make a diversion in favor of General Herkimer, who was advancing to his relief, and with such success that the enemy were driven from their camp, leaving their baggage and even papers. 170 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 183 Twenty wagon-loads of spoils were brought into tlio fort. The invadei's, however, returned, and the siege was closely pressed ; but Colonel Willet and Major Stockwell succeeded in passing by stealtli through the midst of the ene- my, and reached General Sullivan's camp at Stillwater, who sent General Arnold with assistance. That sagacious officer (afterwai'd a traitor) so terrified the invaders by exaggerated reports, that they fled in a panic, and failed in their enterprise as utterly as General Burgoyne, to co-operate with whom, they had come from Canada. Utica. — This city, situated on the southern bank of the Mohawk, occupies one of the important points where the line of the Erie canal and the railroad coincide, and are crossed by several country roads. It has the additional advantage of lying on a tract of fertile land, the river alluvion in that country being broad and rich. It is ninety-six miles west of Albany, and two hundred and forty-one miles from New York. Fort Schuyler, an earth work, thrown up here in the old French war, was the first point ever occupied here by white men ; but, as Wliitestown, for some years afT;er its settlement, was the prin- cipal place of resort in this region, as late as 1793, there were but three dwel- lings in Utica. Rome was afterward marked out, as the site of a future city ; but, although the Western Inland Nav- igation company, chartered in 1792, opened a canal from the bend of tlie Hudson here to Oneida lake, and ex- pectations were entertained of a great tj-ade taking that direction, in 1800, the Seneca turnpike was opened through Utica, which gave the latter place the advantage. It has continued to increase ever since. The population in 1830 was 8,323, and in 1840, 12,810. It was made a village in 1798, when it receiv- ed the name of Utica, and it was incor- porated as a city in 1832. It contains fourteen churches, ihree banks, numer- ous stores, and a number of handsome private houses, with much refined and intelligent society. The streets of Utica are generally pleasant, many of them being planted with trees and lined with neat yards and gardens ; while the hotels are large, and the j)oint where the canal and railroad pass the principal street is one of great activity and bus- tle. The view in every direction is over an extent of level ground, and bounded by the hills enclosing the valley of the Mohawk. Clinton. — The pleasant village of Clinton, situated nine miles from Utica, is the seat of Hamilton college. This institution owes its oriijin to the Rev. Samuel Kirkland, a missionary to the Oneida Indians. He was one of the pupils of the celebrated school of Mr. WJieelock, and graduated at Princeton in 1765. In the following year he re- moved to this place, and commenced a long, self-denying, and successful course of missionary labors among the Oneidas, over whom he obtained a strong and beneficial influence, of great importance in the Revolutionary war. While the other nations of the savage confederacy joined the English, the Oneidas remain- ed true to our cause. After the peace had been restored, he received a grant of land in this place and neighborhood, called Ivirkland's patent, and again took up his residence here in 1792. The remarkable chief Skenandoa, with many of his people, became intel- ligent Christians under the instructions of their devoted pastor. In 1793, he ob- tained a charter for a seminary of learn- ing, designed for Indians as well as whites, under the title of the Hamilton Oneida academy, which has since been raised to the rank of a college. Trknton Falls. — The West Canada creek, in flowing through a long, deep, and narrow ravine, presents a succession of wild and romantic scenes, so striking and so interesting, that this region has been for some years a favorite point of observation to travellers of taste in the western tour. It is common for parties to stop at Utica, and devote a day to an excursion to Trenton Falls. The stream makes successive falls, four of which are the most considerable, but all varying in form and appearance. The largest is two miles northwest from Trenton vil- lage, where, within a shoi't distance, it is precipitated down three perpendicu- I DEriClllPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YOIIK. 171 lar rocks, rushing over the intermediate spaces by steep and rough channels, in a furious and turhulcnit manner. The first of the falls is fbity-seven feet in heiglit, the second eleven, and the third forty-tiight ; and such is the variety in the dii'ucli(»ns of the sheets of water and tlie surrounding objects in thai wild and sechided dell, which is shut in on b(jth sides l)y pei'pendicular banks of dark limestone, from one hundred to one hun- dred and thirty feet in height, that the impressions made on the mind of a spectator ai"e at once awful and pleas- ing. Syracuse. — This is a large and flour- ishing village on the Erie canal, one hundred and thirty-three miles west of Albany, at the junction of the Oswego canal. The great Salt-Spring, at Salina, is the most valuable in the Union, as it is abundant in water, very highly charged, and the supply is taken to numerous manufactories, where the salt is extract- ed and purified l)y the most approved processes. The spring rises on the marshes of Salina lake, a salt pond, six miles long and two in breadth, whose waters are impregnated to such a degree that its shores are lined with plants usually found only on the borders of the sea. The lake is surrounded by limestone hills, containing petrifactions ; and gypsum abounds in the neighborhood. The spot is a portion of that extensive regicm which reaches from the Atlantic to the Pacific, between the latitudes of thirty- one and forty-five degrees north, whose course is here and there betrayed by brine springs. In . this state, such springs exist in the counties of Onon- daga, Cayuga, Seneca, Ontario, Niaga- ra, Genesee, Tompkins, Wayne, and Oneida ; but that of Salina is by far the most valuable and productive. Accord- '\u^ to published statements, a bushel of salt may be obtained from foi'ty-five gal- lons of water; and analysis gives the following results for forty gallons : — Weight, 355 pounds ; saline matter of all kinds, 56 pounds. Of this, muriate of soda is 51 pounds ; carbonate of lime, colored by oxyde of iron, 6i ounces ; sul- phate of lime, 2 pounds, 4 ounces ; mu- liate of lime, 1 pound, 12^ ounces ; and probal)ly some muriate of magnesia and sulphate of soda. The water is raised from the spring by a forcing-pump, and distributed thi'ough pipes aiid troughs to numerous manufactories, large and small, of differ- ent kinds, in the villagf^s of Salina and Syracuse, and a considerable tract of land lying between them. In some places are seen large buildings, in which the water is evaporated by artificial heat ; but the greater part is exposed, in shallow wooden vats, to the heat of the sun, being covered liy sliding roofs when threatened by rain. A branch of the Erie canal affords the means of easy transportation, and immense quantifies of salt are annually transported to all parts of the country. The vats are about sixteen by seven feet, and four inches deep, and are sup- plied with water sent from jiump-houses through hollow logs. Between the rows of vats, sufficient s])ace is left fijr carts to pass, in wliich the salt is removed. The salt made in this manner is coarse; that formed by artificial heat is fine. From fifteen to twenty-five boilers are used, usually placed in rows, wliich are supplied with salt water much in the same manner as the vats ; and heat is applied below, where fires are kindled in furnaces. In some manufactories, steam-pipes are used for heating, and pass through the water. The new spring at Salina yi(;lds water more strongly im- pregnated with salt than the old spring; that is, in the proportion of fifty to sev- enty. Fresh water being reckoned at 0, and -water saturated with salt at 100, a cubic foot of water from the new s])ring yields fourteen pounds of salt. Two mills on every bushel here are to be paid to the state for pumping the water, and six cents a bushel on all the salt made. About three millions of bushels are manufactured annually ; and the business, in all its branches, occu- pies about three thousand m.en, in the four villages of Syracuse, Salina, Ged- desburgh, and Liverpool. A French colony for the Onondaga country was planned in the year 1655, 172 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF NEW YORK. l>y the Jesuit Dablon, who procured at Quebec fifty soldiers, under the com- mand of Lieutenant Lawson, and set out with them the next year, to under- take one of their missions at this place. Under so powerful a guard, with the approbation of the Jesuit §upei-ior-gen- eral, Francis Le Mercicr, the expedition sailed up the river; but it was attacked by four hundred Mohawks, before they reached Montreal, who were jealous of the Onondagas, by whom the enterprise was encouraged. The Indians being repulsed, the party proceeded ; and, af- ter some delays and dangers, arrived at the appointed place of settlement. This is supposed to have been on the borders of Salina lake, as mention is made of a salt -spring. They were for a time very kindly treated by the Onondagas, who inhabited this region. Scarcely two years, however, had elapsed, before strong symptoms of hostility were ex- hibited ; several murders were commit- ted, and a large army of the Six Nations was assembled. The colonists became alarmed, and resolved on flight. By practising the greatest caution and sccresy, they suc- ceeded. Canoes were made with all haste in the house of the Jesuit, and a young Frenchman, who had been adopt- ed by the Indians, and enjoyed their full confidence, persuaded them to make a great feast ; at the close of which they betook themselves to sleep ; and when they awoke the next day, their intended victims were not to be found. Having launched their canoes in the night, and taken their young countryman with them, the colonists got such a start of their enemies, that they arrived in safety at Montreal. Auburn. — This beautiful village, sit- uated on Owasco lake, is worthy of the pleasing assiociations connected with its name, which Goldsmith's favorite poem has celebrated. The stateprison, located here, is quite a handsome building. It stands back about eighty feet from the road, and covers, including the grounds, about twenty-five thousand square feet. The wall that surrounds it is two thousand feet long, thirty feet high, and, at the base, four feet thick. On the southern side there is a small creek, from which, by means of a wheel and shaft, power enough is obtained to work all the ma- chinery inside of the walls. The prison consists of two wings, and the main body of the house, which forms three sides of a square ; the wings being two hundred and forty feet long, and twenty- five feet deep, and the house two hun- dred and eighty feet long. It was begun in the year 1816, and the cost was five hundred thousand dollars. The ex- penses of the prison, in the year 1839, were $51,671.21, and the money that was earned in the same year was $60,- 161.46. The prisoners number, in the course of a year, from six to seven hun- dred. Every sabbath they are instruct- ed in the great truths of the Bible, and the younger portion are taught read- ing, writing, and arithmetic. When this prison was first built, there were five hundred and fifty cells ; but lately a few more have been added. These cells are arranged in four stories, and are seven feet high, seven feet long, and three and a half feet wide. They are very well warmed, lighted, and ventila- ted, and everything fixed for the comfort of the prisoners. The space between the cells and the outside wall is ten feet wide, and is open from the roof to the ground. The passages to the cells are three feet wide, extending out from the wall in fi'ont of each cell. They being constructed in this manner, perfect si- lence can be preserved through the night, as the slightest noise or whisper is heard by the watchman on guard be- low. This precaution is taken in order to prevent any conversation during the night. The same care is taken in the daytime, for they are made to work without speaking. The prison-bell rings soon after daybreak, which is a signal for the prisoners to rise, and soon after the keeper unlocks the doors. The prisoners then come out of their cells, each one taking his pan that is used for his food, his kettle for water, and his tub. They then put these different things in their respective places, and in lockstep walk to the workshops, where they work until the prison-bell rings w»i.i.<7,,i,iitarwWI5rwPII1IllH''IHTI'lllfflll!Pfci liiiii ill!!" li iiliiili P ■iiiiii 11 'ft? M':l<':Q'm,'^.li iiiMii 'W ,iliT"::,ir:,.:>:ilvr:i ' 1 'PP 'V'li'i;: ■'■ wMmm ^fm^^ " ■' ■'■' Ili'lillliiliiiSliSiiiiS III;"'' ilUlr ii^liia if jiiiii i;i^^^^^^ I ■i..,iii .: , i 1 I'l' ,"'.■ Ml. I" f • .' '■ ' 'I' .. ,„i,:::;„;ii:';,u:;aiii;;'lil lillliiiiillliilili.:' 174 DESCRirTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. ajrain, and then in the same manner go to the eating-room. The tables that are used here are very narrow, to prevent any intercourse. In about half an hour they are ordered, by the ringing of the bell, to return to the workshops, and here work until twelve o'clock, when again they go and take their dinner in the same way. As evening comes on, the prisoners go to the place where they left their tubs in the morning ; and when the word of command is given, each takes his own up and proceeds to the mess or dining-room, where each one takes his can of water and his pan of food, and then all walk in the same close step to their cells. As they enter, they pull the door to after them, and are then locked in by the turnkey, who has two keys entirely different from any others in the prison. The prisoners are divided into companies ; and each com- pany occupies a separate gallery. The turnkeys go around through the differ- ent sfalleries in stocking-feet, to see if the convicts are in bed. The stateprison at Auburn is impor- tant in an historical point of view, be- cause it is that in which a new system of prison-discipline was commenced, which has since been extensively adopt- ed in the large stateprisons of this coun- try, and, with various modifications, in France and elsewhere. It was invented and first practised by Mr. Lynds, after- ward superintendent of the Sing-Sing prison. The grand object of it is to prevent all conversation and interchange of thoughts between the convicts. In all prisons previously in use, where con- siderable numbers of persons were con- fined, unless for offences of peculiar kinds, or under oppressive systems of government, numbers of prisoners were, from time immemorial, placed in com- mon halls, often in a very crowded man- ner ; and not only immoral conversation, but the basest crimes, might be indulged in. So great were the evils of that sys- tem, that many innocent persons have been ruined by their contact with felons of the worst character, while awaiting trial. The expense of keeping and guarding men in such circumstances was very great ; and to Mr. Lynds belongs the honor of the inestimable improve- ments which have been made, although he was accused of occasional practices of unnecessary severity, in the punish- ment of offenders or suspected persons among the prisoners under his charge. Not a word is allowed to be spoken by the convicts while at work ; and each small party of laborers is attended by a sentinel, at whatever employment, and every infringement of the rule of strict silence which he can observe is instant- ly reported and punished. Their cells are solitary, although arranged side by side in long rows, and separated only by single walls ; and sentinels are so posted, at night, that no communication can be carried on between any of the prisoners. In the largest prisons, where a thousand or more persons are confined, a dead silence reigns from the hour of retire- ment till that of breakfast. A few men are sufficient to guard a great number, thus isolated in mind, and yet made to move and act in compact bodies. A plot is impossible : one man can not even form an acquaintance with anoth- er. Whenever they move, they are re- quired to march at a regular step, in single file, and close together ; a difficult march, which requires strict attention. They often receive their food on re- turning from work, without stopping ; for being marched through the kitchen, each takes his can from a table, and car- ries it to his cell. Religious services are often held in chapels connected with the prisons, and chaplains usually find many of the con- victs accessible to their private instruc- tions. Each cell has a Bible, and sab- bath-schools are often kept by benevo- lent people of the neighborhood. In some cases, also, as in New York city, societies provide temporary lodgings and work for discharged convicts, and otherwise interest themselves in their welfare. The Prison-Discipline Society, which was formed in Boston about twenty-five years ago, early i-ecommended the prin- ciples on which the Auburn prison was conducted, and greatly contributed to their general adoption in the United States and foreisrn countries. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 175 Geneva Medical Giillege. Geneva. — This place is conspicuous among the lake villages for the beauty of its appearance from the water. It | stands at the outlet of the lake of the j same name, upon the western bank ; I and the houses of some of the more wealthy inhabitants occupy the summit of the higher ground, which rises one hundred and twenty feet, just behind the busiest streets, and descends with a hasty but graceful slope to the water, adorned by the gardens, green with useful plants, and gay with blooming flowers. The surrounding country presents that gen- tly-varied surface peculiar to this part of New York, where, for many miles, the ground has the appearance of hav- ing been channelled from north to south. The lowest depressions are occupied by several of the small lakes, while the heights of the intermediate ridges com- mand extensive and pleasing views over the getitly-undulated country between. The settlement of Geneva was begun in the year 1794, by Mr, Austin and Mr. Barton ; and the act of incorporation was passed in 1812. The number of dwellings is about five hundred ; and there are nine churches, a bank, &c. The Geneva College was one of the earliest institutions which adopted a plan of studies adapted to young men preparing for other professions than those usually termed "learned;" and, like several others since established in different places, affords instruction in practical branches to such students as prefer to pursue them. The buildings occupy a remarkably fine, agreeable, and commanding situation, on the ele- vated shore of the lake, near the south- ern extremity of Main street. This college, incorporated in 1825, has professors of mathematics, natural philosophy, Latin and Greek, statistics and civil engineering, modern languages, history and belles-lettres, chymistry and mineralogy. There is also a medical department, commonly called — The Medical College of Geneva. — The building belongs to the medical depart- ment of the college, which is under the direction of four professors. The in- habitants of this beautiful town have distinguished themselves by their liber- ality in providing and supporting insti- tutions of the most valuable character; and few places of equal size can be found 176 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP NEW YORK. in the country better provided. This buildinof, with the others connected with the college, is an ornament to the town, while it makes a conspicuous appear- ance from a distance. Rochester. — This flourishing and important city in this part of the state, is of such recent growth, that, until the year 1810, there was not even a single dwelling on its site. The whole tract was once a mill-hit, and was purchased, in 1802, by Nathaniel Rochester and two associates, at $15.50 an acre — $1,750 in all. Some of the land on the eastern bank of the Genesee was sold at eigh- teen pence an acre in 1790, by the great speculators of the day — Phelps and Gor- ham. In 1816, the population was only three hundred and thirty-one. In 1841, the number of mills (inclu- ding only gristmills) was twenty, with nearly a hundred runs of stone, able to grind five thousand, six hundred barrels of flour daily, or twenty thousand bush- els of wheat. The amount made annu- ally, was then five hundred thousand barrels. There were three woollen- mills, one cotton-mill, twelve sawmills, and other water-mills of different kinds. Few towns in the Union present such evidences of a great and lucrative busi- ness, on so small a space of ground, as Rochestei", in the immediate vicinity of the river, at and below the aqueduct. The mills above referred to, form a double line of large, massive, stone buildings ; and the greatest activity pre- vails in and around them, where crowds of men are constantly employed in the various kinds of business which arc car- ried on in them, and in the various other mills and manufactories adjacent, as well as at the depots of the canal and the railroad. Above twenty churches, several of them remarkably handsome, as well as capacious edifices, are among the public buildings, although the first presbyterian church, which is the oldest, was erected in 1815 ; and so late as in January, 1813, at the celebration of the Indian new-year, the Senecas performed their last heathen ceremonies on the ground, near the site of the present Bethel-church. An interesting account of these, as well as of many other par- ticulars relating to Rochester, may be found in the history of the town, pub- lished in 1835. The falls of the Genesee at this place are one of the most remarkable of the cataracts in New York, and rendered by art the most useful. The upper one is small, making an inconsiderable descent over a rocky bed of only a moderate an- gle of descent ; but, as the grand aque- duct is built over it, the effect of the flowing water is increased by the ob- struction of the channel by the masses of stonework, and the contraction thus formed of the passage. The middle fall is the principal one ; and that is per- pendicular, over a rocky precipice, which rises like a wall from the lower to the upper level of the river. In pouring over this, the water plunges ninety-six feet, sometimes in a £ew small streams, but, in floods, in a general sheet. It was here that the celebrated Sam Patch, after performing many astonishing leaps, unharmed, from fearful heights, lost his life, in the year 1829, by jumping from the rocks into the basin. Below this spot, the river flows a mile and a half, through a wide and deep channel, passing several rapids, when it reaches the two lower falls. Here the surrounding scenery is rough and wild ; and the river first pours over a precipice twenty-five feet high, and immediately afterward over another of eighty-four feet. The banks below are high, rocky, and perpendicular, for a considerable distance, showing numerous stratifica- tions, which have been cut through by the current. Across the awfiil chasm a wooden bridge was erected, in 1819, of one noble arch, whose chord was three hundred and fifty-two feet, and the versed sine fifty-four feet. The entire length of the bridge was seven hundred and eighteen feet, and the width thirty feet. The top of the arch was not less than one hundred and ninety-six feet above the river. It contained seventy thou- sand feet of timber, and sixty-four thou- sand, six hundred and twenty feet, board measure. Just one year and a day after its completion, it fell in ruins by its owti weight, the sides of the arch pressing up the top. Falls of Niasara. viewed from Table Eock. 12 178 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. Carthage, a small town on tlie eastern bank, it* a place of consitlerable business, as a commuiru-ation between Rochester and Lake Ontario was established some Years since, by an inclined plane from tlie high bank to the river, where boats' received and discharged cargoes. The business has greatly increased ; and there ai'o now tliree raih'oads from Rochester to the navigable part of the river, six miles from the lake-shore. Bui-"PAL0. — This city, before referred to, as one of the principal inland towns of the state, and the centre of the lake and canal navigation and railroad ccfcn- munication, is pleasantly situated on the sutnmit, declivity, and base, of the table- land which borders the enany, enjoys an advantageous and pleasant situation, on the western side of Lake Champlain. The township is supplied with many fine mill-seats, by the Saranac and Salmon rivers, and sev- eral other small streams ; and the east- ern pait of it is generally level, although the western is hilly. The village stands on the lake-shore, at the mouth of the Saranac. In speaking of Lake Cham- plain, on a preceding page, we alluded to the important naval victory achieved on the Cumberland bay, opposite this place, in the last war with Great Brit- ain, in 1814. Plattsburgh was twice taken by their troops, but the country below was final- ly delivered from danger by the event just mentioned. The victorious Ameri- can squadron, under Commodore Mc- Douough, had 820 men, and 86 guns, DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 185 and the British 1,050 men, and 96 guns. The following recollections of the battle are from the pen of a friend : — •' The Battle of Plattshurgh. — It was a bright sabbath in September, one of those rich, soft, and mellow days that begin to wear the sober tints of autumn, that my childish heart was made sad by the scenes and the sounds of war. Our home was on the eastern border of the lake, just across from Plattsburgh ; and, for many long montlis, the event of bat- tle had been the theme of conversation by the fireside, among men as they met in their daily haunts, and friends by the wayside. Preparations were going forward for defence ; and among men there was enlisting, draughting, &c., and all things wore the aspect of some im- pending evil, which threw a kind of gloom over the feelings, in which all sympathized. We lived within less than a day's march of the enemy's ground, and consequently were often alarmed with conjectures and painful suspense, in regard to their movements. Often were we surprised with rumors of the near approach of the British — that they had crossed the lines — were majjching down upon us, &c., which kept the in- habitants in a very uneasy and unsettled condition. But so many false alarms had a tendency, at length, to lull them into a state of indifference, or to allay their apprehensions so much, that peo- ple had resumed their avocations in comparative quiet. " But at last the event burst upon us, with all the dreaded I'ealities of blood- shed and war ! The scene was suffi- ciently distant to prevent immediate danger, yet all knew that their future security hung on the result, and every eye was strained, and every heart beat with deep anxiety, for the sequel. " It was a peaceful sabbath morning ; the sun had risen with its accustomed splendor, and nature wore the stillness peculiar to the sacred day. But alas ! it was a strange sabbath with man. The booming sounds of guns came across the water, in such quick and rapid succes- sion, that they shook the earth, and sounded like heavy and deep-toned thunder. The engagement lasted two hours and twenty minutes ; and we knew the work of death was going on at every new report. Such a sabbath may this land never see again ! It was not a ' day of rest,' or of worship, but one to be remembered with feelings of horror and dread. A few erathered in the morning, aged men, women, and children, in a lonely group, for worship ; but, as the excitement increased, every man fled from the village, and, in short, almost every one had climbed to some height on the hills, or in the steeple of the church, to read, in the progress of events, our consequent destiny. When the British ships struck their colors, and victory was the cry, there was great re- joicing, in the sure and delightful feel- ing of safety, far more than in that of success. " Men and boys had nearly all crossed over the lake to witness the scene, from the hills about the village, and were spectators of the bloody affray. One of my brothers went aboard one of the vanquished ships, soon after the action ceased. The deck was strewed with the dead and dying, weltering in gore. The gallant Downie, who had command- ed the British forces, lay on a large iron chest, just as he was slain. Victory was the theme and the cry of the conquer- ors ; but grief and dismay were the feel- ings of the vanquished. " The officers who fell in these en- counters, both by land and water, were buried side by side in the graveyard at Plattsburgh. Monuments have been erected to all. Friends and foes sleep as quietly as if they had never had col- lision here on earth. Commodore Dow- nie, though slain in the invasion of our country, as the officer of the highest rank, is placed in the centre ; and a tab- let, erected to his memory, bears the following inscription : — " ' Sacred to the memory of George Downie, Esq., apost-captain in the Brit- ish navy, who gloriously fell on board his B. M. ship Confiance, while leading the vessels under his command to the attack of the American flotilla, at anchor in Cumberland bay, off" Plattsburgh, on the 11th of September, 1814. — To mark the spot where the remains of a gallant 186 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. officer ami siiireve friend were honora- bly interred, tliis stone has been erected by his aflectionate sister-in-law, Mary Downie.* " The family of Dr. Davidson were residents of Plnttsburgh at this time; and Mrs. Davidson, in a work of hers j called ' Selections,' has given an inter- , estin'jf sketch c^f events that occurred in her own family during the scene of ' those eventful days. | " After some months, the vessels were , taken to the ht;ad of the lake, at White- hall. Circumstances of travelling just j at that time gave me an opportunity, in ! the impressible season of childhood, to j see from the tall masts the British and i American flags fl!oating lazily in the j breeze, the conquered ' lion' looking just as fierce and terrible as if he had not been a captive among Americans. We were invited on board, and saw the mutilated ships of war. They were making preparations to sink them in the lake, which was afterward done, for preservation, and the soldiers were rolling cannon-balls into their holds, as weights. " Commodore M'Donough was pres- ent — a man of middle stature ; but there was nothing in his looks or manner which indicated aught of the exciting scenes through which he had passed. It is said of him that, after the enemy's fleet hove in sight, the men of his ship were as- sembled on the quarter-deck, when he kneeled down, and, in humble and fer- vent prayer, commended himself, his men, and the cause in which they were engaged, to the 'God of battles,' and arose from that posture with a calmness and serenity on his brow which showed that he had received comfort and assu- rance from above. " The dead of both armies were taken to the small islands near the scene of action, and thei'e buried. Those waters now look as blue and as beautiful as if never disturbed with war ; and those islands are as green and verdant as if never broken with new-made graves." New York City. — The site of this city, which was first oc(U])ied by Euro- peans in 1614, or 1615, and then only by the erection of a blockhouse near its southern extremity, is now the most pcjpulous, as well as the most important, on the western continent, and vies, in commercial rank, with many of the prin- cipal ones of the old world. It now oc- cupies the whole of Manliattan island, being conterminous with tlie county of New York. Its limits, therefore, extend to the narrow channel between the Hud- son and East rivers, called Harlem river; a distance of 14^ miles, with a breadth varying up to two miles, and an area of 2]'^ square miles. The southern por- tion, forming about one sixth of the whole, is occupied by the main body of the population, amounting, in 1840, to 312,710, and, in 1845, to 371,102. The number of buildings, in 1840, in the com- pact ])art of the city, was 32,116; the valuation of real estate, $187, 222,714, and of personal estate, $65,013,801. The harbor is very capacious, with good anchorage for the largest ships, almost wholly free from shoals, and with currents strong enough to keep it usu- ally free from ice in the winter, even when more houthern ports are obstruct- ed. Governor's and Bedlow's islands are strongly fortified ; nnd the entrance to the lower bay is defended by Fort Hamilton, on Long island. Fort Lafay- ette, on a rock in the watex", and b;itre- ries on Staten island, opposite. The Hudson river opens a natural navigable channel of 150 miles to Albany, and with the various canals and railroads heretofore mentioned ; while the East river communicates with Long Island sound, which pours much trade into this city. Lines of the most capacious and splendid steamboats lead daily, and al- most hourly, in all directions ; and new channels of communication are now in preparation, which will still further fa- cilitate and extend the great commer- cial relations of New York The streets in the lower and oldest part of the city are generally narrow and crooked; but in the upper portion, to which many of the inhabitants have changed their residences within a few years, they are straight, broad, well built, and more agreeable. The number of churches is 215. Of these there are — baptist, 23 ; congrega- 111! 188 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. tional, 7; Dutch reformed, 17; friends, 4 ; Jewish, 9 ; Lutheran, 3 ; methodist episcopal, 30 ; methodist protestant, 1 ; presbyterian, 32 ; associate presbyterian, 3 ,• associate reformed presbyterian, 2 ; reformed presbyterian, 3 ; protestant episcopal, 41 ; Roman catholic, 16; uni- tarian, 2 ; universalist, 4 ; Welsh, 3 ; miscellaneous, 15. There are twenty-eight banks, exclu- sive of four for savings. There are asylums for lunatics, at Bloomingdale ; colored, indigent, and aged, at 42d street ; deaf and dumb, 50th street ; blind, 9th avenue; orphans, 117th street, and 71st street, 6th avenue. Prince street, 11th street, and colored orphans, 12th street; lying-in v/omen, Marion street ; old la- dies, 20th street. Schools. — Ward schools, 19; pi'imary, 3 ; schools of the Public School Society, 18, and primary, 59. Both the ward and the public schools are free to chil- dren of all classes, and wholly gratui- tous, even to the books used by the chil- dren. The latter were commenced about thirty years ago, through the exertions of a few benevolent individuals, at a time when public education was neg- lected ; and, under the charge of a very faithful and intelligent board of trustees, and superintended by Mr. Seton, a de- voted friend of the poor and ignorant, they rose to a high eminence, under the liberal patronage of the state. The eighteen schoolhouses of this so- ciety, above-mentioned, are fine brick buildings, usually about eighty by forty feet, and two or three stories high, able to contain from five to twelve hundred children each. The monitorial system is practised. The ward schools have since been established, in which that system is not used. The trustees and other officers ai-e chosen annually by the people, and their schools are multiplying. The Institution for the Education of the Deaf and Dumb. — This institution is situated near 33d street and 4th avenue. The building is 110 by 60 feet, and con- tains about two hundred pupils, from all parts of the state, many of whom are supported and instructed at the public expense. The building affords sleeping and dining-rooms, with apartments for recitation, the family of the superintend- ent, and the eight instructors, the kitch- en, &c. The system of instruction re- sembles that practised in the other deaf and dumb asylums in the United States, being founded on the principles of the Abbe De I'Epee and the Abbe Sicard, introduced into this country by Mz\ Gal- laudet, at the expense of the American asylum at Hartford, about the year 1815. The Institution for the Education of the Blind, is erected on land presented by James Boorman, Esq., at the expense of the state, aided by a gift of fifteen thousand dollars from Mr. Burke, and other donations. The building faces the Hudson river, at a short distance from the bank, and contains lodgings for a large number of pupils, most of whom are supported by the state. They are taught the common branches of learn- ing, with vocal and instrumental music, and several useful handicrafts best adapt- ed to their abilities, chiefly the manu- facture of baskets, rugs, bandboxes, and carpets. The Croton Aqueduct. — The city of Now York is abundantly supplied with pure and wholesome water, by a work of greater length than any other in the country, and at a gi-eater expense. The supply is derived from the Croton river, in Westchester county, at a point about forty miles from the city. That stream is dammed, and is capable of affording a much greater quantity than can be needed in a long course of years. The aqueduct passes most of the way under ground, through a pipe of masonwork, constructed in the most skilful manner, but crosses several streams, the broad- est of which is Harlem river. The brido-e thrown across is one of the most important constructions on the line. It is 1,450 feet long, with fifteen arches — eight of them eighty feet span, and sev- en of fifty feet span, 114 feet above tide- water at the top. The receiving reservoir is at 86th street, about five and a half miles from the city-hall. It covers thirty-five acres, and contains one hundred and fifty mill- ions of gallons. There the water is re- ceived, and allowed to stand long enough s p ft X o ar p s !2! a o \- 190 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. to tleposite the particles of sand and clay it has brought down, and then it is drawn off into the second or distributing reservoir. This reservoir is situated at 42d street, on the height of ground about three miles from the city-hall. It is an im- mense structure of hewn stone, resem- bling a modern foi"tress of the first class, covering four acres, and capable of containing twenty millions of gallons. From this iron pipes lead off, gradually branching in different directions, with stops, hydrants, &;c. Many houses are now supplied with this excellent water, not merely for cu- linary purposes and drinking, but also for bathing, &c. There is also reserved a supply for the extinguishment of fires, of inestimable value to the city, which has heretofore suffered most severely for the want of it. Several of the public squares are adorned with beautiful fountains, some of which throw the water nearly a hun- dred feet perpendicularly, not, as at Versailles, after being raised by ma- chmery, but by the force of the natural head. Puhlic Squares. — The Battery, named from the use made of it in early times, is a fine public walk on the southern extremity of the island, shaded with trees, and commanding a delightful view upon the bay. Being exposed to the \ sea-breezes, and in full view of the nu- merous boats and vessels of all descrip- tions, continually passing, the Battery is a favorite resort in warm weather. Castle-Garden is a place of amusement, formed in an old fort, connected with the Battery by a short bridge, near which floating-baths are moored in the bathing season. The BofvUng-Green, just north of the Battery, is a small circular green, sur- rounded with an iron railing, shaded with lofly trees, and ornamented with a large rustic fountain, whei'e a stream of Croton water is thrown about ninety feet into the air, and falls upon a rude mass of misshapen rocks, and thence into a basin. The fine house No. 1 Broadway, was the headquarters of Lord Howe, in the Revolution, and, after the close of the war, was occupied by Gen- eral Washington. The Atlantic, and several other hotels, stand opposite or near this favorite square. The Park. — This is the most central and important of the public squares, at the junction of two grand avenues of the city, Bi-oadway and Chatham street, containing the city-hall, the new city- hall, and the hall of records, and is surrounded by many other important edifices, such as the Astor house, Tam- many hall. Park theatre, museum, &c. It contains, also, a public fountain, with- in a basin about one hundred feet in diameter, which has a variety of jets, that are occasionally changed. When the water is thrown in a single stream, it ascends to the height of seventy feet, presenting a majestic appearance. St. John's Park, in the western part of the city, is private, being accessible only to the inhabitants of the surround- ing houses. It is closely planted with trees, and has St. John's church frontinsr it on the east. Washington Square, between 4th and 6th streets, just west of Broadway, lies in front of the university, and one of the reformed Dutch churches. Union Place, at the northern termi- nation of Broadway, is in an elliptical form, enclosed with a fine iron fence, having a public fountain in the centre, with ornamental jets, and is a delightful place of resort to the inhabitants. Further up the city are other public squares, as Madison square, Hamilton square, and others, not yet I'egulated. On the east are Tompkins square and Bellevue, the latter the seat of the alms- house. Wall Street, the central point of the banks, insurance offices, &;c., contains the exchange and the customhouse. The exchange is of Quincy granite, three sto- ries high, and a basement, covering a block between four streets, and is 197 feet 7 inches on Wall street, 144 on one side, and 170 on the other, with a large dome above, 100 feet high. The customhouse, at the corner of Nassau street, is of white marble from Sing-Sing, and in the form of a Grecian temple, with a colonnade at each end. 192 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF NEW YORK. and pilasters on the sides. The interior is ahnost wholly of hewn stone. The principal hall is in the centre ; and all the departments are well arranged, with ample accommodations for the numerous offices and clerks. The CAUj-Hall. — This fine and spa- cious edifice occupies the centre of the park, facing the south, and presents a beautiful Grecian front, of 216 feet in length, rising from a broad tcri'ace. A flight of wide steps leads up to arched entrances, ' above which is a balcony on the second story. The two vvings have halls in front, devoted to the common coun'cil, the superior court, &c., while other courts and offices are accommoda- ted in other parts of the building. On the top is the great fire-bell, which in- dicates, by the number of strokes, the districts of the city in which fires are burning, for the direction of the fire- companies. A view from the cupola affords one of the finest prospects of the city. Trinity Church, on Broadway, oppo- site the head of Wall street, occupies the site of the first episcopal church erected in the city, in 1696, except the chapel in the front. It is of sandstone, in the Gothic style, 137 feet long, 36 feet wide, and 67 feet high, with a tower 30 feet square, and a steeple whose top is 283 feet from the ground. In the rear is a vestry, 72 feet long. The church contains an organ, which cost $10,000. In the burial-ground surround- ing the church, lie interred many distin- guished persons, particularly Alexander Hamilton and Captain James Lawrence. Prisons. — The Halls of Justice is the city prison popularly known as the " Tombs," and is situated a little north of the park. It was built, about ten years ago, to obviate the evils of the bridewell, which was consti'ucted on the defective principles of the old system. The building is 200 by 253 feet, of granite, in the Egyptian style, and con- tains various court-rooms. The cells are solitary, to prevent communication be- tween the prisoners, but provision is made for ventilation and warminjj the cells, by openings in the wall. Meas- ures are taken for the religious instruc- tion and moral improvement of those confined ; and much good is done, both in checking and reforming those addict- ed or exposed to a vicious life. The house of detention, included in the building, receives the special attention of the benevolent. The Penitentiary, on Blackwell's island, in the East river, is an immense stone structure, on the Auburn plan, with a chapel, keepers' rooms, &c., in the centre, the cells for females in the north wing, and for men in the south. Each wing is more than 200 feet lonff. The Farm- School, for poor children (the children of parents in the almshouse and others), is situated on the eastern shore of the river, opposite Blackwell's island, and is under the system of the Public School society. The environs of New York offer many pleasing excursions and favorite retreats. The United States Navy- Yard, at Brooklyn, has extensive grounds en- closed, with an arsenal, stores, ship- houses, docks, the naval lyceum, &c. The naval hospital, at a little distance, is a fine, large building. Greenwood Cemetery is an extensive tract of ground, about three miles below Brooklyn, and situated on the bay. It has an undulated surface, and is laid out in lots, the access to which is by pleas- ant, winding carriage-roads. The for- est-trees are left standing in many places, shading the little lakes, or covering the hills, and, in others, those of various fo- liage are intermingled by art ; while tombs and monuments, usually planned and executed with taste, are already scattered in all parts. Staten Island, with an elevated and varied surface, offers many fine sites for villages and country-houses, and is the resort of many citizens, access being made frequent and convenient by im- merous steamboats. Tlie quarantine hospitals are situated on the northeast- ern side ; and a little below is the "sea- men's retreat," a noble institution, sup- ported by the " hospital money" paid by sailors. Hoboken and Weehawken, on the shore of New Jersey, opposite the city, ai'e pleasant retreats. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 193 History of the Sons of Liberty IN THE olden time. — The American Revolution, which has produced such extraordinary results both at home and abroad, and which is destined to cause still greater changes in the European world, will elevate the eighteenth cen- tury beyond that of any of its predeces- sors in the annals of history. The suc- cess of the great struggle for liberty, which was by the many supposed hope- less, and which present historians deem almost miraculous, was brought about by the courage and perseverance of a few indomitable spirits, whom no labor could weary or danger appal; and it was by their moral courage, perseverance, and intrepidity, that this great Revolu- tion was begun, continued, and ended. Many of those who figured largely in the history of the times, and some even who swayed the councils of the nation after the struggle was successfully begun, were content with encouraging the re- volt of others, without committing them- selves, and kept within the pale of safety until they could embark without fear upon the perilous sea. But there were some who were not only the principal agitators, but actors themselves in the most daring exploits; and who threw themselves into the breach in the most dangerous conjunctures. Had it not been for these, who took upon them- selves the fearful responsibility of di- recting and participating in overt acts of rebellion, the studied arguments of others who wished to bring on a crisis, but blenched from its dangerous concom- itants would have been unavailing. In the year 1765 Isaac Sears, after- ward better known by the name of King Sears, a man of great personal intre- pidity, forward in dangerous enterprises, and ready at all times to carry out the boldest measures, became the origina- tor and leader of a patriotic band, who associated themselves tosrether under the name of the "Sons of Liberty." Their organization soon pervaded every part of the colonies, and was the germ of the Revolution. By their intrepidity the spirit of the masses was aroused, and by their persevering industry and zeal the people were excited to oppose all efforts to enslave them. These bold spirits formed the nucleus of the future armies of the Revolution ; and it is to the moral courage which they displayed, and the indomitable resolution with which they braved all danger, that the world is indebted for the illustrious example set by the infant colonies to Europe, and the foundation of a great and glorious republic. The influence of these patriotic men, and the successful issue of the struggle begun by their boldness and sustained by their energies, has scattered abroad the seeds of freedom, which have borne fruit, in encouraging a spirit of inquiry throughout the civilized world, which has reformed despotic governments, and regenerated the fairest empires of the Old World. If the successful issue of the Revolu- tion has solved the problem of the pos- sible existence of a free yet powerful government, it is, first, to the devoted individuals who, despising the dangers and disgraces to which they were ex- posed, set at naught the penalties and disqualifications of conspiracy and trea- son, and entered into the contest with a full knowledge of all its hazards, and a determination to persist to the death to effect their emancipation — secondly, to those brave men who bore arms in the subsequent struggle — that the great meed of applause is due. To all these, how- ever obscure their names or imperfect their efforts, the nation at large owes a deep and lasting debt of gratitude. The task of perpetuating the fame of many of the great leaders of the Revo- lution has fallen into the hands of able historians, who have well performed that duty. To rescue from oblivion and to do justice to the founders of our lib- erties, whose deeds, active or passive, whose personal or moral courage was instrumental in producing great and uni- versal benefits to mankind, is peculiarly the duty of the present age. Now, when the present race, who first opened their eyes to an emancipated country, to enjoy the blessings purchased, by the blood of their fathers, are fast verging to the grave, it is incumbent on all who have the means of elucidating past trans- 13 194 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP NEW YORK. actions, or the powei- to do justice to the actors in the scenes which have preceded them, to lend their efforts before they are called to their own exit, lest the deeds of their ancestors be forgotten. It has often been remarked by histo- rians as a duty every true pati'iot owes to the public and posterity, to bring to liffht whatever can be collected from the perishing materials of former days. There are ancient manuscripts in every part of our countiy, which are thrown aside as waste-paper in families not aware of its value. This kind of knowl- edge deals much, to be sure, in dry de- tail; hut Jhcfs, upon which historians can afterward enlarge and philosophize, are what are chiefly important. We deem it a matter of such consequence that, if the exertions of individuals be not sufficient for the purpose of c(jllect- ing and preserving these materials, pub- lic authority should lend its aid to accom- plish this object, which is, in a peculiar degree, of public concern and interest. In this way are preserved to posterity the undoubted records of our early his- tory. The intent of the fii'st association of the " Sons of Liberty" was to put down the stamp-act ; and when this was effected the objects of the society appeared to be accomplished. But the acts of parlia- ment, simultaneous with and subsequent to the repeal, gave to the more sagacious a cause for alarm greater than the ob- noxious bill which had been rescinded. The billeting act, or mutiny bill, by es- tablishing a standing army in the colo- nies at their own charge, was intended to strengthen the arm of the royal au- thority, to overawe the assembly, and to coerce the people to acquiesce in the impositions of the parliament. History is full of the resistance to the enormous assumptions of the mother- country by New England and at the south ; but little is said of the attitude of New York in that dangerous crisis. And yet in that colony, where the power of the sovereign was almost omnipo- tent, notwithstanding the exertions of the most wealthy inhabitants whose large estates were held by gi-ants from the crown and whose subservience to the royal mandates influenced the assembly, and all those who subsisted by the royal bounty, there was found a chosen few who remained constant to the last ; and who, when all seemed lost, kept alive the spii'it of resistance, until from a feeble and hopeless minority they were enabled to triumph over the power of the colonial government and prostrate the royal authority for ever. The association of the " Sons of Lib- erty" was organized in 1765, soon after the passage of the stamp-act, and ex- tended throughout the colonies, from Massachusetts to South Carolina. It appears that New York was the central post from which communications were despatched to and from the east, and to the south as far as Maryland ; which province was the channel of communi- cation to and from its neighbors of Vir- ginia and the Carolinas. As the postoffices were under the control of the government, and the riders not at all times reliable, the committee of New Y'ork (and probably the other provinces adopted the same course), upon extraordinary occasions, despatch- ed intelligence by special messengers; and if need were, a part of their mem- bers visited in person the neighboring associations to insure the perfect organ- ization of the patriotic league. The NewY'ork association had a cor- respondent in London, to whom an ac- count was given of their proceedings, and from whom intelligence was from time to time transmitted of their pro- ceedings and the supposed designs of the ministry, which in its tuni was dis- seminated among the people by the as- sociation at home. A record of the names of the most active of their leaders would be a desirable document, but as this would be difficult to be obtained without great labor, and, perhaps, by a single individual impossible, a list of the committees in the different provinces, so far as they can be ascertained, from the remaining papers of the committee of New York, might be the means of initiating inquiry in other quarters tow- ard pi'oducing the desired result. Those from Maryland will appear from the following extract from the pro- DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OP NEW YORK. 195 ceedings of the " Sons of Liberty," March 1, 1766. " The Sons of Liberty of Baltimore county, and Anne Arundel county, met at the courthouse of the city of Annap- olis, the first day of March, 1766. " On motion of a Son of Liberty to appoint a moderator and secretary, the Rev. Andrew Londrum was chosen moderator, and William Paca, secre- tary. " Joseph Nicholson, of Kent county, presented an address from that county, signed William Ringgold, William Ste- phenson, Thomas Ringgold, jr., Joseph M'Hard, Gideon M'Cauley, Daniel Fox, Benjamin Binning, William Bordley, Jarvis James, William Stukely, Joseph Nicholson, jr., James Porter, Thomas Ringgold, James Anderson, Thomas Smyth, William Murray, Joseph Nichol- son, George Garnet, S. Boardley, jr., Peroy. Frisby, Henry Vandike, and John Bolton." William Paca, Samuel Chase, and Thomas B. Hands, were the Anne Arundel county committee. John Hall, Robert Alexander, Corbin Lee, James Heath, John Moale, and William Lux, were the Baltimore county committee. Thomas Chase, D. Chamier, Robert Adair, Patrick Allison, and W. Smith, were the Baltimore town committee. Pennsylvania. — William Bradford and Isaac Howell were the correspondents at Philadelphia. Neiv Jersey. — Daniel Hendrickson, minister, Peter Imlay, jr., Jos. Holmes, jr., Peter Covenhoven, jr., and Elisha Lawrence, jr., were the committee of LTpper Freehold — Richard Smith, of Burlington, and Henry Bickers of New Brunswick. Connecticut. — Jo. Burrowes ; Jona- than Sturgis, Fairfield ; John Durker, Norwich ; Hugh Leollie, Windham. Neic York. — Isaac Sears, John Lamb, William Wiley, Edward Laight, Thos. Robinson, Flores Bancker, Chas. Nicoll, Joseph AUicoke, and Gersham Mott. Jeremiah Van Rensselaer, Mynhard Roseboom, Robert Henry, and Thomas Young, Albany. John S. Hobart, Gilbert Potter, Thos. Brush, Cornelius Conklin, and Nathan- iel Williams, Huntington, Long Island. George T(jwiisend, Barack Sneething, Benjamin Townsend, George Weeks, Michael Weeks, and Rowland Cham- bers, Oyster Bay, Long Island. The first organization of the Sons of Liberty was dissolved at the repeal of the stamp-act; and while the hope was strong that similar associations would no longer be necessary, the committee received a letter from their faithful cor- respondent in London, of the following import : — London, ^%th July, 1766. Gentlemen : I flattered myself to have heard from you by the last ships, but am informed your society is dissolved, which I am glad to hear, as the cause of your complaint is removed. But I think it necessary to assure you that the continual account we had of the Sons of Liberty, through all North America, had its proper weight and ef- fect. As our gracious sovereign rules over none but free men, and in which he glories, it therefore can not offend him that his numerous and faithful sub- jects in America claim the appellation of Sons of Liberty. Permit me, there- fore, to recommend ten or twenty of the principal of you, to form yourselves into a club, to meet once a week, under the name of Liberty Club; and for ever, on the 18th of March, or first day of May, give notice to the whole body to commemorate your deliverance, spend- ing such day in festivity and joy. I beg pardon for taking the liberty to advise you ; but I am firmly of opinion it will have such effect as you wish. I have the honor to be, gentlemen, your most humble servant, Nicholas Ray. P. S. — The commercial acts and free ports which we lately sent to all the colonies I believe will give you pleas- ure. To the Sons of Liberty, New York. To this letter the committee returned the following reply : — 196 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. New York, October 10th, 1766. Sir : Your esteemed favor of the 28th July last, we have duly received ; and observe with the greatest regret your disappointment at not hearing from us, agreeably to your expectations, which, permit us to assure you, was not owing to any remissness on our part, or want of respect ; but to the dissolution of our society, which happened immedi- ately upon the repeal of the stamp-act. Your proposal with regard to a num- ber of us forming ourselves into a club, we have already had under considera- tion. But as it is imagined that some inconveniences would arise, should such a club be established just at this time, we must postpone the same till it may appear more eligible ; at the same time we take the liberty to assure you, and all our good friends on your side of the water, who so nobly exerted themselves in behalf of us, and the expiring liber- ties of their country, that we still do, and ever shall, retain the most grateful sense of the favors we have received ; and that we shall use our utmost en- deavors, consistent with loyalty, to keep up that glorious spirit of liberty which was so rapidly and so generally kindled throughout this extensive continent. In order to which, we shall not fail here- after to celebrate the anniversary of the repeal, with every demonstration of gratitude and joy, on the memorable eighteenth day of March. We have the honor to be, in behalf of the Sons of Liberty, sir, your most obedient and obliged humble servants, Isaac Sears, Edward Laight, Flores Bancker, John Lamb, Chas. Nicoll, Joseph Allicoke. To Mr. Nicholas Ray, merchant, London. It was not long before the necessity for reorganization became apparent, and most of the committee, who had acted with so much vigor and zeal, were found equally vigilant on every emergency. Of the persons before named of the New York association, Mr. Allicoke alone is known to the writer to have espoused the cause of the king. But with the exception of Messrs. Nicoll and Bancker, whose names do not ap- pear on any of the subsequent commit- tees, the others were the most deter- mined opposers of the crown and stead- fast adherents to the revolutionary party. Biography of Colonel Isaac Sears. — Among those who originated the op- position to the stamp-act, and who band- ed themselves together at the first en- croachments of the mother-country, un- der the designation of associated Sons OF Liberty, there existed, of course, a great diversity of intellectual endow- ments ; nor did all render to their country in those perilous days the same important services. Like the luminaries of heaven, each contributed his portion of influence ; but, like them, they dif- fered, as star differs from star in glory. In the constellation of great men which adorned that era, whose united boldness and constancy drove the ministeral par- ty to abandon their open attempts, and to mask their resolved purposes under measures less palpable to the general perception, few shone with more bril- liancy, or exercised a more powerful in- fluence, than the subject of this brief memoir. This gentleman was bom at Nor- walk, Fairfield county, Connecticut, in the year 1729. From the records of his native town, we leam that his parent Joshua Sears came from Harwich, Barnstable county, Massachusetts, and bousfht lands in South Norwalk in 1720, from his brother-in-law, Josiah Thatch- er. By the Harwich records, after care- ful researches made by Amos Otis, Esq., a distinguished antiquarian, it appears that Joshua was a resident of Harwich, and married Mercy Thatcher, in 1719, and removed to Connecticut. His pil- grim ancestor, Richard Sears, originally of Colchester. England, stands inscribed — one of eighty-nine names — on the first rate-list, in the old colony records. He came from Holland, with sixty persons, and landed at Plymouth on the 8th of May, in 1630, the last, or among the last, of Robinson's congregation at Leyden, Colonel Sears was engaged for sever- al years in an extensive and profitable business, as a dealer in European and India goods, at New York, New Ha- ven, and Boston. But in 1763, when it DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. 197 was announced that the British minis- try had in view to tax the colonies for the purpose of raising a revenue, which was to be placed at the disposal of the crown, his mind was turned to politics, and became in a great measure detached from mercantile pursuits. The cause of freedom at once became an all-en- grossing subject with him. He felt its inspiration. It occupied his warmest thoughts, enlivened his conversation, and employed his pen. In respect to his private affairs, this was an unfortunate trait of character ; but most fortunate for his country, since he thus acquii'ed an extensive knowledge of those principles of rational liberty which he afterward asserted and maintained with 30 much energy. At a public meeting held on the 6th of November, 1765, Sears and four others were appointed the committee of corre- spondence with the other colonies. Bot- ta, in his history of the United States, says that it was difficult to fill the com- mittee ; but that Sears first volunteered, and was joined by four otheis, whose names, he regrets, are not known.* On the 26th of December, 1765, this committee notified the public that they would soon be called upon. Informa- tion had been received that a further importation of stamps was expected. On the 7th of January, 1766, they ar- rived, were seized and destroyed, and notice sent to Philadelphia. The an- swer to that despatch is directed to Messrs. Sears, Lamb, Robinson, Wily, and Mott. No other committee is known to have existed at that time, and that committee managed the correspond- ence with the different colonies, and with the interior of the state. They framed articles of union for the differ- ent colonies, which were sent to the east- ward for concurrence, and after it was obtained, despatched them to Baltimore to be approved, and sent further south for adoption. Of this, proof is to be found in the original draughts of letters (or copies) and replies that were ad- dressed to those gentlemen. It is believed that the principal let- " They were John Lamb, Gershom Mott, Wil- liam Wily, and Thomas Robinson. ters, instructions, &c., forwarded to the sister-colonies, were prepared by Mr. Seal's, as the chairman of the associa- tion. In various ways his appeals made the most powerful remonstrances against the injustice of England, in debasing Americans from the character of free subjects to the state of tributary slaves. The " Sons of Liberty" were among the first who urged the necessity of that mutual understanding and corre- spondence among them, which laid the foundation of their future confederacy; led to the first continental congress at New York, in 1766 ; prepared the way for the continental congress which as- sembled in Philadelphia on the 5th of September, 1774 ; and eventually re- sulted in the public and explicit decla- ration of independence on the ever- memorable 4th of July, 1776. Apart from the higher, the epochal incidents in the life of humanity, the epitomes of years, deeds, and nations, there are events which do not claim to be inscribed upon the page of general history ; and yet, from the deep local influence they once exercised, still pre- serve a commemorative interest, and convey an impressive lesson. The great war of our independence is rife with such illustrations. Its memories and heroes crowd so thickly near us, that its history can not yet be written. But as each day adds to the legendary store, and we draw nigh the hour when it may be traced, time silently distils the mass of events, and the mingled vapors which ascend from the alembic, will be con- densed by impartiality into truth. The events we are about to recall, occurred in New Yoik and its vicinity, between the months of September, 1775, and September, 1776. The revolution was hardly three months old. But already from the cra- dle of liberty it had strangled its ser- pents at Lexington and Bunker's hill. The American army, encamped around Boston, owned Washington's command, and held at bay the beleagured British. In the oppressed colonies, a spirit of re- sistance had organized the resolute yeo- manry ; and with the victories inscribed upon the national escutcheon, the patri- 198 DESCttlPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. Otic chord was vibrating in every heart. War had not yet disturbed our goodly city, which lay in unconscious repose, on the mellow night of the 23d of Au- gust, 1775. One or two riots, the re- sult of political faction, rather than of unadulterated rebellion, alone gave to- kens of a turbulent spirit. The Eng- lish governor, Tryon, still dwelt here, an object of courtesy, though of mis- trust. In the North river, off the fort, lay the Asia, a British man-of-war, with whose presence people had become fa- miliar. The public mind was in a state of vague apprehension. It remciined for its hopes and fears to assume a definite shape. Toward midnight, our forefathers were aroused from their first slumbers by the thunder of artillery. At that silent hour, the ominous sounds were unwelcome visitants. The cannon peals were relieved by the sharp discharge of musketry; and the stillness that ensued was occasionally broken by the hasty footsteps of one summoned to his duty, with unbuckled sabre trailing on the ground, or by the agitated cry of a help- less woman, fleeing from the audible danger. Drums beat to arms ; volley after volley announced the continuation of the strife ; and the half-waked dream- er no longer mistook these cries of war for the echoes of eastern battles. As the night advanced, one body of men suc- ceeding another was revealed by the blaze of torches, and the cumbrous wheels of the field-piece they were dragging, seemed to leave reluctantly the scene of conflict. By-and by, troops of dwellers in the lower part of the town escaped through the streets, from their menaced or shattered abodes, in confusion and fear. Was the enemy in the city I the Battery taken 1 Were the troops forced to retreat before a vic- torious foe ? These interrogatories were breathed rather than spoken, or if put, were not answered. It was a memora- ble niglit, and something seemed to have delayed the approach of morning. The town was early astir. At break of day, many inhabitants were seen is- suing from their dwellings, and wend- ing their way to the Battery. To those already assembled there, when night up- rolled her curtain of clouds, the glowing dawn that shot over our noble bay, dis- closed traces of disorder, and ravages of the cannon-ball, on the one hand and on the other, the smoke still ascending from the angry artillery to the powder- stained rigging of the Asia. Moreover, the field-pieces, which but yesterday guarded the Battery, were gone. These the timid received as tokens of danger, and prepared to depart ; the intrepid hailed them as auspicious omens of fu- ture victories. The twenty-one pieces of ordnance had been removed by order of the provincial congress. Col. John Lamb's artillery ci)rps, aud the " Sons of Liberty," head- ed by Colonel Sears, were the hei'oes of the adventure. The eff'orts of the enemy to protect these royal stores, had proved unavailing. Warned of the in- tended movement. Captain Vandeput, of the Asia, detached an armed barge to watch, and if needful, interfere with, its execution. A musket fired from this boat, drew Colonel Lamb's volley, and a man on board was killed. The Asia fired three cannon. The drum beat to arms in the city. The man-of-war sus- tained the cannonade. Three citizens were wounded, and the upper parts of various houses near Whitehall and the fort, received much injury. A son of Colonel Lamb, whose regiment covered the cannons' retreat, is now living in this city, and in the rooms of the " His- torical Society" may be seen one of the very balls fired into New York that night, James Rivington was, then, the edito- rial and proprietary pidilisher of the " New York Gazette,"* and as the oppo- • This Gazette attained the greatest notoriety du- ring the revolutionarj- war, azid was at first entitled, Rivivgtoti's New York Gazetteer ; or, The Conncc- tieiit, New Jersey, Hudson's River, and Quebec Weekly Adiverther. This Gazette coiumenced its career April 22, 1773, on a large medium sheet folio. It was print ed, weekly, on Thursday ; and when it had been es- tablished one year, this imprint followed the title, •Printed at his ever open and uninfluenced press, fronting Hanover square." A large cut of a ship un- der sail was at first introduced into the title, uniler which were the words " New York Packet." This cut soon gave place to one of a smaller size. In No- vember, 177't, the ship was removed, and the king's arms took the place of it. In August, 1775, Uie site party subsided in the expression of its political sentiments, and loyalism was no lonsrer in terror of a Sears, he not only gave free vent to his own views, but so far forgot himself, as sadly to abuse those of his radical neighbors. Emboldened by their quiet reception of his denunciations, he expressed these in still, more forcible tones, and doubtless exulted in this victory over whig opin- ions. It was high noon, on Thursday, the twenty-third of November. The Ga- zette had been issued that morning, and the worthy editor was seated in his cabi- net, examining the new-born sheet, just like any gentleman of the press in our day, when the sound of hoofs on the pavement beneath, drew his attention to the window. Looking out into the street, he beheld, with dismay, his old enemy. Col. Sears, at the head of an armed troop of horsemen, drawn up before his door. The men and their leader dismounted with the utmost de- liberation, and a part of them entered the printer's abode. A few moments after, he saw his beloved printing-press cast into the street, and heard the tu- mult raised in the composit(jrs' room above him, by those engaged in the work of demolition. To his despair, the materials thrown upon the pave- ment were speedily transferred to the dock, and the invader sallied forth with words " Ever open and uninfiuenced" were omitted in tlie imprint. The Gazetteer was patronized in all the principal towns by the advocates of the British administration who approved the measures adopted toward the col- onies ; and it undoubtedly had some support from " his majesty's government." The paper obtained an extensive circulation, biit eventually paid very lit- tle respect to " the majesty of the people ;" and, in consequence, the paper and its publisher soon be- came obnoxious to the whigs. While in England, Rivington supplied himself with a new printing apparatus, and was appointed king's printer for New York. After the British gained possession of the city, he returned ■} and, on October 4, 1777, recommenced the publication of his Gazette under the original title, but in two weeks he exchanged lliat title for the following : " Rivington's New York Loyal Gazette ;" and on the 13th of De- cember following, he called his paper, '■ The Royal Gazette." Imprint : " Published by James Riving- ton, Printer to the King's Most Excellent Majesty." The Royal Gazette was numbered as a continua- tion of the Gazetteer, and Loyal Gazette, and was pubii.tlied on Wednesdays and Saturdays ; printed on a sheet of royal, size, with the royal arms in the title. many a pound of precious types in their pockets and handkerchiefs. A large crowd, collected by so unusual an event, stood aloof, quiet spectators of the scene. The cavaliers remounted their steeds, and rode off toward Connecticut, whence they came, and where, as was subse- quently ascertained, the offending types were melted down to bullets. Thus liberty assailed the freedom of the press, and the balls whilom cast with joy into types, reassumed their pristine shape and destination ; the ploughshare was reconverted to the sword. Although no opposition was offered to these proceedings, by the body of citizens assembled near Rivington's door, there stood upon a neighboring stoop a lad of eighteen years of age, with an eye of fire, and an angry arm, harangu- ing the multitude in a tone of eai'nest eloquence. He urged that order should be preserved ; appealing warmly to the dignity of citizenship, " which," said he, " should not brook an encroachment of unlicensed troops from another colony," and offering to join in checking the in- truders' progress. The sins of Riving- ton could not be forgiven ; but the youthful orator was listened to with re- spectful deference by that crowd which already recognised the genius and fer- vor of Alexander Hamilton. A detailed account of all the important exploits in which Sears was either the leader, or bore a distinguished part, would far exceed our prescribed limits. He was elected to the New York provin- cial congress, which met in October, 1765 ; and was the first person who made a motion to erect fortifications on the island. They were projected on a comprehensive scale. With an intelli- gent eye, he embraced the extensive lo- calities to be defended, and detected their vulnerable points. He also acted a conspicuous part in the excitement oc- casioned by the Boston port bill ; and was warmly recommended by General Washington to Major General Lee, for his zeal and fidelity.* * The following letter from General Washington, dated Cambridge, February 26, 1776, to his aid-de- camp and secretary. General Joseph Reed, will be read with interest : — " You must know, my dear sir, that Colonel Sears 200 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW YORK. Owing, probably, to his exclusive at- tention to politics, he lost his entire capi- tal, a few years after the close of the war. He had freely expended his wealth, and the best portion of his life, in the service of his country, from 1765 to the successful termination of the rev- olutionary struggle. The knowledge [ of facts like these diminishes the won- j der which has sometimes been expres- sed, that America should have success- | fully contended with Great Britain. Her j physical strength was comparatively weak ; but the moral courage of her early patriots was to her instead of num- bers, of wealth, or of fortifications. We close this imperfect sketch with a short extract from the journals of Ma- jor Samuel Shaw, of Boston, the first American consul at Canton,* being the only authentic account we have of the last days of this brave man : — " Toward the close of November, 1785, proposals were made to me by Colonel Isaac Sears, and other gentle- men in New York, to take a concern with them in a voyage to Canton, with Mr. Sears to superintend the business, A suitable cargo having been provided, we sailed from New York, on the 4th of February, 1786, bound to Batavia and Canton. * * * On the 4th of July we anchored in the road of Batavia. Hav- ing transacted our business there, we left for Canton on the 23d of the same month, — Mr. Sears and the captain be- ing confined to their beds with a fever, was here, with some other gentlemen from Connec- ticut, when the intelhgence of Clinton's embarkation came to hand. » ♦ " What, then, was to be done ? Why, Col. Sears and the other gentlemen assured me, that if the necessity of the case was signified by me. and that Gen. Lee should be sent, one thousand volunteers (requiring no pay, but supplied with pro- visions only) would march immediately to New York, and defend the place until congress should deter- mine what should be done ; and that a line from me to Governor Trumbull would facilitate the measure." t Boston : published by Crosby and Nichols, 1847, a valuable contribution to our revolutionary history. which had attacked them two days be- fore. * * * We arrived at Canton on the 10th of August, Mr. Sears still remain- ing very sick. After remaining there three days, he began to recover slowly ; and at one pei'iod he had so far got the better of his disorder as to leave the vessel, and pass two days with us at the factory ; when, finding the air did -not agree with him, he returned on board ship. There, at first, he continued to gain strength daily ; but in a short time after he relapsed, and a flux setting in with his fever, the disease baffled the efforts of medicine, and earned him off on the 28th of October, in the fifty-sev- enth year of his age. His remains were interred the next day, on French island, with the usual solemnities ; and previ- ous to our ship leaving Whampoa, a tomb was elected over him, and a suitable in- scription placed upon it. To give his character in a few words : he was an honest man, an agreeable acquaintance, and a warm friend." pp. 219 and 227. DuNLAP, in his useful history, has done much to perpetuate the names of many of the Sons of Liberty. He speaks of Sears, M'Dougall, and Willett, as composing the most efficient and deter mined committees, from 1765 to the breaking out of the war, and who were in active correspondence with the patri- ots of the other colonies, and aided by their labors to keep up the ardor of opposition to the encroachments of the ministry. It is matter of much regret, that more ample materials do not re- main to do justice to these and others , of the fiaternity. 1 It may safely be said, that wherever danger was to be encountered, or re- sponsibility to be incurred, Isaac Sears was to be found ; and with him was in- dissolubly associated his efficient coad- jutor, John Lamb. These were em- phatically the tribunes of the people. {^a^^Z^ c:::^^^^ Tac-nmiU of the Signature of Isaac Sean DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. 201 The situation of this state is in some respects quite peculiar. It is long and narrow, and lies be- tween two of the largest and most important states in the Union. While, on the one hand, its terri- tory is thus rendered highly im- portant, as the only direct thor- oughfare between them, on the other, strong influences oppose the existence of a single, united spirit among the people. The Hudson and New York city at- tract the business of East Jersey, as the Delaware and Philadelphia do that of West Jersey, In several respects, however, this state has points of interest equal to any of her sisters of the Union, which will be in some measure exhibited, even in the few pages which we have to devote to the following description. New Jersey possesses a considerable variety of climate, for a country of so small a surface, as its length is two or three times greater than its breadth, and it stretches directly north and south, while there is a considerable difference of ele- vation between the low, sandy regions in the southern parts, and the hilly and almost mountainous northern counties. Much of the former district also lies near the sea, while the latter is removed to a distance from it. The Allegany range, crossing the northwestern parts, gives them the character just alluded to; and, while it affects the soil and vegetable productions, yields rich mineral products, several mines of copper and iron being wrought — the lat- ter to much advantage. The proportion of good land is not large, as the " piny woods" in the south too nearly resemble the "pine barrens" of the southern At- lantic border, of which they appear to be the beginning ; while through the ele- vated districts are considerable tracts inconvenient of access, or incapable of cultivation. The railroads and canals, however, which cross the state in several places, afford important facilities for transportation as well as for travelling. 202 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. History. — Henry Hudson entered Delaware bay on the 28th of August, 1609, and made an attempt to penetrate by it into the continent, a short time be- fore he discovered the harbor of New York (namely, September 3), and the river which bears his name. The first settlements made by Europeans on the soil of this state were but a little subse- (juent to the first occupation of Manhat- tan island. The first Dutch vessel came out to trade in the Hudson in 1610, and the fort was erected at the Battery in 1614. In the latter year a redoubt ap- pears to have been thrown up on the Jersey shore. About the year 1618, a colony of Danes or Norwegians, who had come out with the Dutch, made a settlement at Bergen, opposite New York. The first settlement in West Jer- sey is believed to have been made in 1623, by Cornelius Jacobse Mey, whose name is commemorated in Cape May. He proceeded up Delaware bay to Timber creek, a little above Camden, where he built Fort Nassau. He sailed in the employment of the Dutch West India company, which had been formed in 1621. Individuals obtained chartei's from that association, to large tracts of land, subject only to the Indian claim, one of which, opposite New York, ex- tended thirty-two miles by two. One man thus obtained a tract sixteen miles square, at Cape May, bought of nine In- dian chiefs. Some of these great land- holders associated, and sent out David Petersen de Vries in a ship, to make a settlement on the Delaware, in 1630. He found Fort Nassau in the possession of the Indians, and no traces of its for- mer occupants. He built another fort, and left it to return to Holland ; but the jrarrison were soon massacred to a man. After another unsuccessful attempt to plant a colony, the treachery of the na- tives discouraged the company, and the enterprise was abandoned. In 1637, two Swedish vessels arrived in the Delaware, and settlements were commenced on the western side, but lands were occupied only on the eastern. In 1642, Printz Hall came over as gov- ernor, under the appointment of the queen of Sweden, and established his residence on Tinnicum island, building a fort, laying out a garden, and erecting a church and several houses. Among his companions were John Campanius Holm, afterward the historian of the colony, and an engineer named Lind- strom, who published a map of the Del- aware and its borders. There has been much doubt respecting the grounds on which the Swedes rested their claim to this part of the country ; and they soon found it contested by the Dutch, who, having reoccupied Fort Nassau and sev- eral other points, were called upon to surrender them, and, on their refiisal, compelled to submit by force. Govern- or Stuyvesant, of New York, soon in- terfered, and regained the Dutch posi- tions, and easily reduced the Swedish posts, finally capturing the seat of gov- ernment at Tinnicum island. This blow terminated the Swedish power on the Delaware, called by them New Sweden. In 1640, a number of English colo- nists arrived from New Haven, claiming a right to occupy the soil under British authority ; and thus the foundation was laid of disputes, which from time to time caused considerable difficulty. The tra- dinghouse which they erected was de- stroyed in one case ; and in others their goods were confiscated, and some of the men imprisoned. The British and the Dutch governments had some warm al- tercations on the question of right to this part of the country. It is reported that some of the descendants of the early New Haven colonists still remain in Sa- lem, Cumberland, and Cape May. The year 1664 was the epoch of the reduction of the New Netherlands (now New York), by Colonel Nichols, at the command of Charles II. Sir Robert Carr soon after obtained possession of the posts and colonies on the Delaware, having entered the bay with two frig- ates, and expended "two barrels of gun- powder and twenty shot." The same year, Charles, by a royal patent, con- ' ferred it upon the Duke of York ; and ' he conveyed a large tract, named " Nova Ceesarea" (New Jersey), to Lord Berke- j ley and Sir George Carteret. The name then bestowed, and which is still retain- ed, is said to have been chosen in com- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. 203 pHment to Carteret, because he had de- fended the island of Jersey against the " long parliament" in the civil wars. Berkeley and Carteret conferred a constitution on the colony, securing to all ecjual rights and privileges, including liberty of conscience ; and the latter was appointed governor, and took up his residence at Elizabethtown, in 1665. Having purchased land from the Indi- ans, he sent an invitation to Connecticut for settlers, on su(di favorable terms that many accepted it, and the population of the colony rapidly increased. But in 1672, difficulties, which had arisen between some of the older set- tlers and the proprietors, proceeded so far that an insurrection broke out, in ccjusecjuence of the demand of tlio latter of lents for lands purchased by the for- mer before the date of the charter of King Charles. The result was, tliat the governor was driven from the colony ; and he repaired to England for redress, while his officers were resisted, deposed, ' and imprisoned by the people. The New Netherlands l)eing recov- ered, in 1673, by the Dutch, New Jer- sey passed with her again under her for- , mer proprietor. But this change was i followed, the next spring, by a more permanent arrangement by treaty, in | consequence of which the English were restored to the possession. The duke of York, to prevent any exposure of his title to question, on account of the in- tervention of the late Dutch conquest, procured a new patent ; and, in 1664, Sir Edmund Andross arrived, with the authority of governor of the province of New York, claiming jurisdicticm over New Jersey also, under pretence that the pr()])rietors had lost their property by the Dutch conquest. This arbitrary man, whose injustice and oppression caused so much evil in New England, gave place to Philip Carteret, in 1675, who resumed the government of East Jersey, and so conciliated the colonists that order was restored. He postponed the demand of the payment of quilreiits, but, on the other hand, in a list of " con- cessions" which he published, he laid some restrictions on political freedom. He attempted to open a trade with New England ; but Andross, still governor of New York, opposed him, protending that it would injure his colony. At length Andross sent to Elizabethtown, to seize Carteret and take him to New York. Lord Berkeley about this time offijrt^ his share of the province for sale, as its prospects were not flattering; and it was conveyed to John Fen wick, in trust for Edward Byllinge, members of the soci- ety of friends, for one thousand pounds. Th(; part sold was afterward called West Jersey, a designation often used at the present day. In 1675, the first English vessel arrived in the Delaware wliich ever visited West Jersey, and it brought ovei- Fenvvick and his two daughters, with a number of servants, and a com- pany of settlers. He selected a pleas- ant and fertile spot, which he named iSalem, and there ])lanted his colony. The following are the; names of some of the colonists : Edward Champness, Edward Wade, Samuel Wade, John Smith and his wife, Samuel Nichols, Richard Ciuy, Ri(-hard Noble, Richard Hancock, John Pledger, Hippolite Le- fevre, and .John Matlock. These men, and others whose names are not given, were heads of families. It was two years, however, before another ship ar- rived, probably in consequence of a dif- ference which arose lietween Fenwick and Jiyllinge. Byllinge was sharer to much the greater amount, having ninety out of a hundred shares, while Fenwick had but ten. J>yllinge, however, failed in his business, which was that of a mer- chant ; and the management of his prop- erty here was intrusted to William Penn, and his quaker friends, Gowen and Lu- cas, by whom much of it was sold to different purchasers. These proprietors published a plan of government, under the name of " concessions," by which "the proprietors, freeholders, and inhab- itants of each of the ten proprieties, were authorized to meet annually, and choose by ballot one man each, to act as commissioners." A deed was then made between Sir George Carteret and the trustees of Byllinge, dated July 1, 1676, fixing the boundary-lines as follows : " We have all that side on the Delawai'e a04 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. river, from one end to the other : the line of partition is on the east side of Little Egg harbor, straight north, through the country, to the utmost branch of Delaware river, with all powers, priv- ileges, and immunities, whatsoever. Ours is called New West Jersey ; yours is called New East Jersey." Two companies of London and York- shire friends wei'e among the purchasers of lands in New West Jersey ; and, in 1677, commissioners came out to pui'- chase land of the Indians, &c. The ship in which they came out arrived at New Castle on the 16th day of the 6th month, old style, bringing also two hun- dred and thirty passengers as colonists. They were glad, for a time, to land at Rackoon creek, and take up with such poor accommodations as they could find in the houses and cowsheds of the few Swedes whom they found occupying the spot, and found snakes numerous, creep- ing about the buildings. After making purchases of the Indians, who were nu- merous, the settlement of Burlington was commenced, and first called New Beverley, and afterward Bridlington ; soon after which it received its present name. The following are some of the masters of families who formed this set- tlement : Thomas Olive, Daniel Wills, William Peachy, William Clayton, John Crips, Thomas Eves, Thomas Harding, Thomas Nositer, Thomas Fairnsworth, Morgan Drewit, William Ronton, Hen- ry Jenings, William Hibes, Samuel Lovett, John Woolston, William Wood- mancy, and Christopher Saunders ; Rob- ert Powell, William Wilkinson, and Wil- liam Perkins, died on the passage, but left families. In 1679, George Carteret died, and, according to his will, East Jersey was sold, to pay his debts. The indenture of lease and release is dated February 1 and 2, 1681-'82, and conveys the property to William Penn and eleven others, who, in the following year, pub- lished a description of the country, with a plan of a town. These men were called the " twelve proprietors." Each of these took a partner ; and to these " twenty-four proprietors" the duke of York made a new grant of East New Jersey, on the 14th of March, 1682 ; at which time about seven hundred fami- lies were supposed to be residing in that part of the country. A brief notice of important epochs is all we have room to give after this pe- riod. In 1702, in consequence of pro- longed disputes and difficulties, the pro- prietoi's resigned the government of the colonies to Queen Anne, who, on the 17th of April, 1702, accepted the offer, and reunited the East and West into one province, appointing her kinsman, Ed- ward Hyde (Lord Cornbury), the gov- ernor. He was grandson of the chan- cellor. Earl of Clarendon. The com- mission and instructions then given him remained as the constitution of New Jersey until the Revolution. The gov- ernor and twelve councillors were ap- pointed by the crown ; and twenty-four members of assembly, elected by the people for an indefinite term, met at Burlington and Perth Amboy alteraate- ly. Among these instructions was one allowing liberty of conscience to all, ex- cept papists, and one prohibiting print- ing in the colony. In 1702, the period when New Jersey became a colony of the crown, the pop- ulation was estimated at twenty thou- sand ; of which twelve thousand were set down for East, and eight thousand for West Jersey. Lord Cornbury was kept in prison, for debt, from 1703 till the death of his father, when he was raised to the peerage, and was i-eleased by law. He is said to have been more detested by the people than any other governor the province had ever had. Governor Lovelace, Lieut. GovenKU'In- goldsby, and Governor Hunter, were in turn at the head of the colony ; under the second of whom paper-currency was first introduced into New Jersey, with its long train of evils. One of the pre- texts for it was to raise funds for an expedition against Canada. William Burnet, son of the celebrated Bishop Burnet, was appointed governor in 1710, and held the office ten years, and afterwai'd was governor of New York and New Jersey until 1727. The last of the royal governors was William Franklin, son of the celebrated Benja- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. 205 min. He entered upon his office in 1763, the epoch signalized by the ti'eaty by which France ceded Canada to Great Britain, and thus terminated the harass- ing wars which for half a century had caused great evil to the colonies. New Jersey contributed liberally to the expe- ditions marched against Canada in 1758, 1759, and 1760 ; for, although her quota was but five hundi'ed men, she raised and supported a thousand, and, in 1761, and 1762, six hundred men, and incurred a debt of forty thousand pounds. As the Revolution approached, New Jersey was among the foremost oppo- sers of British oppression. In July, 1774, the people of the different coun- ties held meetings to express their con- demnation of the closing of the port of Boston, &c., &c. Delegates went to the congress in Philadelphia, who reported to the assembly, on the 1 1th of January, 1775. The governor, however, who was op- posed to resistance, endeavored to de- feat the wishes of the people and legis- lature, particularly by I'efusing to con- voke the latter. The delegates were, therefore, appointed by a convention. On the 2.3d of May, 1775, the second convention assembled at Trenton, and laid a tax of ten thousand pounds, to support a company or more, which it ordered to be raised in each of the town- ships and corporations. This was con- firmed by the provincial congress, which met in August following, and directed the oi"ganization of fifty-four companies, of sixty-four minute-men each. Ten battalions were accoi'dingly formed : one in each of the counties of Bergen, Essex, Middlesex, Monmouth, Somer- set, Morris, Sussex, Hunterdon, and Burlington, and one in Gloucester and Salem together. Independent light-in- fantry and rangers were raised in Cum- berland and Cape May. At the same meeting, a resolution was adopted which rendered the people and their representatives less dependent on the will of the governor. It provided that, during the controversy with the mother-country, the voters should annu- ally meet and choose deputies to the provincial congress ; and this body was invested with the powers of govern- ment. In vain the governor made an- other effort at resistance. He held one more meeting of the legislature ; but it was the last. They would not consent to declare that they had no intentions to proclaim independence. The body was prorogued till January, 3, 1776 ; but it never met again. The provincial congress assembled again on the 10th of June ; and, on the I8th of July, a few days after the dec- laration of independence at Philadel- phia, New Jersey assumed the title of a state. The seal which was then adopted and made is still in use, thoucfh much worn. A copy of parts of it is under the vignette at the head of this descrip- tion. The head of a horse over a globe is supported by figures of Liberty and Ceres, while three ploughs are placed between them, and the following legend surrounds the whole : " The great seal of the state of New Jersey : mdcclxxvt." It is made of silver, two and a half inch- es long, and three eighths in thickness. On the 25th of June, Governor Frank- lin was made prisoner, by the command of the provincial congress, as an enemy to the liberties of the country, and sent to Connecticut, under a guard, to be kept under the charge of Governor Trumbull, who placed him, with several other ad- vocates of British authority, in Middle- town. When released, after a consid- erable time, he went to England, where he enjoyed a pension. William Livingston was appointed governor of New Jersey, by the new legislature, on the 31sl of August; and he was annually re-elected for fourteen years. And now commenced the long course of trials which the Revolution brought in its train, and in which this state suffered most severely. Her pe- culiar situation, which renders it, durinfr peace, the thoroughfare of important commerce and travel, exposed her, in the war, to the passage and the occupa- tion of armies, and as the theatre of incursions. The navigable waters on her boundaries, so convenient and safe to the hundreds of merchant-ships and steamboats, by which they are crowded in our day, then gave too easy access to the enemy's fleets and squadrons. Her plains, now covered with fields and vil- lages, churches, schoolhouses, and coun- try-seats, and crossed by canals and rail- roads, which science has marked f)ut, and which industry employs, were then traversed by armed troops, and often stained with blood. On the heights wliere the husbandman or the citizen comes to erect his rural residence, are often found traces of entrenchments, thrown up at the command of Lord Howe or of Genei'al Washington. In the following pages will be found brief notices of some of the principal military movements and events which took place in the course of the war. New .Jersey has the honor of being a very early and decided advocate of tem- perance ; the value of which our coun- try has been solemnly taught by a long course of bitter experience. The mod- ern practice of opposing intemperance by association is extensively adopted in this state. The fiirst laws of the colony imposed fines of a shilling and two shillings and sixpence for what they denominate "the beastly vice, drunkenness;" and, in 1682, the sum was raised to five shil- lings, and sitting in the stocks for six hours was substituted when that was not paid. Liquors, however, were then allowed to be sold in small quantities, though at first they were not. In 1688, an " ordinary," or tavern, was re w > o w o w H is O ■ r o n o > en w g 5 ;> f8 XI O K -0 a m 03 >< ►^ 2 z c O n so g P w I illi! ' 'If' iriiiii'ii>ili|iii ' ■ i!' I' I iliil: hipilr IIIIH! i| I I: 'l' I'l '!! i' !ii;.;lir:!'!l'i!ili| ill liliiii' li'iiiiiiii! '!l,ii!i| ill i :i|ill;ili ill ;i''i i':- ::i,ii!. illfi!!' lipiii;', IIV.'I l! I|!i!iiii^?v ! iii;,i u 210 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. Here is also the presbyterian seminary. The country in the neighborhood is agreeably diversified, with a good soil, peculiarly favorable to apples. It con- tains several churches, academies, and schools. There are several handsome houses, with gardens and yards arranged with taste ; but the college-green, with its several buildings, is the principal or- nament. In the rear of it, but fronting on the street, is Nassau hall, the oldest college-building, which has a venerable appearance. It has four low stories, chiefly appropriated to the students. Before the battle of Princeton, it was used for barracks, and the lower story for stables, and was defended by a party of the British troops, and stood a sharp fire from Washington's soldiers. A can- non-ball entered the chapel, and tore | away the head of a picture of King [ George II. The library is a building a little west ; and on the east is a building devoted to recitation-rooms, the chymi- cal laboratory, &c. A little in its rear is a new college-building ; and in front, near the street, and near both extremi- ties of the grounds, are the houses of the president and the professors. The college was founded in 1742, and owed its origin to a division introduced into the presbyterian church in the days of Wliitefield ; from which two synods arose — that of New York and that of Philadelphia. Nassau hall, the principal edifice, was built in 1757, and was thus named in honor of King William III., on request of Governor Belcher, who had presented his valuable library, of 474 volumes, tcj the institution, and after whom the trus- tees proposed to call it. The building was one hundred and seventy-six feet long, fifty wide, and fi^ur stories high. The governor's library suffered much from the British and American soldiers, who in turn occupied the building; and almost all the remaining volumes were destroyed by fire, which, March G, 1802, burnt all the edifice except the walls, which still remain. Elizabethtown, on a small stream which flows into Staten island sound, four miles from Newark, was named afi;er Lady Elizabeth, wife and executrix of Lord Carteret. It contains four church- es, a bank, a courthouse, a jail, several public and private schools, and about 2,560 inhabitants. It is situated on low, level ground, with a good soil. By steam- boat, it has a communication with New York several times a day, as well as by the New Jersey railroad, which forms an important link in the great line of rail- roads that now extends along almost the whole Atlantic border of the United States. Elizabethport, two miles from the principal village, is the landing-place of the steamboats. New Brunswick. — This city, the cap- ital of Middlesex county, stands on the west side of Raritan river, fourteen miles from its mouth, twenty-six miles north- east from Trenton, and twenty-nine from New York. It lies partly in Franklin, and partly in North Brunswick, Albany street being the dividing line. Near the river the streets are narrow, and the ground low ; but on the hill, which rises behind, everything is changed for the better. Here are a courthouse, jail, and eight churches, with above five thousand inhabitants. Steamboats ply daily to New York. The New Jersey raih'oad passes through the town; and the Dela- ware and Raritan canal commences here, which extends to Bordentown, forty-two miles. It is seventy-five feet wide, and seven feet deep, allowing sloops to pass of from 75 to 100 tons. It is supplied by a feeder from the Delaware, twenty- three miles long ; including which, rhe cost was $2,500,000. An old bridge, now useless, was built across the Rari- tan at New Brunswick, in 1811, at an expense of $86,687. There is another for the railroad. Rutgers College stands on the high ground in the northwestern quarter of the town. It was founded in 1770, with the name of Queen's college; but being unendowed, it did not go into operation until 1781. In 1810, it was connected with the general synod of the reformed Dutch church, and, in 1825, the building was purchased by the synod, and the present name was given to the institu- tion, in honor of Colonel Rutgers, of New York, a liberal benefactor ; since which time it has flourished. ^^^;;»2:^:^ 212 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. Newark, the most populous town in the state, is situated rin a fine, level tract of ground, on the west side of Passaic river, nine miles west from New York, and forty-nine northeast from Trenton. Vessels of one hundred tons come up to the wharves ; the New Jersey railroad passes through the town, on the way from New York to Philadelphia ; and here is the commencement of the Morris and Essex railroad. The Morris canal pass- es through the place, which opens a chan- nel of transportation between New York and the Delaware river. The principal streets are wide, well built, and shaded with trees. Two largo squares, in the middle of the town, add much to its beauty. It contains three banks, a courthouse, twenty-five church- es, an apprentices' and a circulating li- brary, a mechanics' association, and, in 1840, 17,290 inhabitants. The coast- ing-trade is considerable, and a whaling and sealing company was incorporated in 1833. Manufactures of several kinds are carried on to a great extent, espe- cially in leather, carriages, &c. Newark was first settled by a colony from Connecticut, in May, 1666, in com- ] pliance with the " concessions" sent to 1 New England by Lord Carteret. Cap- tain Robert Treat, John Curtis, Jasper | Crane, and John Treat, having been sent from Guilford, Branford, and Milton, in that state, and made a favorable report, especially in favor of this place, they were sent again, and laid out the town, with the main streets and squares. Thir- ty families, from those towns and New Haven, at length arrived ; but the Hack- ensack Indians refused to let them land, until they had satisfied their demands. They soon made a purchase, to the sat- isfaction of the wild men, giving them one hundred and thirty pounds New England currency, twelve Indian blan- kets, and twelve guns, for a tract of land now including the townships of Spring- field, Livingston, Orange, Caldwell, and Bloomfield. Patkrson. — This town, thirteen miles north of Newark, and seventeen north- west of New York, is situated at the falls of the Passaic, at a spot abounding in romantic scenes, and peculiarly favor- able for manufacturing by water-power. The stream makes a perpendicular de- scent of seventy feet over a precipice, in a sheet of foam, which is partly con- cealed by a projecting rock. A deep sluice, cut through the hard bank, draws off the water for the numerous manufac- tories below, so that the river is left al- most dry in the summer-season. The town contains two banks, a phi- losophical society, with a library, an academy, fourteen churches, and about nine thousand inhabitants. It was cho- sen for the site of a great cotton manu- facturing place by Alexander Hamilton, who, with his associates, were incorpora- ted, in 1791, with a capital of a million of dollars. The early period at which their design was formed testifies to their intelligence and foresight, as the inven- tions of Arkwright were almost un- know^n in the United States. A board of directors was appointed, consisting of William Duer, John Dewhui'st, Ben- jamin Walker, Nicholas Low, Royal Flint, Elisha Boudinot, John Bayard, JohnNeilson, Archibald Mercer, Thom- as Lowring, George Lewis, More Fur- man, and Archibald M'Comb ; and Wil- liam Dvier was made the principal officer. In 1792, when this spot was selected, there were not more than ten houses in the place, which was named in honor of Governor William Paterson. Major i L'Enfan was appointed engineer, and I began to cut the race on a scale unne- I cessary large and expensive, and resign- ed in a short time. He was succeeded I by Mr. Colt, who adopted a more eco- I nomical plan ; and tlio first factory was : completed in 1794. It was ninety by I forty feet, and four stories high ; and I yarn was spun in it that year by water. The year preceding, the operation had been performed by ox-power. In 1794, '• calico-printing was done, on unbleached muslins purchased in New York. Tlie i society at the same time directed the superintendent to plant mulberry-trees ; i and, at the proposal of Mr. Colt, a teach- er was employed to instruct the work- children gratuitously on the sabbath. I This was, no doubt, the first sabbath- ! school in the state, if not in the Union. 1 It differed, however, from our common w o 214 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NEW JERSEY. sabUath-schools, in being taught by a liiied teiiclier. In 1796, in conseciuciice of losses of money sent to England for machinery, the misconduct and igno- rance of foreign workmen, and tlic nov- elty of the undertaking, the company failed ; a-nd the building was leased, and used for spinning candlewick and yarn, until it was burnt, in 1807. In 1814, Mr. Roswell L. Colt, son of tlie gentle- man above-named, purchased the shares and revived the company; and the place lias long been one of the most flourishing manufacturing towns in this country, though it suffered a great and unavoida- ble interruj)tion after the war of 1812. The suj)ply of watm- is very valuable, and has been enlarged by a dam, four and a half feet high, erected on the top of the fall ; and the water is distributed by three short canals, at different elevations. The Passaic is navigable for sloops ; and it not only has good common roads, but the Morris canal, and a railroad to Jer- sey city. MoRiusTowN. — This is the capital of Morris county, and stands on a ffne, ele- : vated plain, in the midst of a varied and picturesque region. It is distant fifty miles from Trenton, nineteen from New- ark, and twenty-six from New York. The streets are wide, straiglit, and laid out at right-angles ; and in the centre of the town is a large square, surrounded by neat dwellings, and several churches and other public buildings. A large and splendid hotel hei-e, erected by Mr. (liv- ens, was accidentally burnt in 1840. An aqueduct, about a mile in length, supplies the villarre with water ; and there are several manufactories at Speedwell, on ! a small stream. The Morris and l^ssex ] railroad, extending hence to Newark, was finished in 1838, and aff'ords impor- ' tant advantages to the town. | Washington retreated to this spot, in 1777, after the battle of Princeton. His headquarters are still pointed out, as well as different points connected with inter- esting associations of that important period. Several important events, and many interesting incidents, occurred in the two seasons when Morristown was the residence of Washington. Hosack, in his " Life of Clinton," mentions that Washington once visited the Rev. Dr. Jones, pastor of the presbytenan church in that place, to inquire whether Chris- tians of other denominations might be admitted to partake of the communion at the semi-annual celebration of it by his people, which he had understood was ap])r()aching. The reply was : " Most certainly ; ours is not the presbyterian's table, general, but the Lord's." The general replied : " I am glad of it ; that is as it ought to be. I propose to join with you on that occasion, though a mem- ber of the chui'ch of England." T/iC. Source of the Passaic. — The pic- turesque scene represented in the ac- companying engraving, is at the head of the principal stream of New Jersey, on whose banks are situated some of the most important towns mentioned in the preceding pages, and whose waters form the picturescjue cascade, and turn the busy wheels of Paterson. The Passaic rises in Somerset and Morris counties, and makes a remarka- ble bend round the county of PjSSCx, so as to form almost its entire western, northern, and eastern boundaries. It has several tributaries, the principal of which are the Pompton and the Rocka- way. The former is formed by the con- fluence of the Pequannock and the Ram- apo, which rise in New York. Most of the regions watered by the Passaic and its branches are rough and wild, abound- ing in mines, and in forests, which sup- ply fuel for reducing them. The failure of the latter, however, has been the chief cause of the abandonment of some of the mines. Standing at the source of the Passaic, amid the romantic and solitary scenery which surrounds him, a sj)ectator may reflect with interest on the peculiarities of the country through which it flows, and the various useful ends to which its waters are applied, during its short but varied course. It is not in vain that it has its head at so considerable an eleva- tion above the ocean. In its short, but busy career, it performs an immense amount of labor, iu turning wheels which move a variety of machinery, whose prod- ucts are so valuable as to Jidd matwrially to the wealth of the state. DESCUII'TION OF TllK STATI': O I'" I' KNNSV T. V ANI A !15 This state, one of the largest of the original thirteen, lies between New York and Virginia, two of the other most extensive of that number, with Ohio on the west, the most populous and flourishing of the younger mem- bers of the Union ; while its easteni boundary divides it from New Jersey, and it adjoins Maryland for a short distance on the southeast. Lake Erie touches it on the northwest. The Al- legany ranges divide it into two parts : forming three distinct, though une- (jual sections, counting the mountainous part as the central one. These mount- ains deviate considerably from their general line in the interior of Pennsylva- nia. They cross thq boundary of Virginia with a course nearly northeast, soon incline northeasterly, and at length run for some distance eastwardly ; then stretching again more northwardly, cross the New York line in tlie usual course, northeast. The most easterly ridge enters the state in York county, and is cut through by the Susquehannah, a river which, instead of conforming its direction to that of the mountains, crosses the entire range nearly at right-angles. The Delaware river, which forms the whole eastern boundary, rises in the state of New York. A system of canals forms an important line of navigation for boats and arks from the Lehigh river to Philadelphia, by which the productive coal-mines at Mauch-Chunk send thousands of tons to that city. The Delaware communicates, also, at diiferent points, with the Delaware and Hudson canal, the Morris canal, and the Delaware and Chesapeake canal, and, through the Schuyl- kill, by the improved navigation of that river, and the great Western canal line, to the Ohio. At the same time, the numerous and long lines of railroads, cross- ing the country in different directions, meet the Delaware at Philadelphia ; while 216 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. the navigation of that noble stream by steamboats, coasting and foreign vessels, adds another very important branch to the extensive commerce of the state. The Susquehannah, though flowing through regions abounding in various products, is naturally so much broken | by the iiTegularity of the surface, that it was navigable only for boats, and at , great risk ; and, at the same time, the i more important agricultural portion of ; the state, west of the mountains, offered strong inducements to the opening of a channel of communication between it and the commercial capital. The ex- ; ample of New York encouraged the un- dertaking ; and Pennsylvania embarked more extensively than any other state in the construction of canals. Immense labors were performed. Railroads were in some places connected with them. But the first results proved unfavorable, and a general depression for a time suc- ceeded, so great that the legislature at length resorted to a temporary suspen- sion of payment ; but arrears are now | paid, and prospects improving. j The History of the settlement of Pennsylvania, and the early years of its ! colonial existence, have ever been re- garded with peculiar interest, on account of the professions and character of the people, and especially their founder. The earliest European colony was plant- ed in this state by Swedes, in 1627, or 1628, and conquered by the Dutch, from New York, in 1655. But the English having taken possession, in 1681, Wil- , Ham Penn obtained a grant of land on the Delaware, landed at New Castle, and entei'ed upon the government of about 3,000 inhabitants — Swedes, Eng- lish, Dutch, and Finlanders. A place called by the Indians Coa- [ quanock, was chosen for the site of a city, and named Philadelphia, a name corresponding with the pacific principles of the society of Friends, of which |^enn ' was so distinguished a member. By his mild, just, and humane treatment of the Indians, he set an example woithy of imitation, and gave the poor savages, so often misunderstood, abused, and mis- represented, opportunities to display some of the virtues of which they have too often been declared to be destitute. A characteristic anecdote is told, by tradi- tion, of the sagacity and Christian liber- ality of William Penn, which forcibly illustrates the truth, that the way which is right is usually that which is most profitable in the end. The Indians once came to him with a complaint that they had been under some misapprehension in the terms of a bargain they had made with the whit* men, who had purchased of them a large tract of land. The col- onists at the same time represented that the bargain, though hard for the Indians, was a fair one, and that they were ready to fight for it. Penn, however, in con- sistency with the j^rinciples of the gos- })el, which he professed, inquired of the Indians how much more they considered the land worth than they were to re- ceive ; and, on being informed, made such an addition of the articles used in trade as fully satisfied them, though re- ally of trifling value, and thus not only prevented immediate bloodshed, and other evils attendant on war, but con- firmed the grateful wildmen in their pa- cific spirit and friendly attachment to the colonists, most favorable to the perma- nency of a good understanding and free trade for the future. The relations between Pennsylvania and Connecticut were disturbed for a number of years, after the settlement of a colony from the latter in the valley of Wyoming, which was claimed under the patent of King Charles, as it lay in her teri-itory, as marked out by the two parallels extending to the South sea. The encroachments of the French in the west, on the Ohio river, threatened Pennsylvania, as well as Virginia ; but, until the Revolutionary war, her inland position, and the obstacles pi'esented by her mountains, contributed to secure her from most of the trials through which many of the other colonies had to pass, in the early stages of their history. Harving no internal enemies, in conse- quence of the just and pacific policy pursued by Penn, she had little to dis- turb the peaceful lives of her inhabit- ants, until the Revolutionary war in- volved her in a full share of the public sufferings and losses. Her capital, after 218 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. serving as the seat of government, sub- sequently to the capture of New York, was threatened by the enemy, in 1778. A strong expedition having been sent from New York to the Delaware, succeeded in maintaining itself in Pennsylvania for a time : after several battles, Washington retreating to Valley Forge, The ene- my were, however, ere long, compelled to retreat, and evacuate the country on the west of the bay and river. The " whiskey rebellion," which broke out in a part of the state, soon after the restoration of peace, kept the coun- try for a time in a state of alarm ; but, after its suppression, Pennsylvania soon began to share with other members of the Union, in the career of prosperity which has so greatly distinguished our country, and has been one of the most remarkable of the states for the extent and success of its manufactures. Her iron-mines and manufactories, with her coal-mines, are the grand sources of her wealth, although her commerce is con- siderable. CoAL-MiNES. — Among the natural productions of the state of Pennsylvania, those of the coal-mines take the most important place. On both sides of the Alleganies lie extensive and apparently inexluiustible beds of excellent coal, ma- ny of which ai'e on the immediate banks, or near to the sources of streams, which have been rendered navigable where the aid of art and science have been required ; and the immense and increasing sup- plies, annually transported, subserve the convenience and comfort of millions of people, not in this territory alone, but in half the states of the Union. Nu- merous steamboats and railroad-cars, as well as manufactories of different kinds, borrow their motive-power fi'om these mines ; while almost entire towns and cities derive fz'om thein their vast sup- plies of fuel. The coals of Pennsylvania are of two kinds ; and it is remarkable that, while that on the eastern side of the Allega- nies is anthracite, that on the west is bituminous. The latter has rendered Pittsburgh the Birmingham of America. LiTKR.vRV Institutions, &c. — Liter- ary publications and scientific institutions were established in Philadelphia in her colonial days, chiefly by the labors and example of Dr. Franklin, who for a long time exercised a great influence on the country, and whose fame is universal. Massachusetts, however, lays a claim to a considerable share of the honor of his character and life, as he was a native of Boston, and there received his appren- ticeship in the art which had so strong an influence in directing his practical course in life. Printing was introduced into the bounds of the present state of Pennsyl- vania, in 1687, when the first sheet, an almanac, was published by William Bradford. The first newspaper issued, was *' The American Weekly Mercury," a half-sheet of " post-paper," by Andrew Bradford, dated T>ec. 22, 1719. There was at that time only one other in the colonies, viz., at Boston. The second was commenced in 1728, and passed, in a few months, into the hands of Benja- min Franklin. It existed more than a century. Several othei"s were published in the middle and latter part of the last century ; and the first German paper appeared at Germantown, in 1739. There were not fewer than six maga- zines before the Revolution. " The American Daily Advertiser" was the first daily paper in America, and commenced its daily appearance in 1784. " The Pittsburgh Gazette," the first newspaper in the western part of the state, began about 1786. "An imperfect list of the periodical journals" published in the state, between the close of the Revolu- tionary war and 1828, given in the Amer- ican Almanac for 1835, names thirty-six. The number has since greatly increased, in every department. Railroads. — The great line of trans- portation is to extend from Philadelphia to Pittsburgh, 336 miles, overcoming 2,380 feet elevation. Of this, 108 miles have been completed, to Harrisburg, and the remaining 228 will probably be in use ere long. The middle of three routes surveyed is likely to be prefer- red, which crosses the Susquehannah four miles above Harrisburg. This route, for 104 miles beyond, has no grade exceeding twenty-five feet per 220 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. mile, and is everywhere of easy con- struction. The great difficulty occurs at the mountains. A connexion will prob- ably be hereafter made with the railway at Pittsburgh, meeting the Erie canal at Beaver, and extending to Erie, on Lake Erie. Connexion will be had with the Pennsylvania canal, and with the numerous Ohio railroads, as well as with those of Michigan and Illinois be- yond. Thus channels will be opened from Philadelphia to almost evei'y im- portant point in the north and west ; and the results must prove highly im- portant to that city. The following is a list of the freights of one Imndred weight, between that city and several important points : to Cleveland, Ohio, by railroad, 64 cents; to Toledo, by railroad, 76 cents; to Cincinnati, by way of Pittsburgh and rivei-, 76 cents. The Merchants' Magazine, just quo- ted, well describes Pennsylvania in the following figurative language : — " She is, indeed, the keystone state. While one arm rests on the Atlantic, she lays the other on the Ohio, and her hand plays with the waters of the lake. Within her hills is stowed the fuel of ages ; and iron, the world's civilizer, to bind the continent, and insure the sta- bility of this great govei-nment; Erie, her outlet on the lake, Pittsburgh, the head of the eastern branch of the mighty valley, and Philadelphia, not only the beautiful city of the plain, but destined to be the leading city of the north, a city worthy so great a state. In her present competition, her rivals are east. The mass of productions of the forest, agri- culture, and the mines, are derived from Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, Micliigan, and the ascending trade of the Mississippi valley." The coal-mines of England, it has been remarked by the president of the British Statistical society, have yielded more profits than were ever derived from the gold-mines of Peru ; but, without the aid of steam, they would have been comparatively worthless. The products of the Pennsylvania coal-mines are al- ready so great that it would be difficult to estimate them ; and such are the an- nual increase of the demand, and the abilities of the machinery employed in mining and transporting, that the pros- pects of the business are almost too great to be mentioned. Professor Bakewell remarks, that the proximity of coal- mines and beds of ironoi'e afford strono- evidence of the provision made by the Almighty for the benefit of man. Penn- sylvania, says the Merchants' Magazine, is the only state which has direct access, by water, at once to the ocean, the lakes, and the Mississippi : we perceive that her position justifies high anticipations of her future wealth and prosperity. The real estate of Pennsylvania, accord- ing to the same work, was estimated, in 1846, on the best data, at one thousand four hundred millions of dollars, and the personal property at seven hundred millions; making; an affsfrefrate of two thousand one hundred millions, or more than three times that of New York, Such an estimate must surprise almost* every one ; but, to sustain it, the writer gives the following statements : Each j of the three vast beds of anthracite coal, I in this state, are about five miles in ; breadth, and sixty -five in length, with j an area of 325 square miles, or 208,000 acres ; that is, in all, 975 square miles, j or 624,000 acres. If the supply of coal ! from anthracite mines, for 1847, is esti- mated at 2,800,000 tons, at four dollars per ton, which is the average price at : tide-water, we have an amount of eleven ; millions two hundred thousand dollars. ; Most of the mines are owned by citi- zens ; and the balance of trade with ; other cities is constantly in favor of Philadelphia. It is amusing to record some of the anecdotes related of the coal-trade in its early days. Mi'. Charles Minor, of I Wilkesbarre, and Mr. Cist, sent off the first ark-load of coal from Mauch Chunk, on the 9th of August, 1814. The boat soon ran against a rock, which broke a hole in it. The men prevented tlie leak from sinking it, by taking off their coats and stuffing them into the hola. When at length the cargo reached Philadel- phia, the expenses amounted to fourteen dollars a ton. The owners then found it necessary to call at houses, black- smith-shops, &c., and urge the people 222 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. to try the coal in their grates and fur- naces, and even to hire journeymen to give it a fair trial, after publishing hand- bills, in English and German, with a minute description of the manner of kindling and treating it. In 1812, Col. George Sliockmaker took nine wagons, loaded with coal, from the Schuylkill mines to Philadelphia, and succeeded in selling two of them. It was with diffi- culty that he could persuade any per- sons to try the remainder, which he left without selling. The amount of foreign coal imported into the United States, in 1846, was 156,853 tons, worth $378,597; which is very small, compared with the above estimate for the supply of anthracite from the mines of Pennsylvania for 1847. Philadelphia. — This city was ori- ginally confined to a point on the west- ern bank of the Delaware, five miles above its confluence with the Schuylkill, and about one hundred from the ocean. The river is of sufficient depth for the free admission of vessels of the largest size ; but the navigation is subject to a long interruption, by ice, during the winter months. The city now extends quite across the broad, level space to the Schuylkill, a distance of about two miles, while the northern and southern dis- tricts, and several adjacent villages, having received portions of the increas- ing population, now contain, together, a large, compact mass of houses, with a population inferior to no city in the Uni- ted States, except New York. Almost without a single exception, Philadelphia is laid out on a plan of perfect regularity. The streets are per- fectly straight, and those running north and south are crossed at right-angles by those running east and west, at equal intervals. The former are distinguished by the cardinal numbers — First, Second, Third, &c.,beginningnearthe Delaware, as far as Independence square, in the centre of the city ; and between the western limits and that point, by the des- ignation of Schuylkill — First, Second, Third, &c. The principal cross-streets are named after trees, as Walnut, Chest- nut, &c., except the central, which is Market street, and one or two others. These principal streets so far alluded to, form fine, large squai'es, which are sub- divided by streets of a second class, and inferior breadth, of which those running east and west bear the names of shi-ubs and inferior plants. Philadelphia is distinguished by its neatness, as well as uniformity, and con- tains many institutions of science, learn- ing, and beneficence, as useful as they are honorable to the inhabitants. Philadelphia is remarkable for a neat and pleasing style of building. Hun- dreds of houses, of the first class, have basements and steps of white marble; and the pavements, which are generally wide, are carefully washed and swept. Great cleanliness prevails through a large part of the city, although the sur- face of the ground is so flat as to be rather unfavorable. Sewers have been constructed to a considerable extent, and the good habits of the people are the chief cause of this important feature in their city, which is favored by the absence of great thoroughfares, the pas- sage of carriages being confined to no particular streets. Markets. — The principal markets are concentrated in Market street, in which a long line of buildings, well planned, and built for the purpose, extends about a mile, and is proverbial for convenience and neatness. Abundant supplies of the best articles of food are displayed, with neatness and in good order, while sufficient room is allowed to buyers and sellers. For good meat, butter, and some other products of the fine agricul- tural districts in the neighborhood, Philadelphia has long been celebrated. South of the city lies an extensive tract of fertile meadow-land, where rich pas- tures and fine gardens abound ; the ben- efits of which are enjoyed by the inhab- itants. The large draught-hoi'ses, reared with great care by the Dutch farmers, for use in their heavy wagons, are seen in great numbers. The Philadelphia Library is one of the earliest, most extensive, and valua- ble, in the country, and was founded by the exertions of Benjamin Franklin, about the year 1727, when a little 224 DESClilPTION OF THE STATE OP PENNSYLVANIA. club of young men was formed by Fniiiklin, anil uscul to meet in Pewtor- IMutler alley, for leadinu- and debate, and commenced the collection by giving their own books. Several of the mem- bers atlerward became distinguished men, particularly Thomas Godfrey, the inventor of the mariners* (juadrant. I<^ifty new members were added in 171)0, and, in 1712, 'flioinas i'enn incorporated it. The colonial legislature, in 17G9, conipreheiided stweral other librari(\s with it, under an act conferring upon it its present name. " This," says Frank- lin, "was the mother of all the North AjTierican subscription libraries, now so common." The American Philosophical Society, opposit(! the Phila(1elj)hia Library, is another of the principal institutions of the city, which claims Franklin as its founder. In 1743, he formed a small society for the purpose of ])ursuing cu- rious expeiiments and inijuiries ; and, after its decline, and that of a second, coinin(>nciMl in 17/)0, the American Phi- losophical Society, and the American Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge. Thi>se two societies were combined, in 17()0, inuler a common title, and Franklin was elected presi- dent. Provision was made, by l)avid liitteidiouse, to observe the transit of Venus. Several subjects of great ])ub- lic importance were early considered by this society, which show the science and benevolence of the members. T//e American Historical Societj/, which has distinguished itself by the ])ublication of the writings of their late president, Mr. DuponycNiu, was formerly only a department of the I'hilosophical society. The K.rclKDii^e is situated at the cor- ner of South, Third, and Walnut streets, and on the angle formed by the inter- section of Dock with Wahuit and Third streets. It was built in IS.).'!, by the merchants and citizens of i'liil;uli>l])hia. It is constructed (Mitin>ly of marble: — is a rectanguhir parallelogram in form, ninety-five fi^et front on Third street, by one himdri'd and tifty »)n Walnut street. On Dock strecM, liowt>ver, is a semicir- cular projection, ornamenteil from the top of the basement story with six beau- tiful Corinthian columns ; the capitals worked by the best Italian artists. This portico is of the height of two stories, and communicates with the " exchanfre- room," by means of nine separate win- dows, which may be used as doorways. A hall passes through the centre of the building, fnmi Dock to Third streets, and another likewise communicates with this from the north side. The basement story is fif\t;en feet in height, is arched throughout, and has twelve doorways on the Third-street front and flanks. On the right or north side of the hall, is the postoflice, seventy-four by thiity-six feet, and on the lell are several insurance offices and banks, and the session-room of the chamber of commerce. Two llights of stairs, one on each side of the hall, ascend to the second floor; at the head of these is the entrance to the e.\- change-room, which is on the east front, extending across the whole building, and occupying an area of 3,300 super- ficial feet. The ceilinsr, extendiuLT to the roof, is of the form of a dome, and supported by several marble cohnnns. Tts pannels are ornamented with s})len- did fresco paintings, representing Com- merce, Wealth, Liberty, !kc., beautifully executed, appearing to have as striking a relief as sculptured work. The roof of the building is oval, and surnu)iiuled by a circular lantern that rises forty feet. The Customhouse, located in Chestnut street, is a 8])lenilid edifice of white marble, on the plan of the Parthenon of Athens, except that the side colonnades are wiuitnig. The Giraril Bank is a marble build- ing, with six beaut i till Corinthian col- umns. A portion of it is represented in our engraving of the exchange. The Bank of PcHiisylrania, opposite the (lirard bank, has two fronts, on Second and Dock streets, each with six Ionic columns. The St(i/cho//se, containing the halls of the old (\)ngress, is interesting from its associations with the important pe- riod of the lu'volution, and especially with its commencenuMit. Independence hall, the apartment east of the entrance. 15 226 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. is that in which the Declaration of In- dependence was adopted and signed, and in which Washington was appoint- ed commander-in-chief of the army. The large square, in the rear of that edifice, is shaded by many fine old trees ; and Washington square, just be- yond it, which was enclosed but a few years ago, has several elegant churches around it, and many fine houses. But the most conspicuous public place is Independence square, before named, sit- uated between Chestnut and Walnut streets. Girard College. — This splendid edi- fice strikes the eye with admiration from a distance, presenting a noble colonnade, of white marble, of great size, and the elegant proportions of the most celebra- ted Grecian models. It has been erect- ed with immense sums of money be- queathed by the late Stephen Girard, long an eminent merchant of Philadel- phia, for the education of orphans. The peculiar restrictions laid on the execu- tion of the will, in several particulars, threw embarrassments in the way of the speedy execution of the enterprise, and the institution has never gone into op- eration. Schools. — Philadelphia has long been supplied with schools, in much greater proportion than the state at large, in which they were neglected, until 1809, and were but little extended or improved by the act of the legislature of that year. Within a few years past, exertions have been made to establish a universal sys- tem of common education, and gi-eat advances have been made in some parts of the state ; but a large proportion of the inhabitants being indifferent to the claims of education, has presented great obstacles to the rapid change so desira- ble. The German population, distin- guished as they generally are for indus- try and frugality, are too much opposed to the improvements desired by many of their fellow-citizens ; and all attempts made to rival the noble example of New York and some other states, have been disappointed. In Philadelphia, howev- er, the public schools have been placed upon a very high footing within a few years ; and not only the city, but the state and the country at large, are likely to participate in the advantages of so enlightened a measure. The practice of humanity and Chris- tian philanthropy, which is made so prominent a feature in the system of the friends, or quakers, has shown its influence in various important depait- ments. The improvements in prison- discipline, which we have noticed at some length in the description of New York, in which state the plan which now prevails in this country, and, to a c(m- siderable extent, in Europe, was first brought into operation at Auburn, have been partially adopted in this city. Dr. Rush, of Philadelphia, however, first recommended radical improvements, founded on somewhat similar grounds, in 1787, at a time when public opinion was so unprepared to put them into op- eration, and even to appreciate them, that they were regarded as visionary. A prison was erected, in 1790, on a plan corresponding with his views, which was the first step in the way of improvement. The prisoners were treated with more humanity, kept clean, and subjected to regular hours, labor, and silence, being watched day and night. They were credited for the products of their labor ; and half the excess of the amount, after fines and expenses, was paid on the ex- piration of the sentence. But several grand defects of the old system were retained in that prison, which further experience condemned. One of the principal of these was the common rooms, in which numbers of convicts spent their time together, by day and by night. No vigilance was sufficient to prevent demoralizing intercourse ; and reformation — the great object in view — was not satisfactorily secured. The prison has since been demolished, and others have been erected, on differ- ent plans, on the northeasteni borders of the city. The Penitentiary, near Fairmount, is an immense edifice of granite, with a lai'ge yard, 650 feet square, surrounded by a wall forty feet high. The plan of this building is wholly different from any before erected. It is designed for solitary confinement, in the strictest p 09 3 00 p hj rt> » B a B A •=3 S. 5 o B BliiliiHiliplP 228 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. sense of the term. Rows of cells, on one level, are arranged in seven long lines, radiating from an octagonal build- ing in the centre, where a single senti- nel is placed to watch and listen, guard- ing several hundred convicts. Objec- tions have been made to this system, on the ground of expense, and the difficulty of finding occupation for the prisoners, useful to them, or profitable to the insti- tution, as well as to the evil effects, physical, mental, and moral, sometimes resulting from uninterrupted solitude. General Lafayette remarked, facetious- ly, while on a visit to this prison during its construction, that solitary confine- ment had been tried on him at Olmutz, without changing his character or hab- its. The House o/i^e/^o-e, for juvenile de- linquents, in the same vicinity, is con- ducted on the same general plan as other similar institutions at New York and elsewhere, and with similar beneficial results. Vagrant and conNacted boys and girls are placed there, under the charge of keepers and instructors, and are trained in good schools and various kinds of useful business, and then ap- prenticed, chiefly to humane persons in distant and retired country situations. Some of the boys have been sent to sea; and many unfortunate children have been rescued from ruin by such humane treatment. The Pennsylvania Hospital. — This noble institution was founded by Dr. Thomas Bond, in 1751, aided by Frank- lin and others. The grounds are fine, and it contains a statue of William Penn, with West's celebrated picture of Christ healing the sick, presented by its author, a native of this state. The University of Pennsylvania, on Ninth street, has two fine edifices, one of which is for the medical department. The origin of this institution is traced back to 1764, when a subscription was opened for an academy and charity- school, in which English, mathematics, and Latin, were to be taught. It was incorporated and endowed in 1753 ; and among its pupils was Lindley Murray, author of the English grammar. It was incorporated as a college in 1755. Medical instruction was first given by Dr. William Shippen, in 1764, in a course of anatomical lectures, to ten pupils. Dr. John Morgan was his as- sociate the next year — both being grad- uates of Edinburgh. Dr. Kahn was made professor of botany in 1768, and in 17G9 Dr. Bush of chymistry, while Dr. Bond was clinical lecturer in the Pennsylvania hospital. This medical college has now about four hundred stu- dents. The United States Mint was erected in 1830, after one of Mr. Strickland's designs. It is entirely of white marble, has a front on Chestnut street of 122 feet, and one on Centre square. The whole process of making money, assay- ing, refining, and coining the metal, is carried on in this building. The mint was established in 1790 ; and in 1793, they commenced coining in the building now occupied by the Apprentices' Li- brary company, in Seventh street, Mr. R. M. Patterson has been at the head of this establishment for several years. Some interesting particulars respecting the amount of coinage will be found in the description of North Carolina. The Naval Hospital is situated about two miles southwest from the centre of the city. The expense is defrayed by funds contributed by the officers and seamen of the United States navy, out of their pay. The building is on an eminence, commands an extensive view, and makes a fine appearance from a dis- tance. The front is 386 feet in length, three stories high, and it is large enough to lodge three or four hundred persons. The first story is of granite, and the second and third of marble, both of which kinds of stone are found in abun- dance in the vicinity of Philadelphia. The western side of Philadelphia is a scene of much bustle and business. Several fine bridges cross the Schuyl- kill, and the wharves below are landing- places for vessels coming from Delaware bay and the ocean, for the canal-boats of the Schuylkill navigation, and the Union canal, which leaves that line at Reading for the Susquehannah. Above, a fine stone dam crosses from bank to bank, and shows the first of the long DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 229 and expensive series of works which form an uninterrupted channel of communica- tion between the Schuylkill coal-mines and the city. Fairmount, a high, steep eminence, rises near the same spot, on the top of which are the immense reser- voirs for the supply of Philadelphia with water, which is raised from above the milldam, by five large waterwheels, and allowed to stand for a time in two reser- voirs, of the capacity of eleven millions of gallons, until it deposites the earthy particles. It is then distributed through- out the city, through pipes more than a hundred miles in extent. The Wire Suspension-Bridge. — This wonderful and beautiful specimen of art was erected in 1842, at the expense of fifty thousand dollars, by Mr. Charles Elliot, for the city and county of Phila- delphia. It occupies the site of the celebrated Wernwag's wooden-arched bridge, the longest in the world (with an arch of three hundred and forty feet span), burnt down a short time previ- ously, and connects the two sides of the Schuylkill at a very important point. The length, from one abutment to the other, is 343 feet, and from one of the supporting rollers to the other, at the apex of the columns, 357 feet, while the breadth, including the floor and the foot- ways, is 27 feet. The wire, of which an immense quantity was used in the fab- ric, is one eighth of an inch in diameter. This is formed into five cables for each side ; each is constituted of 260 strands, two inches and five eighths in diameter, weighing four tons, and able to support eight hundred tons. Seventeen short and smaller cables, hangfing' from each of these, to support the floor-beams, are made of smaller wires, and able to sup- port two tons each. The large cables pass over iron roll- ers on the pillai's, by which the tension is equalized, and are fastened around many strong iron bars, transversely im- bedded in rocks or masonry. The tow- ers are enormous columns of granite, from the state of Maine. The iron was quarried at Juniata, and manufactured at Easton — all in this state. The arched bridge spoken of above, the predecessor of the wire-bridge, was finished in 1813, at an expense of one hundred and twenty thousand dollars, and exceeded the largest of all others by ninety-six feet in the span. It was fifty feet wide at the abutments, and thirty-five in the centre, being by this form braced against lateral pressure. The Permanent Bridge was erected, at the foot of Market street, by a com- pany incorporated in 1798, and cost $300,000, including the land. The work was a great one, at that early day, when no such structure had been undertaken in the country; but it was successful. Indeed, it might be regarded as an en- terprise of magnitude at any period, as the depth of the river presented formi- dable obstacles to the sinking of piers. The western one was founded at a depth of forty-one feet below high-water level. Fountain Park. — This is not only one of the most remarkable situations in the country, in point of picturesque beauty, but also endeared to us by historical as- sociations of the most romantic charac- ter. Here, by the shore of the Schuyl- kill (or Manayone, as it was called by the aborigines), occurred some of the most desperate fights recorded in the annals of Indian wai-fare. Here, the axe of the first settler under Penn awoke the echoes of the woods. At the hour that the battle of Germantown was ra- ging around Chew's house, here, at least three miles from that celebrated spot, the Hessians were endeavoring to crush a band of continentals, inferior in arms and discipline, but not in iron courage. After twelve bloody onsets, that poured from the hill into the valley, the conti- nentals drove their enemies across the rivei', at the ford, whose traces are now obliterated by the rising of the waters, from Fairmount dam. This ford is sit- uated on the southern verge of Laurel hill, one of the most beautiful spots on the globe, whose spires and monuments are now visible from the mansion. It was here that William Penn loved to wander, contemplating, either in his walks on shore, or in his excursions on the river, the rise and progress of his much-beloved colony. In those wan- derings, perchance, he already saw — for he was a deep thinker — his colony rise DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 231 into a state : that state one of the great nations among thirty independent com- monwealths. The time id not distinctly marked when the original fabric, reared some- time in the commencement of the 18th century, was succeeded by the present beautiful mansion — the production of i the princely taste and spirit of Pennsyl- vania's first govei'nor, Thomas Mifflin. ' Yet it is a fact distinctly established, ' that some of the most important councils held by Washington during the Revolu- j tion, took place on this spot. The grass, ' spreading greenly before the porch, has been pressed by the feet of a Frank- : lin, a Volney, a Priestley, a Jefferson, an Adams, engaged in careless converse, or philosophical discussions. The ambassadors of kings have here met the republican fathers of America. The mind wanders back, through the arcades of time, and beholds the rich display of contrasts which were exhib- ited in the olden time — the handsome apparel of counts, dukes, nay, princes, contrasted with the plain uniform of Morgan, the rifleman, or the modest costume of .Fefferson, the author of the Declaration of Independence. When Washington was president, he was wont to leave his country residence, in Germantown, and stroll by the lake northward of the mansion, his imposing form reflected in its waves ; or, seated (m the porch, he would gaze on the Schuylkill, thinking over again the tri- als and battles of his life, from Brad- dock's defeat to the fall of Yorktown. These are remarkable associations. Among other memories, we must not forget that the singular round, or sex- agonal tower, that rises a hundred yards to the east of the mansion, was once the hermitage of religion and the closet of eloquence. The celebrated clergyman. Dr. Smith, who preached those stirring and remarkable sermons during the war, built this tower, filled it with his books, and here elaborated his most finished productions. The doctor was a Scot by birth, but an American in feeling. His grandson. Richard Penn Smith, now re- sides on the ground, and inherits in a great degree the genius of his ancestor. Perhaps not the least interesting re- flection of all is presented in the fact that the old mansion, once hallowed by the presence of Washington, Lafayette, and Wayne — enlivened by the visits of noblemen of royal blood, is now the do- main of a gentleman whose only herald- ry is recorded in his honest rise to for- tune and fame, from the walks of toiling life into one of the first publishers and literateurs of the country. We need not refer to Andrew M'Makin, Esq., proprietor of the "Courier," whose de- lightful family are always ready to ex- tend the old-fashioned rites of hospital- ity to the stranger, and render a visit to Fountain Park (or Aromana, as the Indians called it and its lakes) a journey of homeborn pleasure. It is rarely that literary labor meets with a repose like this — much more rarely are its honors worn so well, or with such unpretending grace. Reading, fifty-four miles from Phila- delphia, is a place of considerable im- portance, and contains some handsome public buildings. The Union canal be- gins two miles below Reading, passes up the western shore of the river to the valley of the Tulpehocken, and then fol- lows that valley till within five miles of Lebanon, wiiere begins the summit-lev- el. In all this distance, it rises 311 feet, by numerous locks of four and eight feet lift. The canal is twenty-four feet wide at bottom, four deep, and thirty-six on the surface. On this part of the canal is the tunnel, an excavation bored through a hill for a distance of 729 feet, 25 feet being first cut away. This dark and gloomy passage is eighteen feet in width, and fourteen feet high. Schuylkill Water-Gap. — This is a narrow gorge, through which the river runs over a steep and rocky channel, for four or five miles, leaving no room upon its banks, which rise abruptly on each side to the height of several hundred feet. The road has been cut out along the face of one of these ranges, at a great elevation, where the surface is in many places of such a declivity as to require it to be supported by walls of stone. The views which are here aff'orded to the traveller, are romantic and varied in DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 233 a high decree. This interesting scene somewhat resembles that on the Dela- ware represented in the vignette. The Little ScJiuylkiU River, a branch of the principal stream, runs through a valley of the same general description ; and here lies the road to Mount Car- bon. The Tunnel. — This a place where a hill has been bored through 375 yards for a canal, about three miles from Or- wigsburgh. Mount Carbon is near several coal- mines. The coal-country in this region begins in Luzerne, on tte upper part of the Lackawana river, following its course to the Susquehannah, and along that stream, principally on the eastern bank, to eighteen miles beyond Wilkes- barre. It runs south to the Lehigh river, and thence southwest, through Schuyl- kill county. It extends about one hun- dred miles, and at the middle of the range is eight or nine miles wide, but narrower toward each end. At Mount Carbon the coal occurs in beds of four or five feet in thickness, running east and west, and dipping to the south at forty-five degrees, with a slate-rock immediately over it, and strata of sandstone and earth above. The slate presents the impressions of organized substances imbedded in it, as the leaves t of laui'el, fern, &c. j In consequence of the inclination of the coal-veins into the earth, the miners have, in some places, sunk shafts to the I depth of one hundred and fifty feet, with lateral excavations, east and west, of various lengths to three hundred feet. Two small carriages, called "trams, are used in a sloping shaft to bring the coal out, being made to descend by turns ; but in the horizontal one, which has been carried in several hundred feet, they use wheelbarrows. PoTTsviLLE. — This is the capital of Schuylkill county, and the centre of the coal-business, on the western part of the great anthracite region, extending east- ward to Mauch Chunk. It contains nearly three thousand inhabitants, and ; enjoys a romantic situation in the midst of the mountains, whose mineral treas- ures, so recently brought to light, em- | ploy a large population, and create a scene of bustle and profitable industry all along the course of the stream below, and powerfully contribute to the pros- perity of many distant manufactories, and to the movements of commerce. Lehigh Coal-Mines. — The first discov- ery of coal at Mauch Chunk is said to have been made by a hunter, as late as 179L The first indications he noticed were bits of anthracite adhering to the roots of a fallen tree. A company was formed for the purpose of mining it the following year, called the Lehigh Coal- Mine company, who secured a tract of land embracing the present mine, made a rough road to it from the river, and began to dig the coal, and transport it to the stream. But the navigation was so difficult that the enterprise failed. The improvement of the navigation of the Lehigh was commenced by the legislature of the colony, as early as the ^year 177L Laws for the same object are found in the statute-book of the state, under the dates of 1791, 1794, &c. A company undertook to clear the chan- nel, and, after spending thirty thousand dollars, gave up the attempt. Different persons, in the meantime, who had ta- ken leases from the coal-mine company, made unsuccessful exertions to transport the coal to Philadelphia ; the last of whom, Messrs. Cist, Miner, and Robin- son, have been before mentioned. They abandoned their attempts in 1815. Wonderful as it now appears, the dif- ficulty of igniting anthracite coal was sufficient to prevent its introduction for many years; and the incredulity of the public continued to be too great to be overcome by the exertions made, until the year 1818, when two mining compa- nies were formed ; and, in 1820, three hundred and sixty-five tons were brought down, and sold in Philadelphia at eight and a half dollars a ton, delivered, which fully satisfied the demand. Both com- panies were soon formed into one; since which its operations, much facilitated by great improvements in the navigation, have been vast and beneficial. By means of dams, the water of the Lehigh, which is insufficient for continual use, is stop- ped, and occasionally allowed to flow for 234 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP PENNSYLVANIA. a short time, floating down at once nu- merous rude boats or boxes, called arks, laden with coal, from sixteen to eighteen feet wide, and twenty to twenty-five in length. It was soon found convenient to connect two of these, and afterward, three, four, and more, so that the tem- porary flood might carry them down to- gether, without separating them or stri- king them against each other, while at the same time they would conform to the rough surface of the water, as no single vessel of great length could pos- sibly do, and might be navigated and managed separately at pleasure. Inge- nuity devised improvements of other kinds also ; for machinery was soon brought into use, by which planks were joined for an ark, put together, and launched, in forty-five minutes, by five men. A branch of the Pennsylvania canal was finished not long after, along the western bank of the Delaware ; and thus the only remaining work, necessary to a convenient and uninterrupted comnAi- nication between the mines and the city, was completed. The Delaware and Hudson Canal commences at Kingston, on the Hudson river, and runs over to the Delaware river, through the valley of the Never- sink creek, thence up the valley of the Delaware to the Lackawaxen creek, and up that creek to the foot of the railway. This is a continuous canal of 117 miles in length. The railway, commences at the termination of the canal, and runs over Moosick mountain to the coal-mines at Carbondale, on the Lackawana creek, sixteen and a half miles, overcoming an elevation of 858 feet. At Easton is the dam over the Dela- ware, at the termination of the works for improving the navigation of Lehigh river, from Mauch Chunk to this place. Bethlehem is a neatly-built place, in a romantic and delightful situation, along the course of a swift-running brook. It is inhabited by Germans, and is the seat of an old Moravian school. The works on the Lehigh river are on a large scale. The river descends 365 feet, and requires fifty-two locks and twenty-one dams. The locks are in- tended for steamboats capable of carry- ing 150 tons of coal, one hundred feet long and thirty feet wide. The Lehigh water-gap is twenty-five miles from Easton, and eleven from Le- highton, six miles from Mauch Chunk. The first objects that attract attention, near the village of Mauch Chunk, are the lock in the river, and the chute, or inclined plane, at the end of the railway, down which the loaded coal-cars slide to the wharf on the river, where they load the boats and arks. The latter carry about ten tons. The trains of cars coming down the railway will often be heard rumbling as the traveller ap- proaches the village. Mauch Chunk, ninety miles fi'om New York, and seventy from Philadelphia, is shut in by rude moi^.ntains, of such height that the sun is invisible to many of the inhabitants during the short days. The railway leads from near the coal- -mines to the Lehigh river. This was the second ever constructed in the Uni- ted States — the Quincy railway, in Mas- sachusetts, being the first. It extends a distance of nine miles, along the side of a mountain. The coal-mine lies a little on the op- posite side of the mountain ; and the coal -cars are first made to ascend to the summit of the railway up an acclivity of five eighths of a mile. The summit is 982 feet above the river. The aver- age rise of the way is eighteen inches per one hundred feet, which is scarcely perceptible to the eye, and enables a single horse-power to draw up three empty cars. The cars are made of strong oak tim- bers, and planked up on three sides, with a swinging door in the rear. They are six feet four inches long, three feet wide at top and two feet at bottom, and about three feet in depth, resting on wheels with cast-iron rims or felloes two feet in diameter, one inch thick, and about four inches in breadth, with a strong edge or flanch, one inch in thick- ness, and about two inches wide, which prevents them from slipping ofl'the rails. The cars may be stopped immediate- ly, by a long lever, which brings strong bearers against two of the wheels, and DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 235 causes great friction. The guide to ev- ery brigade of eleven cars holds a rope attached to all the levers. Sevei'al hun- dreds of such cars are in use. They car- ry the coal to the chute above the river, down which they are sent. At the end of the railroad is a plat- form, on the bank of the Lehigh river, down which the coal is let over one of the rails, on an inclined plane of 750 feet (200 feet perpendicular height), to the stone-houses, the wharf, and the boats. Each loaded car is connected to an empty one, which it draws up, by a rope that passes round a large cylinder or drum. A car goes down in about one minute and twenty seconds. The mine opens upon the road by passages cut in the earth. These con- duct into an area formed by the removal of coal, where carts drive in, load, and then pass out at the other passage. Pittsburgh. — This is the greatest manufacturing town of the west, and has furnished a large proportion of the steamboats which navigate the Missis- sippi and its branches. It occupies a low point of land, at the junction of the Allegany and Monongahela rivers, whose united stream is named the Ohio. It is three hundred miles west from Philadel- phia, eleven hundred from New Orleans, by land, and over two thousand by wa- ter, yet has almost daily communication with it by steamboats. A part of the city now covers Ayres' hill, and part of the sides of two other eminences ; while four small towns, Allegany, Sligo, Man- chester, and Birmingham, at short dis- tances, occupy points on the banks. A bridge of eight . arches, and fifteen hundred feet long, crosses the Monon- gahela, erected in 1818, at an expense of one hundred thousand dollars ; while four bridges cross the Allegany, as well as the noble aqueduct of the Pennsylva- nia canal. The city contains about sev- enty churches, and the population, in 1840, was 38,931. It is rare, indeed, to find so many ad- vantages concentrated in one spot, as j those which combine to give to Pitts- ^ burgh its great manufacturing and com- j mercial importance. It not only occu- 1 pies the head of the navigation of the \ Ohio, but it is the radiating point of the great western system of canals and rail- roads ; while its relation to extensive and fertile regions of Virginia and New York, as well as of the state to which it belongs, and the abundant supplies of coal and iron at its command, brought into use by its enterprising inhabitants, have given it the highest rank among the cities of the west. The fine engraving accompanying this description is copied from one of Mr. Bartlett's correct and elegant prints, and gives a just picture of this large and flourishing town ; but nothing except a visit to the place can convey an adequate idea of the amount of business carried on in various branches of manufacture. The principal manufactures of Pitts- burgh are all things that pertain to the construction and furnishing of steam- boats, especially the engines for their use, and such as are employed in vari- ous mills, &c., with a great variety of machines, implements, and tools, of wood as well as of iron, including ploughs, &c., &c. Bar and rolled inm are made in large quantities, as well as nails, glass, cotton cloths, leather, and boards. The steam-power in use in these and various other branches of manufacture, amounts to several thou- sand horse-power. Several steamboats arrive and depart every day, with many more canal-boats. There are five banks, five insurance companies, a board of trade, with an ex- change-room and a I'cading-room, and about a dozen companies managing freight and the transport of passengers on the canal. The Coartlwuse occupies the summit of Grant's hill, where it makes a con- spicuous appearance, and commands an extensive and interestiTig view over the city, the river, the neighboring villages, and the surrounding country. It is one hundred and sixty-five feet in length, one hundred in breadth, and has the jail in its rear. The rotunda, a fine hall, sixty feet in diameter, is in the second story, surrounded by court and jury- rooms. The structure is large, substan- tial, elegant, and costly. It was five yeai's in building, cost two hundred 236 DESCbllPTION OF THE 8TATB OP PENNSYLVANIA. thousand dollars, and is cn;ditableto the state, both on account of its stylo, ])lan, and execution. Its material is the fine, gray sandstone, which abounds in some ])arts of the neighboring hills. The Went cm University/ of Pennsj/l- vania is situated at Pittsburgh. The institution commenced operations in 1829, and the buildings were erected on Third street, in lS;iO. The edifice has a high basement of hewn stone, with arched entrances, and two stories above, with a portico projecting in the middle, having four Ionic columns. It is sur- mounted by a cupola, with windows on all sides. The Water -Works. — Pittsburgh is 8up]>lied with water from the Allegany river, which is raised, by steam-powtn-, to a reservoir on Grant's hill, one hun- dred and sixteen feet high. The reser- voir is eleven feet in depth, and capable of containing a million of gallons. T/ie Western T/ieologicdl Seminary is situated at Allegany city. It is under the direction of the general assembly of tli(^ presbyterian church, by whom it was foundiMl in IS25. The building occu- pies a fine, airy position, on the summit of an elevated ridge, rising one hundred feet from the bank of the river, and con- tains six thousand volumes in its libra- ry. A workshop was connected with it, with the intention of employing the stu- dents in m;uiii;il labor. The theological seminary of the asso- ciate reformed church, which was found- ed in 189G, is also situated in this town. The Western, 'Penitentiary of Penn- sylvania. — This extensive prison stands on the shore of the Allegany, nt the western extremity of Allegany city. It was completed in 1827, and cost $183,- 002, including all the furnitvire, (fee. The system of solitary confinement is here in practice ; and the prisoners are employed, at solitary labor, in the weiiv- ing of carpets, making shoes, and pick- ing oakum. The United States Arsenal is at Law- renceville, two ajid a half miles above Pittsburgh, on the left bank of the Al- legany, opposite Wainwright's island. That insular spot is celebrated as the scone where Washington was driven on shore on his raft, in his first attempt to cross the stream, on his return from his mission to Venango. Considerable num- bers of arms are manufactured in the arsenal, including ordnance; and here [ a large supply is constantly in store. Here, also, equipments are made and I kept, for the southern and western mili- tary j)Osts, the place being at once cen- tral, and conveniently situated for com- munication with different parts of the country. History. — The history of Pittsburgh is highly important, as it was the first point occupied, in all this western re- gion, by the English, and was the scone of contest between that nation and the French. Under the belief that "the forks of the Monongahela" were within the bounds of Virginia, (leorge Wash- ington was sent, in 1753, to select a site for a fort, who chose this spot ; and ' troops were soon sent to occupy it, while Pennsylvania despatched a force for the ' same purpose, considering the place a spot within her own territory. But, on the 7th of April, 1754, while Ensign Ward, with forty men, was engaged in ' building a fort, during the absence of the superior officers, sixty batteaux and three hundred canoes appeared, loaded I with one thousand of the enemy's troops ' and Indinns, dc^scending the Allegany. Th(5y landed and demanded asurreiuler; which was complied with, on condition that the English should be allowed to depart unmolested, with their working- tools. The capture of this fort was the first act of hostility in the last French war, as it is commonly called in this country, which continued for seven years. The French commander. Gen. Contrecti^ur, immediately conmienced the erection of Fort Duquesne on the same sj)ot. In 1755, General Jiraddock, at the head of an army, consisting of British troops and American militia, afler many delays, approached this place, and the army threw the French into a state of great alarm. Their fort was a mere stockade, quite unfit to resist artillery ; and Captain Beaujeu, with great diffi- culty, persuaded some of the Indians to accompany a portion of the French sol- ^^■iii's'il"'' 238 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. diers to march out and await the ap- proach of their enemies in an ambush. The plan, however, proved successful, i in consequence of the self-confidence of i the British general ; for, in spite of the \ most earnest expostulations of Washing- ton, he persisted in proceeding without i precaution, and would not allow an ad- vance guard or scouts to explore the I trackless forest before and around them. ' The consequence was, that, after cross- ing the river and reaching a piece of smooth ground, up an acclivity, where they were among the trees, they received a sudden and destructive fire, on both sides, from large bodies of the enemy concealed in two ravines parallel to the line of march, and, after three hours' fighting, were totally defeated. The British commander, and many officers and men of the two regiments of regular troops, with a large part of the colonial militia, were killed. Those who were finally saved, owed their lives to the skill and boldness of Washington, who here first displayed some of those peculiar qualities which afterward proved as use- ful to the country as honoi-able to him- self. I Strange as it may seem, there is good I reason to believe that the force by which that powerful expedition was defeated, was quite insignificant. Washington wrote to his mother, nine days after the battle, that he was persuaded they " did not amount to three hundred men, while ours consisted of about thirteen hundred well-armed troops, chiefly regular sol- diers, who were struck with such a panic that they behaved with more cowardice than it is possible to conceive. The of- ficers behaved gallantly, in order to en- courage their men, for which they suf- fered greatly." Easton. — This is an important town, situated at the mouth of Lehigh river. The canal-basin and locks, with the ; bridges over that stream and the Dela- 1 ware, are expensive works. The coal- i trade, the slate quarries, the surround- ing grain-country, and the manufactories of the place, many of which are moved by water-power, combine to render the ; town one of much business and prosper- , ity. There are at least twenty saw- ' mills, several oil-mills, &c., within a short distance. The Delaware bridge cost sixty-five thousand dollars. The Lehigh bridge is of wood, in the place of one of chains, which was destroyed by a flood in 184L Lqfai/ette College. — This institution, established in 1826, for a military acad- emy, was changed to one of a collegiate character in 1832 ; and, two years after- ward, the building was erected, which is one hundred and twelve feet by forty- four, and contains sixty rooms. It is named " Brainard hall." Easton was an important place in the middle of the last century, as it was a favorite council-town of the Delaware Indians. During the French wars, great exertions were made by the Jesuits in Canada, to detach this powerful nation from the English interest Important councils were held here in 1756, 1757, and 1758, at which all differences were adjusted between the Delawares of sev- eral tribes and the Six Nations of New York, by Teedyuscung, chief of the Del- awares, assisted by the quakers, in op- position to a strong combination of men less friendly to the claims of the red men. The Valley of Wyoming. — This nar- row tract of counti-y has attained melan- choly celebrity, from the tragical fate of its early colonies, which has been re- corded, in an appropriate style, by one of the most chaste and popular mod- ern British poets. This beautiful and secluded region is shut in by the ranges of the Shawnee and Lackawannock mountains on one side, and the Wyo- ming and the Moosic, about six miles distant, on the other. It is watered by the Susquehannah river, which, as has been before remarked, runs in a direc- tion across the rude barriers of nature. On reaching this valley, however, it de- viates awhile from its general course in this part of the state, and meanders, with a gentle current, for about eighteen miles, nearly parallel with the ridges of the mountains. It then bursts its way though Wyoming mountain, and pursues its course through Columbia county. The first settlers here were from Con- necticut, as has been before mentioned. 240 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. and several towns were for some time represented in the legislature of that colony, by deputies elected here, who annually performed the then long and toilsome journey to Hartford. The man- ners and habits of the present day bear strong traces of their origin, although considerable additions have been re- ceived to the population from the Ger- mans and Scotch-Irish of the surrounding country, with many miners and laborers, from Wales and Ireland, in the mining regions. " Few landscapes," says Professor Silliman, " can vie with the valley of Wyoming. Excepting some rocky precipices and cliffs, the mountains are wooded from the summit to their base ; natural sections furnish avenues for roads, and the rapid Susquehannah x'olls its powerful current through a mountain- gap on the northeast, and immediately receives the Lackawanna, which flows down the narrower valley of the same name. A similar pass between the mountains on the south gives the Sus- quehannah an exit ; and, at both places, a slight obliquity in the position of the observer presents to the eye a seeming lake in the windings of the rivei-, and a barrier of mountains apparently impas- sable. From the foot of the steep mount- ain ridges, particularly on the eastern side, the valley slopes away, with broad, sweeping undulations in the surface, forming numerous swelling hills of ara- ble and grazing land ; and, as we recede from the hills, the fine flats and mead- ows, covered with the richest grass and wheat, complete the picture, by features of the gentlest and most luxuriant beau- ty.;' The lower part of Wyoming valley was occupied by some of the Shawnees, soon after the arrival of William Penn at Philadelphia, those Indians having received permission to settle there from the Six Nations, who claimed the coun- try. When some of the Delawares, not long subsequently, were driven, by the encroaching whites, from their lands above the forks of the Delaware and Lehigh, the Six Nations allowed them to occupy the eastern side of Wyoming valley, where they built a town called Maughwaurame, just below the site of Wilkesbarre. This was done in 1742; and that same year arrived among them the celebrated Moldavian missionary. Count Zinzendorf, accompanied by his friend Mack, with his wife. The Dela- wares, jealous of white men (in conse- quence of having been overreached by an artifice in a contract for the sale of a portion of their lemds on the Lehigh, by which they had been deprived of the whole), meditated the butchery of the man who had forsaken country and pos- sessions for the disinterested love of mankind, and devoted himself, with the evangelical spirit of primitive Christian- ity, to the trials of a missionary among the heathen. His life, however, was spared ; and he, with his companions and followers, lived to introduce the gospel among that nation of our abori- ginal red men. The mission was re- moved, a few years after, to Wyalusing, after the commencement of the Connec- ticut colony. The Shawnees, in the low- er part of the valley, had been invited by the French on the Ohio to join a part of their nation who resided among them, but had been prevented from a compli- ance by the influence of the Moravian missionaries. An accident, however, in- duced them to change their minds. One day, during the absence of the Delaware warriors, two children, from the diflerent ti'ibes, while at play on the banks of the Wyoming, fell into a dispute about a grasshopper which one of them had caught. This at length drew in their parents and friends, until, to settle a question of rights and boundaries which was raised, it led to a battle, and the defeat and expulsion of the Shawnees. Thus enmity was created on both sides, which, with other causes, laid the way for the scenes of blood which ere long ensued. The charter of Pennsylvania was un- hapjiily drawn up so as to interfere with that of Connecticut, both embracing this region, the right to which was vested by the former in William Penn, and by the latter, at a time long anterior, in the people of Connecticut. Under these circumstances, the first settlers from that colony arrived in 1762, to the number DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 241 of two hundred ; and a long course of remonstrances, rivalry, military prepa- rations, and even military operations, commenced bet\yeen them and the Penn- sylvanians. In 1777, at a time when almost all the able-bodied men of the Connecticut set- tlements were absent with the Revolu- tionary army, a large body of Indians came down the Susquehannah, led by the inhuman Colonel J ohn Butler, whose savage conduct at Cherry valley has been noticed in the description of New York. His force consisted of his own tory rangers, a detachment from Sir John Johnson's Royal Greens, in all about four hundred, and seven hundred Seneca In- dians. To meet them, only four hundred could be mustered, consisting chiefly of old men and boys, and these undrilled, ill provided with arms, and many of them unaccustomed to war, and ill-fitted for the field by their youth or age. Choos- ing for their leader Colonel Zebulun Butler, who happened to be at the place, they took post on the side of the Sus- quehannah, with the steep bank on their right, and a swamp on their left, and there withstood the enemy, until, after a despei'ate fight, and the loss of two thirds of their number, the invaders tri- umphed. Many of the prisoners wei'e butchered in cold blood after the sur- render ; and numbers of those who es- caped, were barely able to reach their women and children, left in the stock- aded forts below, in time to induce them to desert the valley and seek safety in flight. Hundreds of weak and defence- less widows and orphans were soon wan- dering over the mountains, and pursuing | their melancholy way to distant settle- 1 ments, and even back to Connecticut, i Some parties lived for several days on whortleberries ; and one, consisting of a hundred persons, had but a single man. One of the stockades, called Fort j Foi'ty, having received a few of the fu- j gitive soldiers, made a show of defence ' on the approach of the victorious ene- my, and 'obtained an honorable capitu- ! lation, drawn up in the handwriting of their clergyman, and signed by Colonel Butler; but, no sooner had the tories entered at one gate, and the Indians at the other, than they began to threaten and rob the inmates, whose weakness they had now discovered. They, how- ever, did not proceed to bloodshed ; but as it was perceptible that no security could be enjoyed, the people in a ^ew days followed the example of their pred- ecessors, and set out on foot to find some place of safety. For several days and nights the houses and barns were burn- ing in all parts of the valley, while hun- dreds of corpses lay bleeding, from the weapons of the white and the red men, who seemed to rival each other in wan- trjn barbarity, thus addinganother to the awftil lessons which history has so ofl;en recorded, on the diabolical spirit that war can enkindle in the human heart. In 1779, Gen. Sullivan passed through the valley with his army, on his expedi- tion against the Six Nations, and, in Oc- tober, returned to Easton, whence he had marched, having devastated some of the richest of their country. In March, 1784, after the valley had again become populous, on the breaking up of the ice in the river, a dam was formed, by its stopping, at the narrow gorge through which it leaves this beau- tiful region. The water i-apidly rose over the land, driving the inhabitants to the hills, and leaving, after subsiding, many lands injured, and much property destroyed. After the close of the Revolutionary war, violent animosities were raised be- tween the "Pennamites" and the "Con- necticut boys," as the two old parties were called, and were carried to great lengths ; but a permanent adjustment of the long dispute was finally made by the legislatures of the two states inter- ested. MoNTGOMEUY County is apart of the state most abounding in iron-mines. It is situated in the heart of the central range of mountains, and is exceedingly wild and rough, with small valleys in- terposed between numerous tall and romantic eminences, such as Tuscarora moimtain, Black Log, Sideling hill, the Terrace, Allegripus, Tussey's, Black Eagle, &c. Near the southwestern ex- tremity of the county rises a very con- spicuous and remarkable eminence. 16 242 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. called Broadtop mountain, which con- tains a sinjj^ular coal-basin, with thin seams of bituminous coal, from one to four feet in thickness. The Juniata river, with several of its branches, wa- ters ditterent parts of this wild, Alpine region. Montgomery county lies along the \ Schuylkill river, and formerly belonged to Philadelphia county. It comprehends some of the earliest settlements, with remains of the first colonists, and evi- dences of their substantial habits, as well as some of the more modern works of internal improvement. The surface is agreeably varied, with mucii picturesque scenery, whose beauties are enbanced by the hand of persevering and success- ful culture, as well as by the works of science, enlisted in the service of an en- lightened public spirit. The southeastern extremity of the county is traversed by a belt of primi- tive rocks. The primitive limestone of the Grreat valley crosses the Schuylkill at Swedesford and Consliohocken, af- fording valuable quarries for tlie supply of white marble to riiiladetjthia ; and red shale constitutes the rocks of other parts, whose debris forms a productive soil, while sandstones prevail in some places. Stone turnpikes, and other good roads, are numerous. The Reading rail- road and the Norristown and I'hiladel- phia railroad pursue the course of the Schuylkill for some distance, while the works of the Navigation company, be- fore mentioned, atford another impoitant channel of transportation. On these are several bridges, and other works, worthy of particular attention. Copper-mines are believed to have been formerly open- ed in ditterent parts of this county, and there are reports of silver and lead-mines havine been known. Numerous mills and niainifactories are kept in operation by the water-power provided at the vari- ous dams on the river. The first settlements were made in the southeastern part of Montgomery county by Swedes and Welsh, and in the north by (rermans, all of whom long retained their appropriate languages. Hut of these, only the Cierman remains at the present day. Religious services were first held by the friends, or qua- kers, in Oxford, in 1683, and in Hors- ham in 171(3. The first meetinghouse of the Welsh friends was built in North Wales in 1700, and the second in 1712. In lower Merion township, a friends' meetinghouse was erected as early as 1695, which is still standing and in use, having been lately repaired. The first Swedish church was erected at Swedesford in 1763, the Swedes hav- ing come into the county, as it appears, some time after the VV^elsh. The Swe- dish churches, in ditterent towns in this county, were incorporated together, by John Penn, in 1765, and this charter was renewed in 1787, by the state legis- , lature. Remains of old Swedish cus- toms, as well as families, are still found, especially about Norristown. A few Germans, having early come over from Europe to join the colonists of William Penn. and settled German- tt>wn, near Philadelphia, sent back to their countrymen such favorable ac- counts that they had numerous follow- ers, especially from the Palatinate, be- tween 1700 and 1730. They occupied the territory about the head-waters of Perkiomen creek, and Lutheran and German reformed churches were after- ward founded. In 1741, however, al- though there were about a hundred Lu- theran communicants at New Hanover, or the Swamp, the only place of worship was a log-hut, and it was not until 1767 that a church was built of stone, which is still in use by a congregation of five hundred members. The German re- formed congregation was formed about the year 1747, and their present brick edifice was erected in 1790. Numerous Lutheran congregations are now con- centrated about Latrappe. extending among the neighboring towns in Bucks county, where the German language is still generally spoken. The old church standing in the village of Trappe, was erected in 1743, by Rev. Henry Melchior Muhlenberg, who is called the father of the Lutheran church in the Ignited States. Every pew in the building, and every seat in each, has its number branded into the wood with a hot iron ; and a tablet over the door bears a Latin in- DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 243 scription, now almost illegible, heaving the above date and the name of its founder, whose remains lie interred in the churchyard. Several congregations of German bap- tists, or Mennonists, are also found in this neighborhood, whose ancestors came to this country about the period included between the years 1706 and 1717. In the northeastern part of the county, near Gosclienhoppen, is a small body of Schwenckfelders, named after Gaspar de Schvvenckfeldt, a Silesian nobleman, born in 1490, who taught doctrines con- demned by Rome, and incurred perse- cution for them, yet differed essentially from Luther. His followers were pi'o- tected by Count Zinzendorf for eight years, when they came to Pennsylvania, where they arrived some time before 1740. Valley Forge, a wild and secluded valley in the mountainous region of this county, is associated with one of the most gloomy and desperate periods of the American revolution. The Britisli army, after landing on the Delaware, gained the battle of Brandywine, Sep- tember 11, 1777, and Washington re- treated, with his feeble army, to Ger- mantown, and, after one day's rest, crossed the Schuylkill, and advanced on the Lancaster i-oad, to endeavor to stop the progress of the enemy, but was pre- vented by the injury of his ammunition, caused by a severe rain. The enemy then taking the road toward Swedesford, induced Washington to leave that to Philadelphia open, and, taking advan- tage of the opportunity, entered that city ; to guard which, he occupied Ger- mantown with the lai-gest body of troops. This was one of the great epochs in the history of the Revolution, when to most, even of the friends of American inde- pendence, the cause was regarded as hopeless. But not so with Washington. He drew off" the remains of his army to this wild, inhospitable spot, and here struQfjrled through a severe winter, under the most trying privations, awaiting an opportunity, which at length arrived, for the striking of an unexpected blow. He once wrote to congress : " For some days there has been little less than a famine in the camp. A part of the army have been a week without any kind of flesh, and the rest three or four days." Strong exertions were at this time made to supersede him in command, but with- out, success. Mrs. Washington visited him in this dreary I'etreat ; and the house is still remaining which served as his head- quarters. It is the substantial stone- mansion of Mr. Isaac Potts, owner of the forge, from which the place has derived its name. The Mount Carbon railroad was com- menced in 1829. It is supported, for some distance along several landings, on thirty-one piei's of masonry, and passes through the gap of Sharp mountain, down the Schuylkill valley to Morris- ville, where are coal-mines on both sides of the river. At that place it leaves the bank of the stream, and follows the val- ley of Norwegian creek to Pottsville, a distance of 6,208 feet from its com- mencement. A branch, 14,200 feet in length, leads to the Centreville mines, which belong to the Noith American coal company, and affords access to the celebrated Peach mountain and other mines. The west branch is 16,400 feet long, and reaches to Marysville, with the Diamond and Oak-hill coal-mines and others. Several other local railroads are now in use ; and the long one to Reading and Philadelphia has greatly increased the facility of transportation. The Danville road, an immense work, from the great natural obstructions to be overcome, was pi'oposed in 1826, and in 1834 was com- pleted as far as Girardsville, ten miles, with a tunnel seven hundred feet long, and four inclined planes. But another tunnel, of twenty-five hundred feet, ne- cessary to open a passage into the Gi- rard mines, has not been completed. As the beds of coal near the surface of the earth become exhausted, the mi- ners dig deeper, or abandon the old mines for new ones. In the former case, wide passages are cut into the earth, at a declining angle of about forty degrees, which serve for the entrance of empty cars on one rail-track, and the exit of the loaded ones on another. Steam-en- 244 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. gines are employed to pump out the water, as well as to draw up the coal. Some of these mines are worked under the very town of Potr.sville, and extend several hundred feet. The deeper the mines are sunk, the more pure and val- uable is the coal usually found. Port Caubon is the village at the landing, at the head of navigation, on the main branch of the Schuylkill, two miles northeast fi-om Pottsville. At the bot- tom of a deep and wild valley are seen long ranges of building, with several shoit railr(>ad lines concentrating from the valley of Mill creek, and the mines wrought alonar its romantic borders, and the villages of Patterson, Middleport, New Philadelphia, and Tuscarora, whose existence dates back only to the year 1828. MiNERSViLLE, the principal mining village on the western branch of the Schuylkill, has a railroad, several mills and manufactories, and two churches ; and numerous other villages are found in this region. The position of the coal-beds in the Schuylkill valley being beneath the sur- face of the ground, requires mining in the usual way, while at Mauch Chunk the anthracite is dug and removed, like stone from a surface-quarry. A sudden, terrific, and fatal accident occurred at one of the great mines in 1845, in con- sequence of the insufficient supports left by the workmen in digging away the coal, when the immense weight of the mountain above sank df)wn and filled up a considerable part of the excavations. A very remarkable phenomenon attend- ed this fall. The descent of the mass was so sudden, that the air was driven violently from the halls and galleries of the mine, through the external openings, as from an immense bellows, and with such force that carts were blown along to some distance and broken. Several lives were lost ; and one man, who was shut in by having the passages around him closed, after feeling about him in the darkness, and working a long time among the loose rocks, succeeded in digging out, after a confinement of about forty-eight hours. York is eighty-three miles from Phil- adelphia. This town stands on Codorus creek, eleven miles from the Susquehan- nah, to which is a line of improved nav- igation. A railroad leads to Baltimore. York is a place of five thousand inhab- itants, and is remarkable as the seat of government of the United States for a time in the year 1777, during the occu- pation of Philadelphia by the Bi"itish. Some manufacturing is carried on here; and it contains ten churches, a court- house, academy, bank, and a lyceum, which is in possession of a cal)inet of minerals. The railroad affords frequent and easy communication with Baltimore, as well as Philadelphia, while stage- coaches depart daily for Harrisburg, and twice a week for Chambersburg. The York Sulphur- Springs are situ- ated twenty-one miles south of Harris- burg, and the scenery which surrounds them is striking and pleasing. The place is one of fashionable resort. Harrisburg, one hundred and seven miles from Philadelphia, is the capital of Pennsylvania. The statehouse occu- pies a lofty and commanding situation, on Mount Airy. It is an edifice of con- siderable size, being one hundred and eighty by eighty feet ; and the senate and representatives' chambers are spa- cious apartments. The library of the state, contained in this building, amounts to above six thousand volumes. The scenery around this town is re- markably picturesque and varied. It occupies a point on the Susquehannah, where it breaks through the range of the Kittatiny mountains, and is crossed by two fine bridges. The population, in 1840, amounted to 6,000 ; and among the public buildings are ten churches, the courthouse, two banks, and acade- my, the prison, and the arsenal. Stage-coaches run from Harrisburg to Pittsburgh, Northumberland, and Bal- timore, through York ; while railcars depart daily for Chambersburg, and three times every day for Philadelphia. Carlisle, in the Cumberland valley, eighteen miles from Han'isburg, is one of the oldest settlements, and the seat of Dickinson college, a methodist insti- tution, founded in 1783. The number of students is nearly two hundred, under DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 245 the care of seven professors. The li- braries contain twelve thousand volumes, and the chymical, philosophical, and mineralogical collections and depart- ments are well supplied. The United States barracks were erected in 1777, chiefly by the labor of the Hessian prisoners captured at Tren- ton. The Sulphur- Springs, four miles from the village, are celebrated for their effi- cacy in cutaneous and other diseases, and are the annual resort of many visiters. They are situated in the midst of the Blue ridge ; and the picturesque scene- ry, with the embellishments of art dis- played in the walks and gardens, offer many attractions. Chambersburg. — This town, situated at the junction of the Falling-Spring creek with the Conecocheague, enjoys the advantages of a railroad connexion with Harrisburg and several considera- ble manufactories, though a small place, with between three and four thousand inhabitants. Bedford is two hundred and six miles west from Philadelphia, and stands on a branch of Juniata river. It contains five churches, a courthouse, and an acad- emy, with eleven hundred inhabitants. It derives its principal interest, in the eyes of most strangers, fi-om the springs in its immediate vicinity. The Bedford Springs are five in num- ber, situated in a narrow valley a mile and a half south of the town, from which they derive their name. They are dis- tinguished from each other, as the Sweet spring, Sulphur, Fletcher's, Anderson's, the Limestone, and the Chalybeate, pos- sessing a variety of properties. Several houses are kept for the accommodation of visiters, with baths of diffei'ent kinds supplied from the springs. A little lake has been formed, on which pleasure- boats are kept for the amusement of vis- iters ; and the place is annually resorted to by considerable numbers. As Phil- adelphia stage-coaches arrive and depart daily, the access is convenient. Cannonsburgh is a town of about one thousand inhabitants, situated eighteen miles southwest from Pittsburgh, and is the seat of Jefferson college. That in- stitution was founded in 1802, and con- tains about a hundred and fifty students, with 4,500 volumes in its libraries. The last Thursday of September is the time for holding the annual commencement. The medical department of this college is situated in Philadelphia. The theological seminary of the asso- ciate church is also established in this place. Washington. — This town is twenty- five miles north of Pittsburgh, and oc- cupies a lofty situation, containing above two thousand inhabitants, with nine churches, two academies, and a court- house. Stage-coaches depart daily for Pittsburgh, Wheeling, and Baltimore. Washington College was founded in 1806, and now contains about two hun- dred students. It possesses a miner- alogical cabinet, philosophical appara- tus, with libraries embracing from two to three thousand volumes. Meadville, on French creek, is the seat of Allegany college. That institu- tion was founded in the year 1815, and contains about one hundred and fifty students. The volumes in the libraries amount to about eight thousand. Erie. — This town, situated on the summit of a lofty bluff", which rises from the shore of the noble lake from which it has derived its name, has one of the best harbors on that inland sea. It con- tains a number of handsome public and private buildings, with seven churches, a bank, and an academy, with 3,500 in- habitants. This place is remarkable for the ra- pidity and success with which the fleet of Commodore Perry was built, in the war of 1812, to meet the British forces on the lake. The ships were ready for sea in seventy days after the felling of the timber ; and in a short time they returned to this port, bringing with them the enemy's captured squadron. The flag-ship Lawrence still shows its re- mains in the harbor, the state of the country in this region happily creating no demand for warlike operations. The old French fort Presque-Isle was situa- ted at this place, and some traces of it are yet distinguishable. Birmingham, in Chester county, is a 246 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. small town situated on Brandywine creek, near the scene of one of the most ; important battles ever fought within the 1 limits of this state, as it caused the rout of the American ai'my sent to oppose i the British forces on their way to Phila- delphia, and opened the way for the oc- cupation of that city for a considerable time. A commanding hill, near the vil- ! lage, affords a view of the field of battle, j which had some unfortunate features, as the following brief description of the action will show. Had the Brandywine river been fordable in but a few places, the American troops would not have had to guard the whole line. The ability of ' the enemy to assail it at any point at any moment, kept our commander-in- chief in a continual state of anxiety, and the enemy availed himself too success- fully of the advantages in his possession. The Battle of the Brandyiv'me. — This important action was fought on the shore of the stream whose name it bears, on the Uth of September, 1777, between the British forces under General Howe, and the American army commanded by General Washington. The enemy had arrived from New York, in their fleet, in the Chesapeake, late in the month of August, and Washington was thus re- lieved from uncertainty respecting their designs. Presuming that they were now resolved to seize upon Philadelphia, he immediately called upon all the corps of the regular army which could be spared, to join him by forced marches, and sent requisitions to tlie governors of the neighboring states for their mili- tia. The British landed on the 25th, near the head of Elk river, 18,000 strong, and well provided in all respects, except horses, in which they were quite deficient, having lost many the prece- ding season, from the scarcity of forage. It is presumed that they might have acted with greater efficiency on the plains of Pennsylvania, if they had been strong- er in cavalry. Gen. Kniphausen, having remained at the landing with the rear-guard, to cover the debarkation, followed the van in a short time, and the whole army took post along Christina creek, from New- ark to Atkins, after the column of Corn- wallis had routed Maxwell's riflemen, who ventured to harass them on their march. On the enemy's approach, the American army proceeded to encamp behind White Clay creek ; but Wash- ington, finding the gi'ound disadvanta- geous, retired to the Brandywine, and occupied the heights from Chadsford toward the southeast, while Maxwell, with his riflemen, hung upon the ene- my's flank. General Armstrong, with the militia, guarded a passage below the camp, and the main body took a posi- tion to prevent the easiest passage of the river, it being fordable, however, in all parts. General Howe gave the right of his army to General Kniphausen, and the left to Cornwallis ; the former to engage the attention of the Americans by a feint to cross the stream, while the latter should push to a place above, where the crossing might be more easily effected. Maxwell for a while maintained a spir- ited skirmish with the British marks- men, but finally fell back before Knip- hausen, who made so many demonstra- tions of a resolution to force the passage at Chadsford, that his feint proved suc- cessful, the Americans becoming so much engrossed by him as to allow Cornwallis to accomplish his object with but little difficulty. Having crossed the forks of the Brandywine, at Trimble's and Jeffrey's fords, he marched down the bank toward Dilworth, to fall upon the American right flank. The first intelligence which Washing- ton received of this was an exaggerated account, that a large part of the British j was approaching, under the command of Howe ; and he instantly gave orders to Sullivan to cross the river above, and i fall u])on Kniphausen's left, intending himself to pass below and attack his right. At that moment, however, an- other messenger brought him the false report that the enemy had not yet crossed the Stream. His former command was then countermanded ; and the next in- telligence assured him of the truth. No time was to be lost ; for the enemy were \ now fast approaching his right wing, on the advance of which was General Ste- vens, with Stirling and Sullivan next in DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 247 order, with their respective brigades. Sullivan took command of the w^hole wing, as the senior officer, while Wash- ington, with Greene, took post between it and the left wing at Chadsford, ready to reinforce either which might require his aid. The ground occupied by Sullivan was well chosen, and very advantageous ; but the enemy did not allow him to collect all his troops, and he was forced to give way, after a manly resistance, and fled to the woods in their rear, and along the road by which Greene was now ap- proaching to their aid. To prevent the confusion of the fugitives from being communicated to his own troops, Greene opened his lines to the right and left, and, after giving them passage, closed again, and, facing about, retired in good order, keeping the enemy in check by a steady tire of artillery. The Penn- sylvania and Virginia militia, who com- posed his brigade, made a vigorous stand in a defile on the road, where they for some time brought the enemy to a halt. General Kniphausen now advanced to the ford in earnest ; and the Ameri- cans left in defence of the intrenchments and battery on the opposite side, seeing some of the British troops approaching on their right, in pursuit of their re- treating countrymen, abandoned the rround and retired. General Greene was the last officer on the ground, and left it only when darkness had come on. The Americans, routed, reached Ches- ter that night, and Philadelphia the next day ; their entii-e loss being stated at about three hundred killed, six hundred wounded, and four hundred prisoners. Ten field-pieces and a howitzer also fell into the hands of the enemy. The ene- my lost, in all, about five hundred men. In this action, the foreign volunteers, so recently enlisted under the Amex'ican standard, performed good service. The Marquis Lafayette, while rallying his troops, received the wound in his leg which rendered him a cripple for the rest of his life ; but it did not prevent him from continuing his labors through the fight. Captain De Fleury had a horse killed under him, and the Baron St, Ovary was made captive. On the day following the battle, a body of the enemy's light troops marched to Wilmington, in Delaware, and made prisoner of the governor, and seized a quantity of money and other property, public and private, with some papers of importance. There being no longer any , force sufficient to resist him, Lord Corn- ' wallis entered Philadelphia, on the 26th of September, with a body of British and Hessian grenadiers, leaving his army encamped at Germantown : the number of royalists in that city at the time being so great as to leave him little room for apprehension. General Washington, in ! the meantime, retired, with the few troops he could command, to Skippack creek, on the banks of the Schuylkill ; a wild region, difficult of access, and a '■ favorable retreat in his circumstances, which rendered the protection of nature necessary to his safety. I Interesting Facts in the History OF Pennsylvania. — It was designed by Penn that Philadelphia should never be closely built. He named it thus, as he remarked, "before it was born," in or- der to express the principles of benev- olence on which he intended to have its concerns conducted, and intended that it should always be " a greene towne," with ample room for the convenience and comfort of all the inhabitants. It still presents a general aspect quite dif- ferent from that of the most crowded cities of the Old World, with respect to the streets, which, instead of being nar- row, crooked, and dirty, are straight, wide, and clean. His plan, however, has been in some points encroached up- on. He insisted that the bank of the Delaware should be kept open and un- occupied by buildings and enclosures, and resisted every proposal to abridge the freedom which the public enjoyed, in approaching the water. An unhappy change has since taken place ; and there are now few cities in our country where the wharves are more crowded and in- convenient. The plan of his new city appears, from Penn's original instructions to his three commissioners, to have been very large. These men, William Crispin, John Be- zar, and Nathaniel Allen, were sent out 248 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. in the autumn of 1681, to select a site and lay out the great city. The Penn- sylvania Historical society have pub- lished at length the written instructions with which they were furnished. He directed that " the creeks should be sounded on every side of Delaware river, especially upland, in order to set- tle a great towne." His object was to find a place " where most ships may ride, of deepest draught of water, if possible, to load and unload at ye bank or key side, without boating and lightering it." He directed that the earth should be dug, to ascertain that the soil was dry and healthy, and that ten thousand acres should be laid out for the liberties of the town. Twelve square miles would have been required, by the plan, for all the pur- chasei's ; and this, with other requisi- tions, induced the commissioners to de- fer the selection of any site, and to await the arrival of Penn. They examined and described the site of Chester, a place on the elevated bank at the mouth of Poquessin creek and Pennsbury manor, as well as the place where Philadelphia stands, which proved most agreeable to the governor. It is said, by tradition, that he took an open boat, at Chester, and proceeded to Wicacoa, with a few friends, toward the end of November, 1682, and found the site of the present city occupied by three Swedes, brothers, named Swenson, a name since altered to Swanson. The river's bank was then high, and covered with a thick growth of tall pines, a place which the Indians called Coaquannock. It seems that the spot had something, even in its wild state, which recommended it for a set- tlement : as Proud says that some of the passengers in the first ship which ever sailed so far up the Delaware (namely, the Shield, Captain Towes, from Hull, December, 1678), exclaimed, " It is a fine place for a town." He mentions, also, that the shore was bold and high, so that, in turning, some of the tackling struck the trees. This was a vessel bringing out colo- nists for New Jersey. Penn arrived four years later ; and, having purchased the ground of the three Swedes above-men- tioned, he began to lay out his new city, and to prepare for its construction. It is remarkable that numbers of the peo- ple who had preceded him, for some lime after their arrival, had taken up their dwelling in caves under the steep bank. The first house erected was that of George Guest, which was not comple- ted when Penn arrived. It stood near Powell's dock, in Budd's row, and long served as a tavern, under the name of the Blue Anchor. The first person born in Philadelphia was said to be John Key, and his bii'th- place was one of the caves just men- tioned, near Sassafras street, which was long known as the "Pennypot." He lived to the age of eighty-four, and died at Kcnnet, on the 5th of July, 1765. William Penn, it is said, gave him a lot of ground. He used to walk into the city until within six years of his death, and was generally known, in the latter part of his life, by the name of " the first-born." Between twenty and thiity vessels arrived in the course of the first year, bringing out great numbers of quakers, who had left their homes to avoid the persecutions to which they were ex- posed. They were so numerous, that not only Philadelphia became at once a considerable town, but the country was well supplied with inhabitants along the river's borders for a distance of fifty miles, from Chester up to the falls at Trenton. The house of Thomas Fairbank, at Shackamaxon, near Kensington, was oc- cupied, in 1681, as a quaker meeting- house ; and the following year a boarded building was erected for this purpose, in the city. Another was erected near the centre of Philadelphia, in 1684; one in Front street, in 1685 ; the great meet- inghouse in High street, in 1695 ; one on the hill, in Pine street, in 1753 ; and the present one in High street, in 1755. Between 1682 and 1714, no less than three hundred and fourteen marriages were performed among the quakers ; and in the years 1681, 1682, and 1683, about fifty vessels arrived with passengers. Among these were a number of German DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 249 converts to the quaker principles, the disciples of William Ames, an English- man. Having " borne public testimo- ny" in their native place, Krisheim, near Worms, in the Palatinate, they seized the opportunity offered by Penn, to take up their habitation in America, in a state founded by one of their own faith, and settled at Germantown, which derived its name from them. Among them were persons of all ages, and some who had been brought up in ease and plenty. To them the common trials of the colonists must have been severe, as some of the new-comers were obliged to occupy hol- low trees, as well as caverns, while prep- arations were making for the erection of houses or huts ; and most of these afforded poor accommodations, and even but little protection from the cold and storms of the winter. The celebrated treaty made by Penn with the Indians has always been a com- pact of peculiar interest, on account of the principles of justice and humanity on which it was founded, the sacredness with which it was observed, and the ex- tensive, lasting, and beneficial effects which it produced. Yet it is remarka- ble that no written memorial of it re- mains, beyond a few allusions to it made in contemporaneous documents, and that everything else relating to it depends upon the authority of tradition. The spot is pointed out, on the bank of the Delaware, where the council assembled in 1682, under an elm-tree, at Kensing- ton, where a plain obelisk now stands, erected by the Penn society, in 1827, bearing the following brief but appro- priate inscriptions : — r On the north side : " Treaty-ground of William Penn and the Indian natives, 1682." On the south : " William Penn : born 1644 ; died 1718." On the west : " Placed by the Penn society, A. D. 1827 : To mark the site of the great elm-tree." On the east : " Pennsylvania founded, 1681, by deeds of peace." A long memoir was presented to the Pennsylvania Historical society, in 1836, by Messrs. Dupongeau and Fisher, on the subject of Penn's first treaty, in which the opinion was expressed, that it was one of friendship, and had no re- lation to the purchase of land. Letitia House. — This celebrated build- ing, still standing in a street of Phila- delphia of the smaller size, has excited much attention within a few years, since the spirit of antiquarian research has arisen, as it is believed to have been ei'ected for William Penn's own use, by William Markham, in the year 1682, the year before his arrival. It is of brick, of small size, two stones high, with a single window on each side of the door, a steep roof, a stack of chim- neys, and a single dormer-window in front. A rustic roof projects over the door, which is entered by rising a single step from the street ; and an old-fash- ioned, wooden cellar-door, nearly flat, opens under each of the windows. The little street in which it stands is named Letitia court, and opens on Market street, between Front and Second streets. A letter of Penn is preserved, in which he allows his " cousin Markham to live in his house in Philadelphia, and that Thomas Lloyd, the deputy-governor, should have the use of his periwigs, and any wines and beer he may have there left for the use of strangei's." It ap- pears that Penn, having been accus- tomed to the luxurious style of King Charles II., and to the upper classes of society during his travels on the conti- nent, never renounced all traces of his early habits, even after he had placed himself at the head of the friends in their great colony in America. He paid much regard to dress and forms in pub- lic ; and was, according to descriptions and pictures remaining of him, before he came to Amei'ica, " quite a finished gentleman, eminently handsome, the appearance of his countenance remark- ably pleasing and sweet, his eye dark and lively, and his hair flowing grace- fully over his shoulders, according to the fashion set by the worthless but fascin- ating Charles II." His portrait, pre- sented to the Historical society by his grandson, bears witness to the accuracy of this description ; and it would seem, from writings extant, that he main- tained, in his colony, habits in several 250 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. IL respects corresponding with his earlier hfe. In his cash-book are proofs that he had four periwigs, silk hose, leathern gambadoes, or overalls, and many fine beaver hats, furbished up at the hatter's, while a greater number still he present- ed to his friends, one of which he com- mends for having " a true mayoral brim." It is handed down by tradition, that he wore, also, silver shoebuckles. He had an elegant house at Penns- burg, which has been compared to a kind of palace, abounding in rich furni- ture, and supplied with liquors, though he was not fond of spirits, and had an aversion to tobacco, so often their con- comitant. There is but a single charge of tenpence-worth of this in the cash- book. He was very hospitable, and made provision for the entertainment of strangers during his absence. His benevolent regard for the Indians carried him so far that he often visited them, was present at their feasts and merry-makings, and sat with them upon the ground, to partake of their hommony and roasted acorns ; by which exhibi- tions of kindness he greatly attached them to him. A remark of his is re- corded, which reflects the highest credit on his character, " The saying is," said he, " that he who gives to the poor lends to the Lord : but it may be said, not im- properly, the Lord lends to us to give to the poor. They ai*e, at least, part- ners by Providence with you, and have a right you must not defraud them of." The following passage, in his parting instructions to his wife, deserves to be written in gold ; and its observance in this country would have given a better aspect to American society than we wit- ness at the present day : — " Let my childi-en be husbandmen and housewives : it is industrious, healthy, honest, and of good report. This leads to consider the works of God, and di- verts the mind from being taken up with the vain arts and inventions of a luxuri- ous world. Of cities and towns of con- course beware. The world is apt to stick close to those who have got wealth there. A country life and estate I love best for my children." i Sir William Penn, father of the found- er of Pennsylvania, was born at Bristol, and was a distinguished admiral in the British navy, and commanded the fleet at the capture of Jamaica, in 1655. The protector confined him awhile in the Tower, for absenting himself with- out leave from the American station. He was member of parliament ; and, under Charles II., had a high command j under the Duke of York, and participa- ted in the capture of the Dutch in 1664. I He was knighted by that king, and died at his house in Wanstead, Essex, in 1670, at the age of forty-nine. His son William was born in London, in 1644 ; and having warmly adopted the quaker principles, while in college at Oxford, from the preaching of Loe, he was expelled for nonconformity ; and his father, in 1662, after having " whip- ped and beaten" him, turned him out of doors for the same offence. The admi- ral, however, afterward relented so far as to send him to France, and then to enter him at Lincoln's Inn as a law-stu- dent. While settling an estate in Ire- land, he again met Loe, and resumed the strict quaker practices ; so that, on his return home, he refused to take off his hat in the presence of his father, and even before the king ; for which he was again turned upon the world. He be- gan to preach and write in 1668. He was impi'isoned in the Tower and New- gate, but soon was left, by his father's will, in possession of an estate worth c£l,500 a-year. In 1667, he married, and devoted him- self to the defence and promotion of his favorite doctrines. Ten years after, he visited the continent with Fox and Bar- clay, and soon after received from the king a grant of the country whose inter- esting history and condition we have been contemplating. The following minute account of the burial-place of William Penn, &c., is taken from the English " Historical Register :" — The Grave of the Founder of Pennsyl- vania. — The traveller, in passing from Beaconsfield to the neighboring village of Chalfont St. Giles, in Bucks, passes a small enclosure on the right-hand side DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. 251 1 of the road, known as the friends' or Joui'dan's burial-ground. But though no monumental stone attracts attention, and the sunken graves, hidden in the tall grass, escape the passing glance of a stranger, it well deserves to be recorded as the resting-place of William Penn, the founder of Pennsylvania. A fragment, supposed to have been written by one of the vicars of Penn, a village not far from Chalfont, deriving its name from the ancestors of William Penn, who possessed the manor at a very remote period, is still preserved in the register of that place, and presents a curious record of the occupiers of the principal graves. 13 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 No. 1. Letitia, daughter of Wm. Penn. 2. Springett, son of William Penn. 3. Margarette Frame and her son Thomas, in the same grave, daughter of William Penn. 4. John Penn, son of William, gov- ernor of Pennsylvania. 5. The great William Penn, with his second wife upon his leaden coffin. Prince Butterfield re- members his second wife being buried, and seeing the leaden coffin of William, whose head lies contrary to the rest, with his feet to the north. 6. Giulielma, daughter of Sir Wil- liam Springett, first wife of William Penn. 7. Isaac Pennington's wife, the wid- ow of Sir William Springett, of Darling, in Sussex. 8. Isaac Pennington, an able lawyer, who married the widow of Sir William Springett, mother to William Penn's first wife. 9. Joseph Rule, a man that used to go about London preaching, in a white coat and a long white beard. Nos. 10, 11, 12, 13, 14. William Penn's younger children. Seven graves from the hedge, in a line above William Penn, lies Thomas El- wood, who used to read to Milton, and lived on Hanger hill. On his left hand, nearer the hedges, lies his wife. Extract from the Register, Sept. 12, called by the friends " eighth month :" — "Our friendWilliamPenn,of Waltham- stow, in the county of Essex, and Giuli- elma Maria Springett, of Tilerend green, in the parish of Penn, in the county of Bucks, pz'oposed their intentions of mar- riage at the monthly-meeting at Hanger hill." Pi'ince Butterfield, the person already mentioned as having seen Penn's leaden coffin at the burial of his second wife, was the man who had the care of the burial-ground, and who died between thirty and forty years ago. Many "friends" have been interred within the enclosure, besides those here mentioned; but about fifteen years since it was found too full to admit any others, and the ground has remained undisturbed. In J. Whyth's supplement to the " History of the Life of Thomas Elwood," pub- lished in 1714, is an account of his great services to the society of friends. It is added, that " he departed this life on the I 1st of the third month, 1713, and was honorably buried in the friends' burying- place at New Jourdan." This Elwood , was the great friend of the poet Milton, I and suggested to him the idea of wrriting J *' Paradise Regained." I In concluding this brief description of Pennsylvania, we may appropriately introduce the following summary of some of the improvements and inven- tions which have distinguished this state and people. It is abridged from the North American newspaper : — The quadrant was here invented by 1 Godfrey ; here Franklin taught men how to control the lightnings of heaven ; on the Delaware, at Philadelphia, John Fitch first proved the power of his rude steamboat ; Fulton, a native of Penn- sylvania, immortalized his name by ma- turing that wonderful invention ; the first locomotive was set in motion near I the comer of Ninth and Market streets, 252 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF PENNSYLVANIA. by its inventor, Oliver Evans, who, with the foresight so often noticed as a char- acteristic of great discoverers, declared that the time would come when one would " breakfast in New York, dine at Philadelphia, and sup at Baltimore;" hei'e was the first bank established in the country, and the first insurance of- fice ; here was organized the first sab- bath-school, an honor, surely, to be ap- preciated throughout the Union ; Phil- adelphia first showed us what might be done in supplying cities with water, by her astonishing Fairmount water-works; in her eastern penitentiary, she furnished a model for institutions of that class, which has been extensively approved and imitated, both in this country and in Europe. The first public hospital in the United States was the Pennsylvania hospital ; the first institution for the blind was that established in this city. Here, too, before the Revolution, the great discovery which has given us the magnetic telegraph, led Franklin to give signals by electricity across the Schuyl- kill. The merchants of Philadelphia, at an early period, built a frigate and pi'esent- ed it to the United States government, the only instance of the kind on record ; and the state of Pennsylvania erected a house in Philadelphia, and offei-ed it as a pi-esent to Washington. Here, also, a stand was taken against the exactions of Great Britain, in advance of .Boston herself; and the first opposition to the landing of tea was made at a public meeting held in Philadelphia, some weeks before the celebrated tea-party executed its work at Boston ; and from Philadelphia came forth the Declaration of Independence. But the part which Pennsylvania has taken in the great works of internal im- provements needs to be better under- stood. The tui-npike from Philadelphia to Lancaster was the first undertaken in the Union, and was completed in 1794, at a cost of S465,000. Subsequently, the whole surface of the state was trav- ersed by these roads. The Schuylkill " permanent bridge," erected in 1798, at an expense of three hundred thousand dollars, was the first I great work of the kind attempted in this country. The first Fairmount bridge, with its span of 348^ feet, uutrivalling ' the famous bridge of Shaufiliausen, and the wire-bridge, erected in 1817, at the falls of the Schuylkill, which served to suggest the idea to European builders, I were an honor to Phikuleljihia. The ' bridges in the interior, by their substan- tial, and even bold character, have done j honor to the state. For the introduction of canals, as well as turnpikes, the country is indebted to I Pennsylvania. Even William Penn ap- ! pears to have meditated on the ])rt>jeft of connecting the Sustiueliaininli with the Schuylkiil ; and, in 1762, David Kit- tenhouse and Dr. William Smith sur- i veyed a canal-route for the purpose. At that early day, these gentlemen had in view the connecting of the lakes and the Ohio river with the Delaware, by a route of nearly six hundred miles. The sur- vey, under the authority of the legisla- ture of Pennsylvania, was accomplished in 1769. In 1791, a company was in- corporated for connecting the Susque- hannah and Schuylkill ; and in 1792, another was incorporated for connecting the Schuylkill with the Delaware, by the way of Norristown. At the head of the latter was Robert Morris, the celebrated financier. These two companies under- took the work, and proceeded far with it, when, having expended $440,000, they were embarrassed, and suspended oper- ations. These beginnings, however, re- sulted at length in the completion of the Union canal. The first tunnels excava- ted in the Union were in Pennsylvania. The first survey for the Chesapeake and Delaware canal was made in 1769, by order of the American Philosophical so- ciety, and as early as 1804, one hundred thousand dollars were expended in the execution of the work. When the period of railroads arrived, Pennsylvania was again the pioneer. The railroad at Mauch Chunk was the first in the Union, excepting only a short tram-road in Massachusetts. From that period to the present, Pennsylvania has been second to no state in the Union, in expenditures for constructing these won- derful annihilators of time and space. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP DELAWARE. 253 Chesapeake and Delaware Canal. DELAAVARE. This state is bounded on the north by Chester and Delaware counties in Pennsylvania, on the northeast by Delaware bay, on the southeast by the Atlantic ocean, on the south by Worcester and Somerset counties in Maryland, and on the west by part of the same state, viz. : Dorchester, Car- oline, Queen Ann, Kent, and Cecil counties. It lies along the Atlan- tic coast twenty miles, from Cape Henlopen to Fenwick island. The entire outline is two hundred and fifty-nine miles ; length, one hun- dred miles ; mean breadth, twenty- one miles ; area, two thousand one hundred square miles. It lies between 38'^ 27' and 39° 50' north latitude, and 1° 17' and 20° 0' east longitude from the city of Washington. The state occupies a long and narrow plane, with a gentle eastern slope to the Atlantic and the bay, with a higher and more uneven region in the north. The upper portion has a waving rather than a hilly surface, and the southern is nearly a dead level. The eastern slope is drained by several small rivers, viz. : Indian, Bioadkill, Cedar, Mispohan, Motherkill, Jones, Duck, Apoquinimink, Brandy- wine, &c. Delaware contains only three counties — Newcastle in the north, Sussex in the south, and Kent between them. The population in 1790 was 59,094; in 1800, 64,273; in 1810, 72,674; in 1820, 72,749; in 1830, 76,748; in 1840, 78,085. History. — Settlements wei'e commenced at an early date within the territory of this state. Under the patronage of Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, a few 254 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF DELAWARE. feeble colonies were founded here in 1627, before any other Europeans had attempted to occupy the soil. The coun- try received the name of New Sweden, and the settlers were Swedes and Fin- landers. They settled along the shores of Delaware bay, but were reduced in 1655 by the Dutch, and again in 1664 by the English. Charles II. included the territory in the grant which he made to the duke of York, by whom it was con- veyed to William Penn, in 1682. For several particulars in respect to this part of the history of Delaware, the reader is referred to the description of Penn- sylvania. Delaware had a colonial assembly in 1704, which met at Newcastle, although the territory nominally belonged to Pennsylvania until 1775. The people took an early and active part in the rev- olution ; and many of their militia fell in the unfortunate battle of Long Island, in 1776, when the British army obtained possession of New York. She adopted a constitution as a state in that year ; and the constitution of the United States was adopted by a convention on the 12th of June, 1792. Although the smallest state in the Union, it has been honorably distinguished by men of ability and high character in the national government. The present constitution was adopted in 1831. The governor is elected for four years, but can not be reelected. The senate con- sists of three members from each county, chosen for four years. The house of representatives consists of seven mem- bers from each county, elected for two years. The sessions of the legislature are biennial, commencing on the first Tuesday in January. Every male citizen who is twenty-one years of age, and has been a resident in the state one year, and in the county one month, next preceding the day of election, and has paid a tax, is a voter. If he is between twenty-one and twen- ty-two years of age, the payment of the tax is not necessary. The courts of Delaware are a court of error and appeals, a superior court, a court of chancery, an orphans' court, a court of oyer and terminer, a court of general sessions of the peace, and such courts as the general assembly may from time to time establish. There are five judges to compose these several courts, whom the governor appoints. They hold office during good behavior. The superior court consists of the chief-jus- tice and the two associate-justices, who do not reside in the county where the court is held ; and the court of sessions is composed in the same manner. The court of oyer and terminer consists of all the judges except the chancellor ; and the orphans' court, of the chancellor and the resident judge of the county. Delaware College, sxtnditedi at Newark, Newcastle county, is the only higher in- stitution of learning in the state. Com- mencement is held on the 4th Wednes- day in September. There are twenty academies and about one hundred and fifty common schools, with a school-fund of $170,000. The Chesapeake and Delaware Canal was constructed at great expense, and in spite of many discouragements, over one of the most unfavorable tracts of ground ever crossed by a work of that kind. It was intended to open a channel of sloop- navigation between Delaware city, on Delaware river, and the Chesapeake ; and the work was successfully accom- plished in a few years. It is thirteen miles in length, and lies chiefly in Dela- ware, but partly in Maryland. It is sixty-six feet wide on the surface of the water, and ten feet deep. Printing was first introduced into this state in 1761, by James Adams, who then commenced the publication of a news- paper, called " the Wilmington Coiir- ant," which ceased in six months. No other newspaper was published in the colony before the revolutionary war. The Delaware Breakwater. — About twenty years ago, the construction of a breakwater was commenced, by the United States government at the mouth of Delaware bay, at Cape Henlopen, designed to afford protection to vessels passing that exposed pait of the coast in stormy weather. The mouth of the bay is twelve or thirteen miles wide, and exposed to the full force of the waves of the ocean, which, in an east- DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF DELAWARE. 255 erly storm, are exU'emely violent, being unchecked by the neighboring land, which is too low to offer any resistance to the wind, or any protection from the surges, as they sweep in from the open sea. The ice which floats down the river is sometimes not less dangerous to vessels. The breakwater is formed ac- cording to the principles of science, and is an immense work, of stone brought from a great distance, and composing a solid wall with sides standing at an an- gle, best calculated to withstand and de- stroy the force of the waves on the one hand, and the fields of ice on the other. As the number of vessels employed in the navigation of the bay is very great and atmually increasing, and tho coast- ers and foreign ships occasionally ex- posed to risk of loss on this part of the coast, in easterly storms, are also very numerous, the value of such a work may be appreciated, when it is borne in mind that there is no other place of refuge within a great distance. Even in moderate weather the break- water often affords to many vessels the conveniences of a good harbor, when the state of the wind or of the ice for- bids the passage from the bay to the ocean, or from the ocean up the bay. Cape Henlopcn, which forms the south- ern point of Delaware bay, is in latitude 38° 45' and longitude 10° 53' east from Washington. Wilmington. — This town is situated one mile above the junction of Brandy- wine and Christiana creeks, twenty-eight miles southwest from Philadelphia, for- ty-seven north from Dover, and one hundred and eight northeast from Wash- ington city. It is built on the dividing line between the primitive region and the alluvion, which lie in juxtaposition through most of the middle and south- ern Atlantic states. Wilmington, in this respect, resembles Philadelphia, Baltimore, Georgetown, Richmond, and several smaller towns ; but owing to the greater depression of the western rocky range in Delaware, Wilmington has less variety of scenery in its neighborhood than most of them. Brandywine river, however, at a short distance from the town, is precipitated over a precipice, of such height that it affords many mill sites of great value, v/hich have long been employed to great advantage. Numei'ous manufactories of large size crowd the banks of the stream, most of which are flourmills ; the grind- ing of wheat is also carried on to a great extent, and with such skill that they have long been among the best in the Union, and have done much to render the flour manufactured there highly celebrated. Sawmills, papermills, cotton and wool- len factories, &c., stand also upon the same stream. Wilmington is governed by two bur- gesses and six assistants. It stands upon a long and gentle elevation, upon the ridge of which lies the principal stieet, which is wide and straight. The principal public buildings are the cityhall, the almshouse, the arsenal, two markethouses, three banks, the public li- brary, sixteen churches, nine academies, and the friends' female boarding-school. The population is at present about ten thousand. The Philadelphia and Baltimore rail- road lies through this town, and affords communication with both those cities twice a day. The Brandywine Springs. — This place is much resorted to by visiters, for health and pleasure, in the summer months. It is five miles from Wilmington. Dover. — This town, the capital of the state, and county-town of Kent county, is situated on the right bank of Jones's creek, ten miles from its mouth in Dela- ware bay. The streets are straight, broad, and laid out regularly, and a large public square is in the middle of the town, where the statehouse and several other public buildings are placed to great ad- vantage. There are three churches, one bank, and an academy. A monument has been erected to the memory of Col. John Haslett, who fell at the battle of Princeton, in the revolutionary war. There is a communication with Wil- mington daily by stagecoaches, and with Snowhill (Maryland) three times a week. It is in latitude 39° 09' and longitude 1° 28' east of Washington. Newark stands on Christiana creek, and is twelve miles southwest-by-west 356 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF DELAWARE. from Wilmington, fifty-two north-north- west from Dover, and one hundred and thirteen north-northeast from Washing- ton. It contains three churches, the college, an academy, and about eight hundred inhabitants. Delaware College is situated in this town. It was founded in the year 1833, and received an endowment of SlOO.OOO from the state. It has a president, four professors, one tutor, and about fifty students. The first building of the col- lege was erected in 1833, for eighty students, since which time it has been doubled in size. The centre is three stories high, with a basement, and the wings three stories ; whole front, one hundred and eighty feet. N^:wcASTLK. — This town, the former capital of the state, is situated on the west side of Delaware river, and is the site of the old Dutch fort Casimir, and of the village of Nieu Amstel, or New- Amsterdam, founded by the Hollanders. The public buildings are the courthouse, townhouse, arsenal, five churches, the academy, and the public library contain- ing four thousand volumes. The popu- lation is about one thousand two hun- di'ed. Lewes, on Delaware bay, is a post- town in Sussex county, one hundred miles northeast-by-east from Washing- ton. It is one of the early settlements, and its appearance is that of antiquity, the houses being old and shingled with cedar. The Ocean House, in this town, is a respectable hotel, for the accommoda- tion of pleasure-parties, often visiting the place. Delaware City. — The town is situ- ated on Delaware river, at the beginning of the Chesapeake and Delaware canal. It is thirty-two miles north from Dover, and opposite Peapatch island, on which is situated Fort Delaware. MiLFORD, sixty-eight miles from Wil- mington, stands on Mispillion creek. It has three academies and two churches, and contains about six hundred inhab- itants. Georgetown is eighty-eight miles from Wilmington, and near the head- streams of Indian river. It contains about three hundred inhabitants, a court- house, an academy, a bank, &c. There is a communication three times a week with Wilmington by stagecoaches. Delaware, in several respects, bears a resemblance to the other two of the smallest states, Rhode Island and New Jersey : lying on the main route of travel and transportation near the At- lantic border, and deriving only a sec- ondary advantage from the vast quan- tities of merchandise which annually pass through it on the way from larger states adjoining: yet, availing herself of the facilities which nature has affbrded her in her narrow territory, she pro- vides employment for the streams as they pour over her rocks, and use for her navigable waters. The chief of the latter is Delaware bay, which is the scene of an immense amount of trade, chiefly with Philadelphia, and much of it in coal. The channels are unfortu- nately vvinding and difficult. The County of Newcastle, which em- bi'aces the northern part of the state, is bounded north by Delaware county in Pennsylvania, east by Delaware river which separates it from Salem county (N. J.), south by Kent county in Dela- ware, southwest by Kent county in Maryland, west by Cecil county in Ma- ryland, northwest by Chester county in Pennsylvania. It is thirty-eight miles long from north to south, and twelve miles mean breadth, with an area of four hundred and fifty-six square miles. The county lies between latitude 29'^ 18' and 30° 50', and between longitude 1° 17' and 1° 38' east from Washington. The boundary between Delaware and Maryland lies along the ridge of land which divides the waters of the Chesa- peake from those of the Delawai-e ; and hence, as might be presumed, Newcas- tle county has a gentle slope from west to east. Brandywine creek, with its various branches, drains the northern part of the county, and, flowing almost to Wil- mington, falls into the Delaware. Be- low this stream are the Apoquinimink, Blackbird, and Duck creeks, the last of which forms the boundary of Kent county. In this county is that part of the Chesapeake and Delaware canal which we have noticed elsewhere. It extends to Elk river, a tributaiy of the Chesapeake. The principal excavation on the route is three and a half miles in length, and at the deepest part seventy- six and a half feet. Some of the lower parts of Newcastle county, near the Delawai'e, are low and marshy ; but at some distance the sur- face becomes irregular and even hilly in the north. The soil is generally fer- tile, and produces grain, grass, and fruit. The tributaries of the Brandywine have so much descent as to aiford many good mill-seats ; and various manufacto- ries are carried on in the interior of the county. Kent County is bounded on the north by Newcastle county, on the east by Delaware river, on the south by Sussex county, and on the west by three coun- ties of Mai'yland, viz. : Caroline, Queen Ann, and Sussex. It lies between lati- tude 38° 50' and 39° 20', and between longitude 1° 18' and 1° 50' east from Washington. Nearly the whole surface of this county has a slope east toward Delaware bay, and here are the follow- ing creeks, viz. : Mispillion, Motherkill, Jones's, and the two Duck creeks. A small part of the western border slopes westward, and is watered by the head- springs of the Choptank and Nanticoke rivers. The surface is but slightly va- ried, and the soil of middling quality. The length of the county is thirty-two miles, the mean breadth twenty, and the area six hundred and forty square miles. Sussex County is bounded north by Kent county, northeast by Delaware bay, east by the Atlantic ocean, south by Worcester county (Md.), southwest by Somerset county (Md.), west by Dor- chester county (Md.), and northwest by Caroline county (Md.) It is thirty-five miles long from east to west, the mean breadth twenty-five, and the area eight hundred and seventy-five square miles. It lies between latitude 38° 27' and 38° 58', and longitude 1« 14' and 1° 58' east. Most of the county is table-land, with some parts marshy ; and streams flow from it toward all the points of the compass. From the northeast flow sev- eral creeks into Delaware bay, east the tributaries of Rehoboth bay, south those of Pocomoke, and southwest those of Nanticoke. Among the men distinguished in the revolutionary periods of the history of this state was Caesar Rodney ; and some of the most interesting events connected with the important circumstances of those times may be here appropriately introduced, in an outline of his biog- raphy. His grandfather came to this country from England in the days of Penn, and, after a short residence in Pennsylvania, settled in Kent county (Delaware). His youngest son, Caesar, inherited his es- tate, which was large, and married the daughter of the Rev. Thomas Crawford, who is said to have been the first clergy- man in that part of the country. Caesar Rodney, the subject of the present sketch — a distinguished statesman of Delaware, and one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence — was born about the year 1730, and, according to the law of entailment then existing in that state, became heir of the family estate. At the age of twenty-eight, he was appointed high sheriff" of the county of Kent, after which he was a justice of the peace and judge of the inferior courts. There are no records of the legislature of Delaware in existence, of an earlier date than 1762, and therefore it has been found impossible to ascertain when Mr. Rodney commenced his career as a legislator. He was a representative for his native county at that time, and was one of the most prominent members, being appointed as a colleague with Mr. M'Kean, to transact some business of importance with the government. In the time of the stamp-act, much excitement was caused in Delaware ; and in 1763 the members of the assem- bly held a meeting, during the recess of the chamber, and appointed delegates to attend a congress at New York, for consultation on measures to be taken for the general good of the colonies. They unanimously appointed Messrs, Rodney, M'Kean, and Kollock, and the speaker gave them explicit instructions. 17 ■^oS DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF DELAWARE. The delegates attended, and, after their return, received a unanimous expres- sion of thanks for their services. From that period until the close of the war, Mr. Rodney, with his two associates first named, continued to be the most conspicuous and influential men in Del- aware, in opposinej the policy of Great Britain, and in sustaining the cause of America. Several circumstances ren- dered their situation very difficult and dangerous. The country was exposed to invasion, especially by the ships of the enemy, and a large proportion of the people were either favorable to the British srovernment or undecided in their preference for the American. Among other ci'editable exertions made by him in the legislature of Delaware, he in- troduced an amendment into a bill, de- signed to prohibit the slave-trade, which was lost by only two votes. An attack of cancer in the cheek com- pelled him to seek medical aid by a residence in Philadelphia, after he had abandoned a previous design of going to Europe. He was made speaker of the house of assembly in 1769, and held thfit oflice several years ; and he also performed the duties of chairman ot the committee of correspondence, formed to promote harmony of views and action throughout the country. On the 1st of August, 1774, an assem- bly of delegates met at Newcastle, in com|)lianoe with an invitation sent by him, as speaker of the house of dele- •rates, to determine what measures to adopt in the existing crisis ; be was chosen chairman of the meeting; and then, in company with Messrs. M'Kean and Read, was appointed to constitute the Delaware delegation to the Ameri- can congress at Philadelphia. He took his seat in that body on the fifth of Sep- tember, and the next day was made a member of the grand committee, whose business it was to state what were the rights of the colonies, and when and how they had been violated. The con- duct of the Delaware delegation re- ceived the unanimous approval of their legislature on their return, and Mr. Rod- ney was appointed a delegate to the succeeding congress. He soon after received the appointment of brigadier- general of Delaware, and not long after- ward appeared in the field, at the time of an invasion of the territory. Tliougli the presence of Mr. Rodney was deemed highly necessf^ry at home, in the midst of the important and try- ing scenes of the day, he was present in congress at the time when the question of independence was decided, and was one of its most ardent advocates. On his return, his conduct again received the approbation of the legislature. In the autumn of that year (1776), however, by tlie exertions of his opponents, his reelection to congress was defeated, as well as that of Mr. M'Kean ; and he spent the succeeding year at home, at- tending to his private affairs and to the duties of the committees of inspection and of safety, to which he belonged. Colonel Haslet, wlio belonged to his briiTiule, having fallen at the battle of Princeton, General Rodney set out to join the Delaware troops in New Jer- sey, but on his way was ordered by Lord Stirling to remain at Princeton to forward troops to the army ; after the performance of which duties he was per- mitted to return home, by a higlily com- plimentary letter from General Wash- ington. He was then appointed a judge of the supreme court, under the constitu- tion of Delaware, which he declined ; and was soon after called into tlie field to quell an insurrection in the county of Sussex. The invasion by the British army a little later again occupied him, and he marched witli the militia of his county, and stationed himself south of the Amer- ican line, at the command of Washing- ton, to intercept the way between the enemy and their fleet. But his raw troops, in a few hours, returned to their homes in spite of iiis efforts. After this he was elected governor of the state, and held the office four years, although the fluctuations of parties were tVeijuent and strong. After that period he declined public offices, as his health had become greatly impaired ; and he fell a victim of the cancer early in the year 17S3. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF DELAWARE. 259 The following extract from the pre- amble to the constitution of the Medical society of Delaware, published in 1789, is intei'esting on account of its early date : — " The physicians of the Delaware st;ire had long regretted their uncon- nected situation. Despairing to obtain some of the most important objects of their profession while thus detaclied from one another, and convinced that experience has uniformly attested the advantages of literary association, they lately presented a memorial to the hon- orable legislature on that subject. Af- ter duly considering the application, the general assembly, for the liberal pur- pose of fostering the interest of science, granted a charter of incorporation to a number of the said physicians and their successors for ever, and the name and style of ' the president and fellows of the medical society of the Delawai'e state.' " The object of this society is to an- imate and unite its respective members in the arduous work of cultivating the science of medicine, and its auxiliary branches ; with an especial view to its pi'actical use, the alleviating of human misery, the diminution of mortality, and the cure of diseases. To accomplish this interesting purpose, they will direct their endeavors — to investigate the en- demical diseases of our country ; to trace their' effects on its aboriginal in- habitants, and the successive changes they have undergone, in the progress of society from rudeness to refinement; to I'emark the general operations of po- litical, moral, and natural causes on the human body and its diseases ; and, par- ticularly, observe and record the effects of different seasons, climates, and situa- tions, and the changes produced in dis- eases by the progress of science, com- merce, agriculture, arts, population, and manners ; to explore the animal, vegeta- ble, and mineral kingdoms, and every ac- cessible department of nature, in search of the means of enriching and simplify- ing our materia medica ; to extend the substitution of our indigenous for exotic remedies ; to rescue from oblivion, and collect for public view, the fugitive ob- censors. servations of intelligent physicians ; to confer honoraiy rewards on the efforts of genius and industry; to superintend the education of medical students, and connect with the elements of medicine an adequate knowledge of all the kindred and subservient sciences ; to enlaro-e our sources of knowledge, by imparting and disseminating the discoveries and publi- cations of foreign countries ; to corre- spond with learned societies and indi- viduals ; to appoint stated times for lit- erary intercourse and communications ; to cultivate harmony and liberality among the practitioners of medicine ; and, final- ly, to promote regularity and uniformity in the practice (jf physic." A quorum of the fellows of the so- ciety having assembled at Dover on Tuesday, May 12, 1789, the constitution was adopted, and the following officers were appointed : — James TiJton, M.D., president. Jonas Preston, M. D., vice-president. Nicholas Way, M. D., Matthew Wilson, D. D., Dr. Joshua Clayton, Dr. Nathaniel Luff, Edward Miller, M. D., secretary. Dr. James Sykes, treasurer. The following brief but honorable remarks on the condition and prospects of Delaware, were published in the American Museum, in 1789, under the head of an " Epitome of the present state of the Union : — " Delaware, ninety-two miles in length and twenty three broad by a census in 1790, contained fifty nine thousand inhabitants. This state, though circum- scribed in its limits, derives great im- portance from its rank in the Union. Attached to the new constitution, and having the honor to take the lead in its adoption, there is no doubt of its giving efficacy to its righteous administration." This state is, as we have before re- marked, the smallest in the Union with respect to population ; and also in ter- ritoi-y excepting Rhode Island. According to the last census, the pop- ulation of Delaware was 78,085 ; that of Rhode Island 108,830. The area of Delaware is 2,120 square miles ; that of Rhode Island, 1,360 square miles. This state k bounded west and northwest by Pennsylvania, east by Delaware, southeast by the eastern shore of Virginia and the Atlantic ocean, south by Chesapeake bay, southwest by Potomac river (which separates it from Virginia), west by Vir- ginia, and northwest by Penn- sylvania. The outline is re- markably crooked, and, in the western part of the state, the Po- tomac, which forms the southern boundary, approaches so near to the Pennsylvania line (the northern boundary) that it leaves but a narrow belt, giving the map a peculiar appearance. It lies between latitude 38° and 39° 43', and longitude 1° 56' and 2° 24' west from Washington. The whole area of the state, notwithstanding the length of its tortuous outline, is only 9,356 square miles, of which the eastern shore con- tains 3,084. The chief part of the population — with the cities, commerce, and improvement — is west of the Chesapeake. The state, in 1840, contained 469,232 inhabitants. The eastern shore, by its situation, is cut off from intercourse and connexion with the neighboring regions, almost as effectually as if it were an island. The surface is sandy and but little elevated above the ocean, and desti- tute of hills and of most other advantages. Those portions of the territory near the ocean and the bay are generally level and low ; but the surface rises in the interior, and the middle and western parts are crossed by the Allegany ridges. Of these the Blue ridge is most easterly, DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MARYLAND. 261 and forms a long, uniform, an^ gentle, but elevated, swell across the state. Grain and grass grow well in the west- ern counties. Valuable mines qf iron and coal are wrought in several places ; manufactures are carried on wif/h suc- cess along some of the streams ; the fish- eries in the bay and its tributaries are val- uable ; and commerce is rendered very active by the aid of railroads, steam- boats, and vessels of all descriptions. The building of swift-sailing vessels has been cai'ried to the highest degree gf perfection, especially in Baltimore. The Potomac river, which foi-ms so large a part o^ the southern boundary of this state, is five hundred and fifty miles in length, and navigable for ships of the largest size to Washington. The canal, which extends from the falls at George- town almost to its head, make3 it navi- gable for boats through a great part of its length, and approaches near the west- ern states. The Susquehanna empties in Maryland, and is connected with Bal- timore by artificial means. The Patapsco is a small river, but of great importance, being navigable four- teen miles, and having the city of Bal- timore at the head of navigation, where its waters form a fine harbor, with shores on one side sloping conveniently for streets and wharves, and on the other high and precipitous, and well adapted for defence. The Patuxent is one hundred and ten miles long, and navigable fifty miles for vessels of two hundred and fifty tons. Beside these are the Elk river, the Sas- safras, Chester, Choptank, Nanticoke, and Pocomoke. Chesapeake bay is two hundred and seventy miles in length, and differs in breadth from seven to twenty miles, sud- denly expanding from one to the other. It contains numerous islands, and is re- markable for the number of coves, in- lets, and sinuosities of its borders, which afford access to the water in a thousand places. There is abundance of fish and wild-fowl ; and among the latter canvass- back duck is most celebrated, being justly esteemed and preferred above all other water-birds for its rich and delicate flavor. These birds arc shot in great numbers in the autumn, and are in great demand, even in the markets of Phila- delphia and New York, Pocomoke bay is a cove of the Ches- apeake, lying below the mouth of Nan- I ticoke river. Northwest from it lie j Tangier island and Tangier sound, lead- ing into Fishing bay. Above the mouth of Nanticoke river a peninsula projects far into the Chesapeake, forming the county of Dorchester ; and on the oppo- site side this is bounded by Choptank I bay, which, in its turns, separates it from Talbot county. This county is much cut up by several coves, inlets, &c., as Treadhaven bay. Broad bay, and St. ! Michael's bay. Beyond lies another of I these remarkable arms of the Chesa- peake, viz., Chester bay, which separates I the county of Queen Ann from that of i Kent. Long as is this line of bay-coast, which we have thus described following its sinuosities, the whole of it is com- prehended in a single degree of latitude, lying between thirty-eight and thirty- ; nine degrees. j Proceeding north from this latter ; point, Kent county is a peninsula of a j semicircular form, lying between the J rivei's Chester and Sassafras ; and next Sassafras bay lie the two rivers North and Elk, beyond which we find the mouth of the Susquehanna, and the northern boundary of the state. All this part of this state, known as the eastern shore, may now be called an island, since the Delaware and Chesa- peake canal opens a complete, although an artificial, water-channel across the neck of the peninsula. It is remarkable that a much greater difference of climate exists on the eastern shore than the mere difference of latitude is sufficient to ac- count for. The lower part is so warm, that even cotton may be cultivated. The western part of the state is quite cold for so southern a parallel ; but this is very easily accounted for, as its eleva- tion is sufficient to render the temper- ature in winter equal to that of the Atlantic coast as high up as latitude forty-four degrees forty-three minutes. The elevated valleys in Allegany county, although very fertile, have a climate too cold for wheat. 262 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MARYLAND. IL The want of intimate communication between these two parts of Maryland, and the semi-isolated situation of the counties and many of the towns of the former with respect to each other, are unfavorable to improvements of almost every kind. The pi'oductions of every neighborhood are brought to the shore of one of the innumerable little streams, inlets, or coves, which scollop the wind- ing coast of the Chesapeake, and shipped in small vessels running to different places; while the habits of the people, as well as the nature of the countiy, thus interrupted by water every few miles, render roads few and short. In- tercourse among the inhabitants is lim- ited ; there are no large towns ; and in- telligence languishes, with public spirit and enterprise, under the absence of the ordinary motives. Manufactures are not encouraged by any natural facilities ; and all these causes combined give the eastern shore of Maryland its marked characteristics. Of the three geographical sections into which Maryland is naturally divided, the eastern shore forms the first ; and this, as before remarked, has some peculiar fea- tures. The Chesapeake peninsula, of which it forms the westP''n slope, from Pocomoke bay to the mouth of the Sus- quehanna, is a remarkable piece of land, lying between the Chesapeake and Del- aware bays, with a portion of its south- eastern border washed by the ocean. The narrow isthmus which naturally con- nects it with the continent has been ar- tificially cut through by the Chesapeake and Delawai"e canal, and thus the whole of this singular cape, or rather peninsu- la, may be said to have become an island. Measured from that point to its southern extremity — Cape Charles — it is one hun- dred and eighty-two miles in length ; and the general form is that of an oval, acuminate leaf, with numerous and ir- regular lobes and indentations on its margins. The south part, seventy miles long by eight or ten wide, belongs to Virginia ; the middle section belongs wholly to Maryland ; and the upper is divided between this state and Dela- ware. The widest part, near the mid- dle, is seventy miles across, the mean breadth '•f the whole about twenty miles, and the area 4,900 square miles. The surface is generally flat or gently undu- lated. The eastern border has a succes- sion ol) low, sandy islands and beaches, with s'^allow sounds, opening by narrow channe's, and is destitute of considerable streams. The west side of the peninsula, on the contrary, has a number of rivers, of some size and depth, navigable for greater or less distances, and adding to the facilities afforded by the coves and inlets. The surface of western Maryland has a general and gradual rise from the shores of Chesapeake bay to the sources of the Potomac, about two thousand feet; but the intermediate regions are in sev- eral places diversified by hills and moun- tainous elevations, chiefly the ridges of the Alletjanies. The Blue ridsfe, how- ever, like some of the others, presents a uniform swell, generally so gradual as to leave the ground unbroken and covered with soil. In some other west- ern parts of the state the rocks protrude, and considerable tracts are unfit for cul- tivation. There, however, the mineral treasures of iron and coal abound, to such a degree as to make great amends for the want of arable soil. The following results of observations made at the White cottage, near Sandy spring, in 1829 and 1830, will show the mean temperature : From the winter solstice to the vernal equinox, 28.39 ; ver- nal equinox to summer solstice, 58.22 ; summer solstice to autumnal equinox, G9.21 ; autumnal equinox to winter sol- stice, 46.96. The following year the mean temperature at the corresponding periods was as follows: 35.63; 58.14; 71.46; 49.23. History. — The first permanent set- tlement was made in the territory of this state at St. Mary's, in the year 1631, un- der William Claibourn, on Kent island. The charter granted to Lord Baltimore (Cecilius Calvert) was dated June 20, 1632. He was a convert to the church of Rome, and early proclaimed religious toleration, although in direct opposition to the doctrine and practice of the popes and governments under their in- fluence down to the present day. Mai'yland was named in honor *of the queen, Henrietta Maria, daught. 276 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF MARYLAND. Washington county, and a place of con- siderable importance, lying in the cen- tre of a rich limestone valley. Hancock, on the bank of Potomac riv- er, contains two churches, an academy, and about four hundred inhabitants. Cumberland, one hundred and sev- enty-eight miles west of Baltimore, is on the Potomac, at the mouth of Wills creek. It contains a bank, a market, five churches, a courthouse, and about one thousand inhabitants. The situa- tion is in a varied and wild region, among the mountains, where coalmines abound. The railroad to Baltimore af- fords daily communication with that city and the intermediate places. It is the seat of justice of Allegany county, and the eastern termination of the great western road of the United States called the Cumberland I'oad. Ei-mcott's Mills, ten miles south- west from Baltimore, is situated in a wild and picturesque region, and owes its existence as a village to the water- power, which is employed in numerous manufactures, and to the railroad which hero crosses the Patapsco, on a fine iujueduct of stone. It stands on the boundary line of Baltimore and Anne Arundel counties. The Viaduct of the Baltimore and lVa.fhington Railroad. — One of the most striking objects in the state is the great viaduct on which the Baltimore and Washington railroad crosses the valley of the Patuxent. A passenger travel- ling over it in a car has little opportu- nity to judge of the nature, extent, dif- Htuity, and cost of the construction. The view from the summit is so extensive, and the valley below is seen so nearly under his feet, that the most careless ob- server must be aware that he is moving at aTi unusual height above the surface, and that the road is sustained by a long and narrow, though lofty fabric. To an observer, however, from below, or from a point on either side, the scene is of a more impressive description. A lofty and elegant arched bridge extends across a deep and wild chasm, forming a nar- row but 8t)lid and level path, for the long and heavy trains of cars which pass over it, between the natural banks that bound it on either side. The stream which winds below, and sometimes rises to overflow a great part of the valley, threatens to undermine and tear away this light and elegant structure. Ample space, however, is left between the piers for the passage of the water, even at the highest floods ; and the work has suffered but occasional and partial injuries, from the severest weather and floods. The road is thiity-three miles in length, and one of the most important portions of the great line of travelling from north to south, especially during the time when congress is in session. The commerce of Maryland is so de- pendent on the harbor of Baltimore, that it is well for the state that it possesses the important quality of being accessible at all seasons of the year. Even when impeded by ice, it never freezes so thick that it may not easily be opened by strong steam icebreakers and towboats, which are kept in readiness for the pur- pose. Ships of the largest class can come up to the wharves in the lower harbor; and at Canton they have twen- ty-six feet water. " The soil of the state," says Hunt's Magazine, " except in a few portions of it, is well adapted to agriculture. It has numerous never-failing streams, with gradual falls at suitable distances, par- ticularly in the vicinity of Baltimore. For manufacturing purposes, and com- mercial pursuits, Maryland is not ex- celled by any other state in the Union. The great American Mediterranean sea, whose borders she skirts, will be a wall of defence about her in time of war, as an invading foe would scarcely with- draw himself from the ocean-field, in this improved age of invention, lest his retreat might be intercepted when he found it necessary to retreat ; and the I bosom of that sea will in early after- j time waft treasures upon it, that, whether ; in the character of imports or exports, will add to her riches. Nature has in- contestably provided for this result ; and the founders of Baltimore (not that any- thing like j)rescience is to be ascribed to them, even as regards the state of im- provements as they exist at present) so located it, that it becomes a point of DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MARYLAND. 277 cnncenti'ation, whence again all the travel diverges, if economy as to distance be considered, whether the direction be from north to south, or east to west, and vice versa. The near proximity of the seat of national government is no draw- back upon, but adds to, her value ; and should congress in its wisdom authorize the establishment of a national bank, where is there a city, all matters in ref- erence to other banks and places con- sidered, more eligible and safe, for the present, than Baltimore 1 " Nearly all the great prominent agri- cultural pi-oductions of the United States are grown in Maryland, except cotton, sugar, and rice ; and each year further developments are made in reference to some exotics. If there were agricul- tural societies, and fairs held, as in some of the eastern states, where the choice productions of the earth could be exhib- ited, and competent persons appointed to pronounce upon them and award pre- miums, it would act as a great stimulant to enterprise, aside from the profits im- mediately resulting to the grower. So with live stock, of all descriptions ; but these subjects are somewhat neglected by the present tillers of the soil, and those of politics have, to too great an extent, usurped their places. Some fifteen or twenty years since, when Maryland was luxuriating in a more palmy sunshine of favors than at present, such exhi- bitions were not unfrequent, and politics slept : there may be a recurrence of a similar prosperous period. " Corn, wheat, and oats, thrive kindly in every county. Rye is not so gener- ally cultivated ; the western counties appear more congenial to its growth. Buckwheat, barley, and pulse, are not so specially attended to. The yield of flaxseed is only middling, compared with that of other grains." Potatoes are of excellent flavor, and the crops fair, but not equal to the de- mand. Small parcels of sweet-potatoes come to Baltimore, chiefly from the southern and eastern counties. Hay is the growth of the western shore, and is chiefly timothy, with some clover. It never exceeds home-consumption. Fruit is better adapted to the same counties. especially apples and peaches, some of which are very superior in quality. Melons, of every variety, are abundant everywhere. Tobacco is cultivated in eleven of the counties, but principally in Prince George, Culvert, Charles, St. Mary's, Anne Arundel, and Montgomery. More than nine millions of pounds were raised in Prince George, and twelve millions in all the counties afterward named, in the year 1839. Good horses, mules, neat-cattle, sheep, and swine, are raised in every county, but Frederick excels in this branch : in this county, according to the census of 1840, there were then 11,259 horses and mules, 24,933 neat-cattle, 2G,309 sheep, and 54,049 swine. The bacon of this county is preferred to any other, bring- ing at Baltimore from one quarter to one half cent, more per pound. All the counties produce wool ; but the yield is not large — not above three himdred thousand pounds per annum, which was the amount in 1840 for the whole state. Frederick county gave of this fifty-nine thousand pounds. In but- ter and cheese, also, this county exceeds the others. The forest-trees of the middle states abound in all the counties of this state. The best woods for fuel are the oaks, hickory, beech, and dogwood. Oak commonly sells in Baltimore at from four to five and a half dollars per cord, and the others at from five to seven dol- lars. Pine is abundant, but neither the white nor the pitch-pine. The hem- lock has its southern boundary in the west parts of Maryland, excepting a small district in the Allegany mountains in Virginia. In New England the bark of this tree, there so common, is much used in tanning. The oak of this state is excellent for shipbuilding, being in- ferior only to the live-oak. The cele- brated dam across the Kennebeck river, in Maine, is built of oak from Maryland. It was cut in Baltimore county near a stream flowing into the Chesapeake. Among the plans for internal improve- ment is one for a canal through that stream to Havre de Grace. Cedar and locust are abundant in some parts of the lower counties, and are exported in 278 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MARYLAND. great quantities to the eastern states for shipbuilding, with oak timber. The ce- dar and locust of Maryland are also in demand for railroads. The amount of exports annually made from the numerous navigable branches of the bay, it is impossible to ascertain, and difficult to estimate. Coal abounds, principally in Allegany county, and it is mostly of the bitumin- ous kind. The Chesapeake and Ohio canal, from the falls at Georgetown, along the Potomac, was made chiefly for the purpose of bringing this coal to market. The cost of this work has been very great, and unexpected difficulties were found in the way of the western terminus, along the mountainous region where the coal-beds are situated. The Frostburg coal-basin, according to the report of the state geologist. Professor Ducatel, is forty miles long and five miles wide, containing 86,847 acres. Tlie coal, being fifteen yards in depth, must be in amount more than six thou- sand millions of cubic yards. Each cu- bic yard weighs a ton. The Lonaconing iron region is in the same county, and is estimated to contain three thousand millions of tons of ore, or one thousand millions of tons of crude iron. Many companies have been formed and incorpoiated for several years, for the working of the coal and iron mines. Some of them have commenced opera- tions with success. The mines at Elk- ridge Hone yield iron of superior qual- ity, adapted to fine castings. This and other varieties of ore from the vicinity of Baltimore, yield from about thirty- five to fifty per cent, of iron. Bog-ore is found in Worcester county, and has been wrought to some extent. It yields twenty-nine per cent. Several copper-mines exist in Fred- erick county, chiefly near the village of New London. The ore yields about thirty per cent. The following minerals are also found in Mai-yland, which will prove valuable, viz. : anthracite, granite, marble, soap- stone, limestone, flint, sandstone, slate, potters'-clay, fire-clay, pipe-clay, various ochres, chrome, aluminous earths, &c. Mineral-springs are common in the west, and the waters of some, which have been analyzed, are found to con- tain sulphate of magnesia, sulphate of lime, muriate of soda, muriate of lime, carbonate of lime, &c. Statistics. — The population of the state of Maryland, according to the cen- sus of several successive dates, has been as follows : — Total. 319,728 349,654 380,546 407,350 446,913 470,019 Year.'). 1790 1800 1810 1820 1830 1840 Whites. Free CoIM Persons. Slave.s, 208,647 221,998 235,117 260,222 291,093 318,204 Wheat 8,043 19,987 33,927 39,730 52,912 62,078 From the Census of 1840. Agricultural Productions. . 3,541,433 bush, value $2,655,075 103,036 107,707 111,502 107,398 102,873 89,737 Corn . . 8,356,565 Oats . . 3,579,950 Rye . . 784,303 Buckwheat 47,858 3,133,613 919,988 392,151 1,450 211,780 1,095,800 1,100,000 14,140 700 100,500 473 Potatoes . 1,058,901 " Tobacco 21,916,012 lbs. Hav . . 110,816 tons Hemp . . 117 " Cotton , 7,108 lbs. Wool . . 502,499 " Hops . . 2,368 bush The following is the number of live stock, with their value : — Horses and mules . 94,054 $4,000,000 Neat-cattle . . . 238,827 2,000,000 Swine 419,520 1,252,000 Sheep 262,807 394,210 Manufactures. Number of — 212 (460,220 bbls. before estim. as wheat) 433 ) Value. 423 $61,000 9 ) 5 (669,000 lbs.) 16 195,100 15 2,348,580 Mills— Flour " Grist " Saw Oil " Powder " Paper Factories — Cotton Woollen 29 Potteries 22 Distilleries Breweries Furnaces, forges, and rolling-mills Tanneries Ropewalks Shipbuilding 235,900 61,240 73 (342,813 gals.) 68,562 ll(529;640do.) 105,928 30 159 13 61,240 (7,890 tons) 227,771 The number of primary and common schools in 1840 was 562; number of scholars, 16,321 ; scholars at public cost, 6,621. DESCRIPTION OF THJB DISTHICT OF COLUMBIA. 279 THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA. The District of Columbia was ceded to the United States in 1790, and made the seat of government in 1800. It has ever since been the capital of the Union, and under the government of congress. A spot was selected on the Potomac river, at the head of naviga- tion for ships-of-war (where the navy- yard has since been established), and with a surface deemed favorable for the foundation of a city. The extent of territory was ten miles square, with the Potomac river flowing througb it, and including the mouth of the eastern branch of that river, where the water is deep, and the shores favor- able to the site of a navyyard. The land on the east side of the Potomac was ceded to the United States govern- ment by Maryland, and that on the west side by Virginia ; but the latter has been recently ceded back to Virginia, after long experience of the inconveniences arising from being under the jurisdiction of congress, who have so many, and more extensive interests in their care. The city of Alexandria, lately included in the federal district, is expected to de- rive special benefits from her restoi'ation to Virginia. Washington and George- town are the only to iiiiiiliilfliiiii I |ij;ii|lii!;!l!j|iii!iiiiiiik.i lii- iliiii lillil' 21 322 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. family record in the bible which belonged to his mother, and believed to have been written by her hand : — " George Washington, son to Augus- tine and Mary his wife, was born y^ 11th day of February, 1732, about 10 in y" morning, and was baptized y' 3d of April following. Mr. Beverly Whiting and Captain Christopher Brooks, god- fathers, and Mrs. Wildred Gregory, god- mother." Soon after the passage of the stamp- act, Patrick Henry introduced into the Virginia assembly the following resolu- tion : " That the general assembly of this colony, together with his majesty or substitute, have, in their representa- tive capacity, the only exclusive right and power to lay taxes and impositions upon the inhabitants of this colony; and that every attempt to vest such power in any person or persons whatsoever, other than the general assembly as aforesaid, i is illegal, unconstitutional, and unjust, and has a manifest tendency to destroy British as well as American freedom." The resolution was adopted, on which the governor dissolved the chamber. When election day arrived, however, the members who had voted for it were re- elected by the people, and its opposers were left out. After the repeal of the stamp-act, the legislature of Virginia sent a vote of thanks to the king and parliament. Governor Fauquier died in 1767, and the following year Lord Botetourt ar- rived from England as his successor. He soon dissolved the assembly, because they had adopted a resolution condemn- ing the taxes on paper, &c. ; but the members combined in a non-importation association. Lord Botetourt had much influence, but could not long suppress the dissatisfaction excited among the people at the course of the British minis- try. He died in 1771, and the statue now standing in Williamsburg was then erected to his memory. Lord Dunmore, the next governor, stooped to the fomenting of paltry dis- sensions, to divert the attention of the people from the designs of the king ; but the news of the destruction of the tea at Boston called out a spirited reso- lution from the Virginia assembly, for which they were again dissolved ; and on the following day the members as- sembled and agreed on an address to the people, pronouncing an attack on one of the colonies an attack upon all British America, and appointed depu- ties to attend a general congress. Early in the days of the revolution, Thomas Jefferson became a leading man in Virginia, and he was for a long time afterward one of the principal men in the country. He was born at Shadwell, in the county of Albemarle, April 2, 1743, and receive from his father an ample fortune. He graduated with dis- tinction at William and Mary college, and studied law under George Wythe. Soon after he became of age, he was a representative in the colonial assembly and had a seal with this motto, expres- sive of his liberal sentiments : "Resist- ance to tyrants is obedience to God." In 1772 he married Miss Wayles, who died ten years afterward, leaving two daughters. In 1772 he organized the first system of colonial resistance, by appointing committees of correspondence; in 1776 he took his seat in congress, where he drew up the Declaration of Independ- ence. In 1779-'80 he was governor of Virginia, during the days of the in- vasion. In 17S3 he returned to congress, and drew up the address of that body to Washington on his taking leave of public life. In 1784 he went to France as ministei', and was afterward secretary of state under Washington. In 1798 he retired to Monticello, and from 1801 till 1809 was president of the United States, having formed a democratic par- ty, in opposition to the Washington or federal party, may of the principles and measures of which he opposed. He finally retired to Monticello in 1809, where he died July 4, 1826, at the age of eighty-three years. His grave is in a grove, near the road, at the foot of Monticello. Monticello. — This elegant mansion, the seat of Jefferson, is situated on the top of a steep conical eminence, rising from an elliptical plain, three miles southeast ft-om Charlottesville. Toward 324 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. the west, and partly north and south, it commands a view of Blue ridge, which stretches away one hundred and fifty miles ; while on the east is seen a bound- less plain. At different points rise sev- eral mountains of various forms and sizes, among which one of the most con- spicuous and interesting is Willis' moun- tain in the south. The approach to the house affords glimpses of this fine scene ; and the spacious hall at the entrance was orna- mented with objects of taste, arranged in an appropriate manner to gratify the eye. Mr. Wirt, in his description of the place, mentions that Jefferson had placed various specimens of sculpture in that hall, in such order as to mark the progress of the art from the rudest to the most perfect state : at the end be- ing seen his own statue by Carracci. On other sides were displayed Indian remains, petrified bones, the horns of deer, &c. The gx-and saloon, in which the visiter is next ushered, is appropri- ated as a picture-gallery, and contains a great number of valuable productions of the pencil and the graver, comprising many historical events and distinguished men of all ages. The windows com- mand charming views of the extensive scene below. In September, 1774, the meeting of delegates was held in Philadelphia. The disaffections continued between the governor and the people, but they joined in an expedition against the Indians in western A^ir'j^inia, who had assumed a hostile attitude, as was suspected, by the intrigues of tlie governor. On the 20th of April, 1775, he was so b(il sev- eral states for their discussion, appm- bation, and adoption. Mr. Madison was a member of this convention, as a dele- gnte from Virginia, and took an active part in the deliberations of that enlight- ened body, of which Washington, his colleague, was president. On the -Mlup- tion of this c(mstitution, Mr. Madi-on was elected a member of the first con- gress, and took an active part in settiiihur Springs, six miles north of Winchester, have recently become known, and are annually the resort of many visiters. The waters are said to have a resemblance to those of the Greenbriar White Sulphur springs. Woodstock is sixty-two miles from Harper's Ferry, and stands on the north bank of the Shenandoah. It has one thousand inhabitants. The public build- ing are a courthouse, three churches, and masonic hall. The Yellow, or OrJccTj Springs, eigh- teen miles from Woodstock, give an abundant supply of chalybeate water, and enjoy a good reputation. Staunton. — This town is situated at the headwaters of the Shenandoah, pne hundred and twenty miles from Rich- mond, one hundred and sixty-two from Washington, and two hundred and seven fi'om Baltimore. It has a courthouse, the Virginia asylum for the deaf and dumb, the Western lunatic asylum, two academies, four churches, two semina- ries, and two thousand two hundred in- habitants. The Augusta Springs are twelve miles northwest of Staunton, and are charged with sulphuretted hydrogen, resembling the Harrowgate springs in England. The Cyclopaean Towers are remark- able I'ocks in this vicinity, Wicr's Cave, one of the greatest nat- ural curiosities in this country, is seven- teen miles northwest of Staunton. 22 338 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. II Martinsburg is twenty miles from Harper's Ferry, stands on tlie line of the Baltimore and Ohio railroad, and contains a couithouse, six churches, two academies, and about one thousand sev- en hundred inhabitants. Berkeley Springs, a favorite watering- place, is twenty-five miles from Mar- tinsburg. Chari,estown. — This place is eight miles from Harper's Ferry. The pub- lic buildinsrs are a courthouse, an acad- emy, and three churches, and the popu- lation about fifteen hundred. Shannondale Springs. — This favorite resort is represented in the vignette at the head of this description. Stage- coaches run dnily to this place from Charlestown, which is five miles distant, and at which place carriages from the springs meet the railway. The situation of the springs is near the foot of the Blue i-idge, on Shannondale river. Shannondale is situated among the green hills, in a romantic bend of the Shenandoah, twelve miles from Harper's Ferry. The waters resemble those of Bedford, containing sulphate and car- bonate of lime, sulphate and muriate of magnesia, muriate of soda, sulphate and carbonate of iron, sulphuretted hydro- gen, and cai'bonic acid. The scenery around this spot is remarkably fine and varied. These springs are famous for the cure of spleen, hypochondria, and those gnawing, corroding ailments that weigh down the system, without con- fining the sufferer to his bed ; and are highly medicinal in cases of disease. Fairfax County — which contains a portion of the territory lately included in the district of Columbia, viz., that part which was ceded to the United States by the legislature, and lately re- stored to Virginia — was named after Lord Fairfax, the proprietor of the tract called the "Northern Neck," and an individual much distinguished by his wealth and peculiar character, whose family was connected with that of Wash- ington, who was a native of the county. It is bounded by the Potomac river, and crossed by the Occoquan and its branches ; has a low and sandy surface, like most of the tide-water country of Virginia, but in some parts is fertile. Large tracts, however, have that aspect of desolation which is peculiar to " worn- out tobacco lands," in conseqtience of the bad system, long pursued, of raising tobacco as long as possible on one field after another, and then abajidoning them successively, without an effort to restore the exhausted fertility. The result gen- erally is a spontaneous growth of cedars and low pines, a sterile and forbidding appearance, and a general abandonment of the land by the inhabitants. The soil, however, has proved valu- able in the hands of farmers accustomed to a different system of agriculture, on both sides of the Potomac. Tracts have been rendered productive, especially in Fairfax county, where l)odies of settlers from New York, principally of German extraction, purchased land at very low prices a ie\w years ago, and are already in flourishing circumstances. Mount Vf.rnon, in Fairfax county — the estate of the Washington family — is nine miles south from Alexandria, and is remarkable as containing the tomb of General Washington. The road is somewhat intricate, and has but few in- habitants ; so that the stranger, unless he goes in a steamboat, will need to make careful inquiries. The house stands on an eminence, looking down upon the Potomac. The buildings which project from each end are deformities, which greatly mar the effect. The key of the bastile of Paris is hung up in the hall ; and a miniature portrait of Washington, from an earthen pitcher, i§ preserved, which is consid- ered by the family the best likeness of him ever made. A beautiful lawn, partly shaded by trees, extends from the front of the mansion to the verge of the preci- pice which overhangs the Potomac, and affbi'ds a delightful view upon the river and a tract of hilly country above and below. This is the place to which Washing- ton retired after he had accomplished the independence of his country, and again when he had presided at the con- solidation of the government — volun- tarily resigning the stations he had con- sented to accept, and the power he 340 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OP VIRGINIA. had exercised, only for the good of his country. To an American this place is interesting, in a degree which no lan- cruage can either heighten or describe. Whoever appreciates the value of pri- vate and social virtue, will rejoice to find it associated with the traits of a personage so distinguished and influen- tial ; the consistent politician will rejoice to reflect that the principles of natural freedom are not restricted to any portion of the world, or any part of the human race ; while any one who can duly esti- mate the extent of the blessings he has conferi'ed on his country, and the influ- ence of his actions on the happiness of the world, will wish that his history may ever he cherished, as a model of sincere and disinterested patriotism. Last Illness of Washington. — On Thursday, the 12th of December, 1799. while riding over his farms, Washington became exposed to a severe storm of rain, hail, and snow, with a sharp, pier- cing wind. He took a cold, but it did not exhibit any alarming symptoms till Saturday morning, the 14th, when liis throat and chest were so severely affect- ed tliat he could hardly speak, and breathed with difficulty. He continued to grow worse during the day. His medical advisei's were sent for, and bleeding and other I'emedies adopted, without affording relief. The following account of his last hours is from a mem- orandum of his private secretary : — "By Mrs. Washington's request, 1 despatched a messenger for Dr. Brown, of Port Tobacco. About nine o'clock. Dr. Craik arrived, and put a blister of cantharides on the throat of the general, and took more blood, and had some vin- egar and hot water set in a teapot, for him to draw in the steam from the spout. •' About eleven o'clock. Dr. Dick was sent for. Dr. Craik bled the general again ; no effect was produced, and he continued in the same state, unable to swallow anything. Dr. Dick came in about three o'clock, and Dr. Brown ar- rived soon after ; when, after consulta- tion, the general was bled again. The blood ran slowly, appeared very tliick, and did not produce any symptoms of fainting. At four o'clock, the general could swallow a little. Calomel and tartar-emetic were administered withijut effect. About half-past four o'clock he requested me to ask Mrs. Washington t(j come to his bedside, when he desired her to go down to his room, and take from his desk two wills which she would find there, and bring them to him, which she did. Upon looking at one, which he obsei'ved was useless, he desired her to burn it, which she did ; and then took the other, and put it away. After this was done, I returned again to his bed- side and took his hand. He said to me, ' I find I am going — my breath can not continue long — 1 believed from the first attack that it would be fatal. Do you arrange and record all my military let- ters and papers ; arrange my accounts and settle my books, as you know more about them than any one else; and let Mr. Rawlins finish recording my other letters, which he has begun.' " The physicians arrived between five and six o'clock, and when they came to his bedside. Dr. Craik asked him if he would sit up in the bed : he held out his hand to me, and was raised up, when he said to the physician : ' I feel myself go- ing; you had better not take any more trouble about me, but let me go off qui- etly ; I can not last long.' They found what had been done was without effect; he lay down again, and they retired, ex- cepting Dr. Craik. He then said to him : ' Doctor, I die hard, but I am not afraid to i^o ; I believed, from my first attack, I should not survive it; my breath can not last long.' The doctor pressed his hand, but could not utter a word ; he re- tired from the bedside and sat by the fire, absorbed in grief. About eight o'clock the physicians again came into the room and applied blisteis to his legs, but went out without a ray of hope. From this time he appeared to bi-eathe with less difficulty than he had done, but was very restless, continually chang- ing his position, to endeavor to get ease. 1 aided him all in my power, and was gratified in believing he felt it, for he would look upon me with eyes speaking gratitude, but unable to utter a word without great distress. About ten o'clock 342 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. he made several attempts to speak to me before he could effect it; at length he said: ' I am just going. Have me decently buried ; and do not let my l>ody be put into the vault in less than two days after I am dead.' I bowed assent. He looked at me again and said, ' Do you under- stand me V I replied, * Yes sir.' ' 'Tis well,' said he. About ten minutes be- foie lie expired, his breathing became niui-h easier: he lay quietly: he with- drew his hand from mine, and felt his own pulse. I spoke to Dr. Craik, who sat by the fire ; hn came to the bedside. The general's hand fell from his wrist; I took it in mine, and placed on my breast. Dr. Craik placed his hands over his eyes ; and he expired without a sigh." Washington's Tomb is a simple struc- ture of stone, only the front of which is visible, the other parts being covered with the earth of a small sandhill which was excavated, and the sui'face of which was left covei'ed with dwarf cedars and a few other trees with which it was nat- ui'ally shaded. The whole is concealed from the view^of the passer-by, by a neat and substantial stone wall of con- siderable height, with a gate, over which is a slab bearing this inscription : — " Washington Family." The surrounding scene is left nearly in the state of nature. The irregular surface of the ground and the numerous trees exclude the sight of every distant object; and there is nothing in view to disturb the mind, in the solemn and impressive reflections which naturally arise within it. Although the Potomac flows by at a short distance from the spot, and was in full view from near the door of the original tomb, every glimpse of it is shut out from this, and not a single sound intrudes to interrupt the solitude. Few visiters to the spot obtain an en- trance into the tomb, or even through the gate. The stone coffin, which con- tains the ashes of the venerable occu- pant, is engraved with the arms of the United States, and the simple name of " Washington." The following description of General La Fayette's visit to the old tomb, was written by his companion and secretary, Levasseur : — " After a voyage of two hours, the guns of Fort Washington announced that we were approaching the last abode of the Father of his country. At this sol- emn signal, to which the military band accompanying us responded by plaintive strains, we went on deck, and the ven- erable soil of Mount Vernon was before us. At this view, an involuntary and spontaneous movement made us kneel. We landed in boats, and trod upon the ground so often trod by the feet of Wash- ington. A carriage received General La Fayette, and the other visiters silently ascended the precipitous path which con- dueled to the solitary habitation of Mount Vernon. In re-entering beneath this hospitable roof, which had sheltered him when the reign of terror tore him violently from his country and family, George La Fayette felt his heart sink within him, at no more finding him whose paternal care had softened his misfortunes ; while his father sought with emotion for everything which re- minded him of the companion of his gloi'ious toils. " Three nephews of General Wash- ington took La Fayette, his son, and myself, to conduct us to the tomb of their uncle ; our numerous companions remained in the house. In a few min- utes the cannon, thundering anew, an- nounced that La Fayette rendered hom- age to the ashes of Washington. Simple and modest as he was during life, the tomb of the citizen-hero is scarcely per- ceived among the sombre cypresses by which it is surrounded. A vault, slightly elevated and sodded over — a wooden door without inscriptions — some with- ered and green garlands, indicate to the traveller, who visits the spot, where rest in peace the puissant arms which broke the chains of his country. As we ap- proached, the door was opened. La Favette descended alone into the vault, and a few minutes after reappeared with his eyes overflowing with tears. He took his son and me by the hand, and led us into the tomb, where, by a sign, he indicated the coffin. We knelt rev- erentially, and rising, threw ourselves 344 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. into the arms of La Fayette, and min- gled our tears with his." Williamsburg, though a small place, is the oldest incorporated town in the state, and was formerly the capital. It is fifty-eight miles from Richmond, and sixty-eight from Norfolk. It has three churches, a magazine, two seminaries, the eastern lunatic asylum, and William and Mary college. The number of in- habitants is about sixteen hundred. The Statue of Lord Botetourt stands in the square, which retains a portion of its original beauty, though much mu- tilated, having been a good specimen of sculpture. He was one of the first judges of the colony. It was erected in 1774, at the expense of the colony. William and Mary College. — This was the first literary institution of the higher kind in Virginia, having been founded in 1692, under the reign of the sovereigns whose name it bears. They were its liberal benefactors, granting it twenty thousand acres of land as an en- dowment. There are five professors, about one hundred students, and about four thousand volumes in its libraries. The institiuion embraces a law depart- ment. The commencement is held on the 4th of July. This institution is the oldest of that name in the Union, with the single ex- ception of Harvard university, but was long kept as a mere grammar- dchool. Many of its graduates have been among the most distinguished men in the state and nation. Some of the books in the library bear the name of Robert Din- widdle and his coat-of-arms, with his mot- to : '' TJhiHbert.as,ibipatria.'' Among the most valuable works is Catesby's Natural History of Carolina, Florida, and the Bahama Banks, two volumes folio, English and French — printed in 1754. The first building was erected in 1793, in Williamsburg; but it was not until some important changes were made in the plan of the institution, that it began to assume the character of a college. The two professorships in di- vinity and that for Latin and Greek, established in 1692, were substituted by professorships in other departments. Among the six formerly existing was one for the instruction and conversion of the Indians, founded by Mr. Boyle, of England. The Old Capitol. — A few fragments only now remain of the building known as " the capitol." This, however, was not the first edifice erected for the capi- tol of the colony, which was consumed by fire in 1746. Its successor also was burned in 1832, and that is the one whose remains are to be seen. Within its walls some interesting incidents oc- curred. There Washington received, in his youth, an expression of the thanks of the colonial legislature, on his return from the French war, from the lips of Mr. Robinson, the speaker, who com- plimented him in such high terms, that, with characteristic modesty, he blushed, trembled, and stammered — unable to return a distinct answer. To relieve his embarrassment, the speaker kindly said : " Sit down, IMr. Washington ; your modesty is equal to your valor, and that surpasses the power of any language that I possess." In the same building, Patrick Henry made his first public speech before the house of burgesses ; and although in a coai'se dress, and with the air of " an obscure and unpolished rustic," he as- tonished the aristocratic members of the chamber, by his vigorous eloquence. The old Raleigh Tavern is still to be seen, distinguished by a bust of Sir Walter Raleis:h over the door. It is the place in which some of the most impor- tant committees of the legislature used to meet in the Revolutionary days; and there is said to have been first conceived and proposed, by Henry Lee and his associates, the system of correspondence which was carried on with so much suc- cess during the vvai\ Lord Dunsmore's Palace. — Two small buildings may be seen, which are the remains of the edifice occupied by Lord Dunsmore, the last royal governor of Virginia. They stand in a small court, which formed part of the extensive grounds which surrounded his mansion, and then embraced three hundred and sixty acres. There he maintained a splendid style of living ; but, being op- posed to the rising spint of the people 346 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. at the approaching of the revolutionary period, he was deprived of his place and power. T/ie Old Magazine. — This is an an- cient octagonal building, on the square, erected above one hundred and twenty years since, from which Governor Duns- more, in 1775, removed the gunpowder of the colony on board the man-of-war Magdalen, then in the harbor. This act excited the people to form the first armed forces assembled in opposition to the British sfovernment. YoRKTOWN, seventy miles from Rich- mond, is situated on the right bank of York river, and is distinguished for the closing military scene of the American revolution, the surrender of Lord Corn- wallis, which put a close to the strug- gle between Great Britain and the new states. It was founded in 1705, and was formerly much more flourishing than it now is. The number of inhabitants is very much reduced, so that it is hardly woithy of the name of a village, con- taining scarcely forty houses, and these mai"ked by decay. York county was one of the eisxht original counties into which Virginia was divided in 1634. The situation is pleasant, and many of the scenes are fine. The YorJc Tavern, in the village, is believed to be the oldest in the state. The I'uins of the old church have a sad and solemn aspect. It was built above one hundred and fifty years ago, and destroyed by fire in 1S14. The bell is preserved, and bears this inscription : — ''C()unt]i of York, Virginia, 1725." The walls of the building were com- posed of marl, which was soft when first dug from the ground, but hardened like stone after a little time. The White Sulphur Spring, in Green- briar county, t^vo hundred and twelve miles from Richmond, is situated in an elevated and be;iutit'ully picturesque val- ley, hemmed in by monntains on every side, and in the midst of the celebrated "spring region." Its elevation above tidewater is two thousand feet. It bursts with boldness from rock-lined apertures, and is enclosed by marble casements five feet square and three and a half feet deep. Its temperature is sixty-two degrees Fahrenheit, and remains uni- formly the same, winter and summer. The principal spring yields about eigh- teen gallons per minute, and is never increased or diminished by any changes of weathei'. The water is perfectly clear and transparent, and deposites copiously, as it floats over a rough and uneven sur- face of rocks, a white precipitate — some- times, under peculiar circumstances, red and black — composed in part of its in- gredients. Its taste and smell, fresh at the spring, are those of all waters so strongly impregnated with sulplmretted hydrogen gas. The fountain is enclosed and covered by a circular edifice, about thirty feet in diameter, supported by pillars like the cupola of a church r)r other public build- ing, except that in place of a weather- cock, or some religious emblem, the summit is handsomely embellished with a large marble figure of Hygeia (the goddess of health), presented by the late Mr. Henderson, of New Orleans, in a spirit of gratitude for the benefit he had received at this noble fountain. Here visiters resort early in the morn ing, to quaff* from two to six glasses of water impregnated chiefly with sulphate of lime, sulphate of magnesia, and sul- phate of soda. Within two hundred yards of the spring, in the centre of the valley, which here spreads out nearly to a plane sui- tace, and at the lower end of a lawn of some eight or ten acres, stands the dining j hall, near two hundred feet long, with i tables to seat six hundred guests. From j one hundred and fifty to two hundred 1 cabins and cottages are ranged along at j considerable elevation above the spring, in curvilinear form, adapted to the sinu- j osities of the mountain base that skirts I the valley, and other irregularities of ! the site; but still making nearly an ob- long square, and occupying a line of ! perhaps nearly a mile in its entire length, enclosing an area of ten or twelve acres, well set in blue grass, intersected with dry walks fi)r exercise, and ornamented with that variety of trees which seems characteristic of this region. Here the ■ native oak in all its grandeur ; there the I symmetrical sugar-maple; next again 348 DESCRU'TION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. I the hickory (that of the old stock), and hard by the locust. Those btNUitiful fovost-troes have been so judiciously lott and pruned, as not to conceal or smother what they were in- tended to sliadi^ and Ixiantify ; and make, wilii the cottages, especially wlieii these are lighted up at night, altogether a fine j)anoraina. Lord l\ror{)eth and other distinguished foreigners have, in their admiration, pro- nounced llu> bath at the Warm and the White Sulphur springs — for arrange- ment and extent of accommodations, scenery, and health-giving qualities of the water — far superior to any similar r^^sorts in I<]nrope. The cabins are all of brick, or neatly framed, linishcd, and painted, with a nice piazza s(>|);nalelY railed in for each. Many of them display handsome and chaste sjiocimens of architectux'e. Travellers leaving Baltimore in the morning, by the railroad, reach Win- chester the same evening ; thence travel by post-coach, along a Macadamized turnpike, one hundred mih^s up the val- ley of Stanton; su[) and lodge the next night at Clovordalo; and the second morning breakfast at the Warm springs. Tlie warm bath is forty feet in diameter and six fet^t in depth, ninety-eight de- grees Fahrenheit, and withal clear as crystal and sparkling as champagne. A Ni',(iKo (.'.\)UN. — There is iMMisid- erablo difference in the form, size, and materials of the habitations of negioes in \'irginia, especially if we include those in ll>e princij)al towns. That repi'e- sonted in the cut may be taken as a specimiMi of the largest and best kind »)rdinarily seen in the count ly. The negro huts are usually built in clusters ; those for the family servants forming a (|uadrangle in the yard, and others be- ing placed at a greater or less distance from the house of the planter, accord- ing to the extent t)f his estate. Most of them are built of loijs or the bodies of small trees ; the materials dif- fer, however, in certain parts of the country ; some of the poorer white peo- ple dwelling in huts of a similar descrip- tion. The arrangtMuents and furniture are of the simplest kind. The chinks between the logs or boards are filled, entirely or partly, with moss or clay ; the chimneys are formed of small sticks and covered with nnid ; the floor is the ground, which often serves for beds at night. The following is from a recent letter- writer : — '• Not long ago, I attended ti funeral of an aged female slave. About the grave were gathered some two score of negroes ; and as tlie coffin descended into the tomb, the moistened eye of every one bespoke the touched heart ; and an old man, with half-choked utter- ance, said : ' Cry not, my friends, our sister has gone from us, but we mus meet her do oder side of de grave. De great Master has sent for her, and she is now at home. God grant we be dere too!' The chi[)s made in constructing the collin, were burned in a fire made for the purpose in the open air, as they believe that death will soon enter the family on whose hearth-stone they are burned. Several weeks after the burial the sermon is priviched. Crowds of slaves attend, and all are treated abun- dantly to refreshments of every kind. " An old servant, who often speaks of the surrender at Yorktown, and of the scenes that wore witnessed at the time by him — and who told me that ho ' learned to read' when he went with his ' young master to college' — now that he is exempt from labor, spends his time in readiiiix his bible, and in ' Hofhtinor his battles over again.' 1 often see him of a Sunday evening, surrounded by an audience of his own race, reading and explaining the Scriptures to them ; and they, in the meant iiue, manifest their appreciation of the sacred word, by looks of the nn)st active interest, and expressions i>i joy ami comfort." Wkllsuurcs, eighty-seven miles from Pittsburg, on the Ohio river, has a bank, a couit house, live churches, with several manufactories, and about two thousand inhabitants. Rr/ruANY is eight miles oast from Wellsboro'. It is a small village, but is the seat of BctJuiiii/ College, an institution with about one hundred pupils. 350 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF VIRGINIA. Pocahontas. — No other Indian fe- male ever rendered such a service to a white man as Pocahontas, under cir- cumstances so well calculated to excite admiration. All have read the simple narrative of her intercession to save the life of Captain Smith, at that critical period when his death would jirolialily have led to the extirpation of liis little suffering colony. But perhaps many have lost sight of one circumstance which is calculated to enhance its effect upon the feelings. We refer to the tender years of the heroine : she was a child of only twelve or thirteen years of age. From the accounts we have of the case, we see abundant reason to believe that nothing could have directed her in the course she pursued, but a strong natural dictate of humanity. Yet why she should have been so affected in that case, it is difficult to say, as it may be presumed she had witnessed scenes of cruelty, bloodshed, and murder, among the savage race, and in the savage fam- ily to which she belonged. Many of the actions of Indians, we find on nearer acquaintance with them, are dictated by some of their strange superstitious no- tions. A dream, an unusual sight or sound, or some other trifle, they often believe to be connected with something which gives it importance. This is es- pecially true of the men, whose dreams in their initiatory fasts decide some im- portant point for life. We have no particular reason, how- ever, to assign such a motive to Poca- hontas', any more tlian to the celebrated Indian princess who figures so remark- ably in the early history of New Eng- land — the wife of Mononotto, the Pequod sachem, whose refinement and dignity, as well as lier humanity, excited the ad- miration of Governor Winslow, familiar as he was with the manners of the Eng- lish court. It was in the gloomy year when the little colony at Jamestown (the first which survived the trials of the settle- ment) was reduced to such snfftM-ings by the scarcity of food, that Smith, with the determination of relieving them, ven- tured amons: the Indians in the interior, and after proceeding up James river in a boat, left it with his companions at the landing, and went on toward the dwelling of Powhatan. This would, probably, have appeared only a bold step, if he had met with no difficulty ; but we are so prone to judge of an act by its consequences, that when we see him falling into a snare, laid on a rock, and a war-club raised to dash out his brains, we are ready to call him incon- siderate and rash. He appeared to have retained his presence of mind through all his dangers, and by happy expedients twice obtained a short reprieve, viz. : by showing the savages his pocket com- pass, and by sending to Jamestown for medicine to cure a sick Indian. These and other circumstances may have had their influence on the feelings of the young princess. But, whatever was the cause, she behaved like a heroine ; and not in one case only, or toward a single individual. By a timely message, sent no doubt with great personal risk, she warned the infant colony of the mur- derous ]ilots of the savages. Through her intercession, an English boy, named Henry Spilman, was saved from death, and afterward rendered the colonists much service. So strong was the friendship of Pocahontas for the whites, that she left her home, and re- sided with the Patamowekes, whose sachem, Japazas, was a friend of Smith's, that she might not witness the death of English prisoners, whom she could no longer rescue from the bloody hands of her father. Strange as it may seem, however, she was sold by that sachem to Captain Argall for a topper kettle, as he thought her father's attachment to her might prevent him from prosecuting his bitter persecutions of the colony. Her father sought to recover her ; but, before any arrangement was made for the return of the interesting captive, she gave her consent to marry an English- man named Rolfe, who had long before contracted an affection for her. The character of Powhatan is a very marked one. His attachment to his daughter alone would be enough to vin- dicate the red race from the charge of being without natural affection. He at first opposed her marriage, but after- Lrr DESCRIPTION OF THJ£ STATE OF ViiUJlNlA. 351 ward gave his consent, deHpatched an officer to witness the ceremony, sent a deerskin to Pocahontas and another to her husband, and maintained thereafter the most friendly terms with the col- onists. Yet Powhatan refused to give his younger daughter in marriage to Gov- ernor Dale, though solicited by him and her sister — saying to the messenger : — " Go back to your governor, and tell him that 1 value his love and peace, which, while I live, I will keep. Tell him that I love my daughter as my life; and though I have many children, I have none like her. If I could not see her, I would not live; and if I give her to you, I shall never see her. I hold it not a brotherly part to desire to take away two children at once." Pocahontas was baptized, and re- ceived the name of Rebecca. In 1616 she made a voyage to England with her husband, where she was received with much attention. Her husband had just been app(»inted to an office in the col- ony, and was preparing to return when she died, at the age of twenty-two. Her only child, a son, was educated by his uncle in Virginia, and his daughter was the ancestor of the Randolphs, and sev- eral other principal families of the state. John Randolph. — A writei- in the Norfolk Beacon describes a visit to the grave of this remarkable man, and in speaking of his former residence, thus writes : — " After a ride of two or three hours, we entered a forest of tall oaks, and were told by Mr. Cai'dwell that we were on Mr. Randolph's estate. Shortly the houses that were occupied by the great and eccentric genius ajjpeared through the intervening trees, l)uilt up in the midst of the woods. Not a stump to be seen, not a bush grubi)ed up — all standing as if the foot of man had never trodden there. Mr. Randolph would not suffer the primitive aspect of things to be disturbed in the least. Not a tree, or a branch, or a switch, was allowed to be cut. During his absence in Europe, a limb of an oak, projecting toward a window of one of the houses, drew so near that old Essex, fearing the window would be broken, cut off the limb. On Mr. Randolph's return, he at once dis- covered the mutilation ; old Essex was called up, ajul the reason demanded for cutting off the limb. The old negro told his master he feared the window would be broken. ' Then,' said Mr. R., ' why did you not move the housed' The writer met .Tohn, the former body servant of Mr. Randolph, who treated him with great politeness. He says : — "At my request, John directed us to his master's gi-ave, at th(; foot of a lofty i pine, just a few ste])s in the rear of the summer-house; the place was selected by Mr. R., just twenty years before his death, and by his dire(;tion his head was laid to the east instead of the west, the usual position. It was observed to .John that his master had ordered his body to be thus laid, that he might watch Henry Clay. .John replied that he had never heard him say anything of the kind. I suppose the position was preferred by Mr. Randolph because it is the Indian sepulchral posture ; his descent from Pocahontas, the Indian princess, being: one of the things he much l)oasted of A rude unchiselled mass of white rock, found by him on a distant part of his estate many years before his death, and used by him at the door of one of his houses as a washstand, marks the head of the grave. A huge mass of brown stone, also selected by him and used as a stepstone to mount his horse, marks the foot of the grave. These rocks were procured and kept for the purpose to which they are now appropriated, and particular directions were given to John on the subject. " I can never forget my emotion while standing over the unoinamented grave of the gifted and eccentric Randolph. The tall, unbroken forest by which I was surrounded — the silence and gloom that reigned uiidisturbed amid the de- serted place — the thought of the brilliant mind that once animated the remains then mouldering beneath the sod upon which I was standing — the vanity of earth's promises, hopes, and distinctions, impressed my heart and mind with a degree of solemnity and interest I was unwilling to dissipate." Like the other southern Atlantic states, the coast of North Carolina is uniformly flat, low, and sandy, but lit- tle elevated above the water's level, and generally covered with pine for- ests. It extends 320 miles ; and the low, sandy region referred to reaches from SO to 100 miles westward, to the hillv reo^ions, formina: an area of 23,000 square miles. All this, with scarcely an exception, is a dead level, with but few spots of good soil, and showing but little cultivation, although the live oak grows readily in some parts, and figs and some other fruits are easily cultivated in the most favored positions. One of the principal occupa- tions of the inhabitants has ever been the collection of tui-pentine, pitch, rosin, and tar, the first of which is a spontaneous effusion of the yellow pine when wounded, and the others the same substance in dilforetit degrees of itispissation, effected by the heat of fire applied to the trees when cut in pieces, and partly col- ored by smoke. This same business was carried on in many other of our states in their early periods, but in the most of them the supplies of turpentine have long failed, in consequence of the clearing of the pine land ; but the vast extent of the terebinthiiie forests of North Carolina has perpetuated this branch of man- ufactures to the present day. It may be presumed that such a soil and surface, and such a situation, could not prove favorable to the prosperity of tlie people. The mcmotony of the landscape corresponds too nearly with the monotony of life and stationary condition of society, iji which the difficulties of elevating habits or education are almost insurmountable. The hilly region of the state, which bounds the sandy region on the west, presents a marked and sudden change in climate, soil, and population. It oc- I DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. 353 cupies an area of 14,000 square miles, with a general, gentle slope to the south- east, cut through, at intervals, by rivers. The Roanoke, Yadkin, Catawba, Tar, Neuse, and Cape Fear rivers, are the principal streams of the state, but the Catawba and Yadkin, rising in the mid- dle region, empty in South Carolina. The Blue Ridge, which in several other states forms the eastern range of high land, is here in the rear of two oth- er hilly ranges, if, indeed, the Blue Ridge can with propriety be said to cross this state. A large part of this region is varied in a pleasing manner by hill ' and valley; while the soil is good, the climate cool, and the productions those ! of the temperate regions, including I wheat, grass, potatoes, apples, peaches, and Indian corn, which is the staple [ product. The villages are numerous ! and flourishing; the people industrious, intelligent, and prosperous ; and literary institutions are founded with success. The more elevated parts, as in the ad- joining states, have weather as cold in the winter, as in some of those much farther north. Iron is the only metal found in considerable quantities, and this is mined and manufactured to some ex- tent. Gold has been found on the sur- face, in a range of counties at the dividing line of the two regions, in loose particles or quartz stones, apparently the debris of a stratum of the hilly region, and perhaps belonging to a long auriferous range, extending from Georgia to Vir- ginia. Some geologists think it may be traced much further. About fifteen years ago, much interest was raised in the North Carolina gold mines, and several companies were formed, in New York and elsewhere, and mining operations were undertaken, partly with steam ma- chines imported from Europe. The sanguine expectations of adventurers were, however, soon disappointed ; but considerable quantities of gold are still annually derived from this state by the U. S. mint. The western part of the state has a slope toward the northwest, and is drained by several of the branches of the Tennessee river. settlements were begun Although vnthin the territory of this state at an early period, they were retarded by a variety of untoward circumstances, ari- sing partly from the nature of the coun- try, and partly from the influence of un- Avise policy and evil men. The weak- ness of the colonists, and the fear of the Indians, long prevented the occupation of land in the interior; and the seacoast offered only tracts of poor, sandy soil, burdened with pine forests, almost inca- pable of improvement, and at a uniform low level, but little hisfher than the ocean. The higher regions, now so flourishing and populous, lie far in the interior; but they were long un- known, and longer unoccupied. The first attempts to colonize this part of the country, were made by the French under Charles IX., from whose name (in Latin Carolus) the Carolinas derived their appellation. The interference of the Spaniards broke up the settlements. In 1586, Sir "Walter Raleigh sent out a small colony from England, under a pat- ent from Queen Elizabeth ; but no trace was ever found of them, and the pre- sumption is that they were destroyed by the Indians. North Carolina was included in the patent granted to Sir Robert Heath, at- torney-general of Charles II., in 1C30, which extended from Louisiana to the 36th degree of north latitude, and, as usual with English patents in those days, west to the Pacific ocean. All this ex- tensive region was named Carolina; but as circumstances did not favor the settle- ment within the specified time, it soon became null, and was afterward super- seded by a grant obtained from the same monarch, by Lord Clarendon, and some of his other friends, which embraced all the territory between the 31st and 36th desrrees of north latitude. In the meantime, however, settlements had been made north of Albemarle Sound, by colonists discontented with the intolerant measures adopted in Vir- ginia, and several families from Massa- chusetts arrived at Cape Fear, to engage in fishing. The latter, however, were soon obliged to apply for assistance to their friends at the north, which they received. 23 354 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. After the new charter had been grant- ed, the colonists at Albemarle were placed under the jurisdiction of the gov- ernor of Virginia, Sir William Berkeley, who soon paid them a visit, and appoint- ed Drummond to be their governor. In 1666, they chose the first assembly ever formed in this part of our country, and sent their new governor, Stephens, with a petition for the privilege of holding their lands on the same terms as their neighbors in Virginia, which was grant- ed them. A new constitution was also made, which provided for an annual election of members of the assembly by the colonists, while the choice of gov- ernor and half of the council was left to the proprietors. The taxes were to be laid by the assembly. In 1669, the first assembly under this constitution held their first session. A constitution for the colony was drawn up this year by the celebrated author John Locke, at the request of Lord Clarendon; but, as might have been expected, the general views on which it was founded, proved quite in- applicable to the people and the coun- try, and the experiment remains as a warning to all men who would meddle with plans of government for com- munities with which they are unac- quainted. A new colony was formed south of Cape Fear, by a band of men from Bar- badoes, under Governor Yeamans, who was created a baronet, and soon after a landsfrave, and the district was named the county of Clarendon. This settle- ment was soon divided, and we may now begin to speak of North and South Car- olina as partly distinct ; for, while a part of the settlers removed to Charles- ton, which had just been occupied, the remainder were soon united with Albe- marle. But many obstacles awaited the north- ern division of Carolina. In 1677 a re- bellion against the government was head- ed by Culpepper, a restless and trouble- some man, who usurped the government and^held it for two years, but was supei'- seded by Governor Eastchurch, after which he went to England, to offer the submission of the colonists on conditions, but was saved from punishment by the favoi of Lord Shaftsbury. He afler- ward purchased the interest of Lord Clarendon, took the government in 1683, and so disaft'ected the people by his cor- rupt policy, that they seized and impris- oned him in 1688, and afterward ban- ished him for a year. A band of Huguenots arrived fi'om France in 1707, and settled on the Trent, a branch of the Neuse, who were suc- ceeded in 1710 by a party of Palatines from Germany, and each received a grant of 100 acres of land. But most of these unfortunate colonists were soon after massacred, in a sudden and treacherous attack by 1,200 Indians, from several nations, and only a small number escaped, to tell the tale in the southern colony. Passing over some years, for even a sketch of which we have no room, we shall barely note the period of the sep- aration of Carolina into two pi'ovinces. In 1730, George Burrington was ap- pointed governor of North Carolina, by the crown, and he assumed his office at Edenton, Feb. 25th, 1731. To secure the friendship of the In- dians, Sir Edward Cumming was sent to the Cherokee country, which em- braced all the land between North and South Carolina and the Alleganies, and contained 20,000 persons, of whom 6,000 were warriors. The chiefs acknowl- edged King George their sovereign, on their knees, and sent a deputation to England. As early as 1731 rice had become the staple production of the colony, and was exported in great quantities. In 1738, commissioners appointed by the two colonies, began to run the boun- dary line, as fixed by royal command, from the northeast end of Long bay, northwestwardly to the 35th degree of latititude, and thence westwardly to the South sea! After running it 64 miles, it was agreed that the dividing line between the Cherokeos and the Catawbas should, for the present, be considered the line of the colonies. The same year, the three counties, Albemarle, Bath, and Claren- don, into which the colony had before this been divided, were abolished, and the precincts were erected into counties. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. 355 Provision was made for placing buoys in the rivers, and otherw^ise improving the navigation. Soldiers w^ere raised in North Caro- lina in 1740, for the expedition sent ajrainst Pensacola from Charleston, and also to join the expedition against Cuba. The legislature, for ^he support of the war, laid a poll-tax of three shillings " proclamation money," to be paid in tobacco, rice, liulian-drfessed skins, bees- wax, tallow, pork, and beef In Albe- marle, the people were allowed to pay in bills of credit, at the rate of seven and a half pounds for one pound procla- mation money. The ordinary taxes were also made payable in the above- mentioned articles, and warehouses to receive them were ordered to be built in all the counties. To encourage immi- gration, foreigners were offered the priv- ileges of citizens, after seven years res- idence, by taking the oath of abjuration, and receiving the communion in a prot- estant church ; Jews and quakers being excused from the last. The same year, in consequence of complaints made by British merchants against the paper money, the legislature agreed to issue no moi'e without the con- sent of the king. To the expedition against Havana, under Admiral Vernon, in 1741, North Carolina supplied 400 men. The legislature divided the col- ony into 14 pai'ishes, regulated the elec- tion of chuichwardens and vestrymen, provided for the erection of churches, the apprehension of fugitives, and the trial and punishment of slaves, defining the rights and duties of masters and servants, and laying restrictions on the emancipa- tion of the latter. The legislature, in 1743, although urged by the governor to make spirited preparations for defence against the Spaniards and French, in consequence of the threatening aspect of affairs, con- sented only to erect magazines in the dif- ferent counties. The next yeai", John, Lord Carteret, afterward earl of Gran- ville, had one eighth part of the original province of Carolina, which had been reserved to him by act of parliament, set apart to him, he resigning his inter- est in the government, and his title to I the other seven. His territory ex- tended from Virginia to a line drawn in j latitude 35 degrees 34 minutes from the Atlantic to the Pacific ! This tract was granted to Lord Carteret (except the powers of government), to be holden on the payment of thirty-three shillings and fourpence yearly, for ever, with one fourth of all the gold and silver ore. War having been declared by Eng- land against France, in 1745, Fort .Tohn- son was erected at the mouth of Ctipe Fear river, for 24 cannon. The village of Powerscreek, on that part of the riv- er, was then expected to become an im- portant port, but Wilmington has in- creased at its expense. Two years af- ' ter this, a number of the adherents of the Pretender, after the faihu'e of his attempt to seize the crown of England, settled in the vicinity of the present town of Fayetteville. The legislature took I measures to have the laws printed for I the use of the people. They had hith- ! erto been circulated in loose manu- scripts. i After the passage of the stamp-act by the British parliament, meetings were held in Edenton, Newbern, and Wil- mington, to express the strong disap- probation of the people, and their con- currence with the northern colonies. A spirited address was published by an il- literate but patriotic man at Nutbush, Granville county, "containing a brief narrative of our deplorable situation, and the wrongs we suffer, and some neces- sary hints with respect to a reformation." I The repi'esentatives of Massachusetts, in .June, directed their speaker to ad- dress the speakers of the other colonial legislatures, inviting a mooting at New j York, on the first Tuesday in October, [ at which North Carolina was not repre- sented. The people, however, in all ' their public meetings, expressed warm approbation of the measures adopted by the northern colonies. Early in the year 1766, the sloop-of- I war Diligence arrived in Cape Fear riv- er, with stamped paper for distribution ; but Cokmels Ashe and Waddle assembled the militia at Brunswick, and informed : the commander that they wt)uld resist i the landing of the stamps. They seized 356 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. one of the boats, and carried it in tri- ' umph through Wilmington. The next day, Col. Ashe led a party to the gover- nor's house, and threatened to set fire to it uidess the stamp officer gave them an audience. The latter was induced to resign his office. In February a riot took place in Wilmington, and a duel, in which an officer was killed. In 17C)7, the two houses of the legis- lature joined in an address tc the king, on the repeal of the stam})-act, after the lower house had resisted all the exertions of the govornt)r to reconcile them to it. The document was written with ability, and disclaimed every disloyal intention. ' But the vanity of Governor Tryon led him this year to begin a project, which laid the foundation of serious difficulties to the colony. This was the erection | of a palace for his residence, at the ' expense of the people. The houses were prevailed upon to appro})riate j .£5,000, which he expended in purcha- j sing ground at Newborn, and laying a ] foundation, the money having been whol- ly intrusted to him. He made himself ridiculous, also, by making an ostenta- tious military display, in leading a party westward, to settle the boundary with the Indians. The next year, >.€10,000 were added to the palace fund, and a mob was soon raised in the west, which set the government at defiance for several years, t)ften overawing the officers and courts by a display of armed companies, sometimes to the number of 1,500 men; the people having bound themselves to pay no taxes, until they should have some security for the proper use of their money. They several times seemed sat- isfied, and made very humble acknowl- edgments, particularly to the king. The governor's palace having been completed, in 1770 the legislature were received there, and the edifice is de- scribed as one of great magnificence, even for England. But the attempt to get an obnoxious friend of the governor into the lower house, again excited the mob (or regulators as they called them- selves), who threatened to burn the town. A ditch was dug from river to river for defcMu^e, and the country militia were ordered to be in readiness to march in. The legislature had, before this time, addressed the king on the subject of tax- ation without representation, hi the spir- it of Massachusetts and other colonies, though in opposition to the I'epeated re- monstrances of the governor. In 1770, the sheriff's were ordered to disperse every meeting of l^n men, wherever as- sembled, and it was declared to be fel- ony, without benefit of clergy, to diso- bey, or to undeitake any unlawftd acts. The next year the public troubles came to a crisis. Governor Tryon, at the head of a few hundred militia, met a somewhat more numerous body of reg- ulators at the great Almance river, and, after repeated attempts to bring them to an accommodation, had a sharp battle with them for an hour, which discipline and cannon decided in his i'avor. A few executions terminated the whole, and the governor soon sailed for New York. In 1774, on the 25th of August, a meetintr of deleojates was held at New- bern, representing meetings of the peo- pU^ ill all parts of the state, who had as- senil)led to express their feelings on the condition of the country ; and although the governor (-ailed the council, they re- fused to-jict, while the convention chose John Harvey, of Perquiman, for s])eak- er, and adopted resolutions, expressive of unshaken loyalty, but firmly in favor of the country, and opposed to the north- port act, the taxes on tea, &c. They ap])lauded the measures of Massachu- setts, and resolved not to import, pur- chase, nor exp(n't, until American griev- ances were removed. They approved of the proposed congress at Philadelphia, resolved to hold no intercourse with persons or towns who would not co-ope- rate with them, and agreed to contribute for the relit^f of Boston sufferers. They then ap})ointed deputies to the congress, William Hooper, of Doange, Joseph Howes, of l<]denton, and Richard Cas- well, of Dobbs county. Tlie legislature met at Edenton, on the 4th of A])ril, 1775, at the time when the delegates of the people assembled to appoint members of the congress, many of the delegates being also mem- bers of the legislature, and John Har- vey being chairman of both bodies. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROI.INA. 357 Govei-nor Martin, in a long speech, re- monstrated against the proceedings of the people, and the deputies replied in the plainest and most decided tone. The council, at the proposal of the gov- ernor, struck off the name of John Har- vey from the list f)f justices of his coun- ty ; and he afterward collected cannon for the defence of his palace, endeav- ored to enlist the Higlil;uid(n-s and oth- ers in the west to take part with him, and wrote a letter to (reneral Gage, at Boston, for ai'ms anrl ammunition, which was intercepted. l>ut the committees of safety were active throughr)ut the colony, and that of Newbern took away the governor's cannon, and drove him, in fear, to take refuge in l:'"'ort .Johnson. A dangerous plot was discovered on the evening of .luly 7th, for a massacre of the 2)eople on Tar river, by their ne- groes, on the following day, and many of the latter were found armed. The people of Wilmington prepared to seize the arms, &c., at Fort Johnson, but found the governor had embai-ked with them on board the sloop-of-warCruizer. They then burned the fort, head(!d by .John Ashe, who had resigned his commission as militia colonel of New Hanover. The congress authorized the levy of 1,000 men, in North Carolina, if neces- sary, to be regarded as part of an Amer- ican army ; the 20th of .July was kept as a day of fasting and prayer, and the provincial congress met August 20th, to the number of 184 members ; while the governor issued a proclamation, offering pardons &c. ; J[,000 troops were raised, and 400 placed in Wilmington, the first regiment under .Tames Moore, and the other under Robert RoXve, and 150,000 dollars was emitted in bills of credit, to be redeemed by a poll-tax of nine years, to commence in 1777. A battalion of ten companies of fifty minute-men, was ordered to be raised in each district. The congress also adopted an address to the inhabitants of the British empire, drawn up, it is said, by William Hooper. Other arrangements were made for de- fence. On the 19th of April, 1775, a com- mittee, appointed by the captains of mi- litia of Mecklenburg county, met at Char- lotte, and while in session, received news of the battle of Lexington, when, after hearing addr(>sses fi-om some of the UKjm- bers, they all cried out, " Let us be in- dependent!" and Dr. Ephraim Brevard reported resolutions declaring them- selves " a fi'ee and independent people." They were forwarded to the congress at Philadelphia, but the president said it would be premature to prcisent them. Governor Maitin now sent emissaries to the regulators and the Highlanders in the southern coiinties, and a General M'Donald, to induce them to adhere to the royal cause; to counteract which, clergymen were sent to defeat his eftbrts ■ to deceive them. Lord Dunmore of Vir- ; ginia at the same time marr^lied for the ' northern counties, with 120 regular troops, and some tories and negroes. He intrenched himself at the grc^at bridge, and invited slaves to join him; but he was attacked by Lieut. Colonel Scott, while Lieutenant Tibbs, with his boat-guard, six miles off, was attacked by royal troops, which he repulsed. General M'Donald, with 1,500 men, offered terms to Colonel Moore, en- camped on Rocky river, and after some time passed him by a rapid march, but was defeated by Colonel Caswell near Wilmington, and made prisoner. In May, 1776, Sir Peter Parker's ex- pedition of about ,30 vessels reached Cape Fear river, and on the 12th, Gen- erals Clinton and Cornwallis landed at General Howe's plantation in the coun- ty of Brunswick, with 900 men, but failed in their object, which was to sur- prise Major Davis at Ostin's mills, for a sentinel on the shore gave the alarm, they were fired upon while crossing the causeway, and accomplished nothing but the destruction of the mills, and the beating, stabbing, and shooting of three women who fell into their power. They returned on board, with the loss of sev- eral men. The expedition failed, in consequence of the universal patriotism of the people, the defeat of M'Donald, and the refusal of the regulators to co- operate. After waiting in vain for their friends on shore, until they were obliged to kill several horses for food, they sailed on the 29th of May for Charleston. r 358 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NOK.TH CAROLINA. The constitution of the state was adopted in December, 1776, and in 1835 was revised. There are 35 senators, and 120 members of the house of com- mons, who are elected once in two years, as is the governor. The houses elect an executive council of seven, for two years, and the judges of the supreme court, to act during good behavior. The attorney-general is appointed by the legislature for four years. All white males, 21 years of age, inhabitants of the state for 12 months, are allowed to vote, except for senators, for which a freehold of 50 acres of land is necessary. The legislature meets twice a year at Raleigh. Little as the lower parts of North Carolina afford of variety, either in sur- face, soil, or natural productions, there is a region in the west, which vies with the most picturesque portions of the Union in rudeness and sublimity. The mountain region comprehends some of the highest land this side of the Rocky mountains, and towers far above the common table-land of the western coun- ties. The latter is about 1,800 feet above the ocean, while Grandfather mountain is 5,556 feet. Roan mountain 6,038, and Black mountain 6,476 : a little more than the reported height of Mount Washing- ton, the loftiest peak of the White hills of New Hampshire. The rivers, in the upper parts of their courses, wind through some pleasing and striking scenes; and in their lower parts, several are accessible to vessels, and now visited by steamboats. Near the middle of the state, passes the boundary between the high and the low lands ; and this line, which extends through several other adjacent states, is connected with some peculiarities of great importance. East of it extends the broad and sandy level to the seacoast, through which the rivers flow with a slow and uniform course, whose head-waters come through the high, cool, and more health fvil region west of it, with a descent which precludes navigation. The occu- pations of the people, and the state of society, differ considerably in those two parts of the state, as well as the native products of the soil, and the objects of culture and of export. Near that line, also, are the gold mines, which, a few years since, began to excite much atten- tion, and which are still wrought with some success. The peculiar features of the coast of North Carolina, render it the scene of frequent shipwrecks, and of consequent sufferings to crews and passengers. The land is so level and low, as to render it difficult of discovery from a distance, except in clear weather; and the great- est desolation and solitude generally pre- vail there, which, with the difficulty of crossing the sounds that form so large a part of the eastern boundary of the state, often render the situation of un- fortunate mariners almost desperate, even after they have escaped the perils of the sea, before they can obtain relief from the land. The temptation offered by the exposure of property thrown on shoi'e by the waves, has too often led the solitary, ignorant, and indigent in- habitants, in some places, to theft and inhumanity : but such acts have been rare of late years, and instances of hospital- ity and kindness are much more common. In some of the poorest parts of the low country, a habit prevails to a con- siderable extent, which is at once un- natural and injurious: clay-eating. A species of fine clay is found, which many learn to eat while young; and the prac- tice leads to the formation of an invet- erate habit, which at length produces a peculiar diseased and almost idiotic ap- pearance and dulness of mind, with se- rious injury to the health, often termina- ting in premature death. .^ The Dismal swamp, lying partly in Virginia and partly in this state, renders a large tract in its northeastern corner uninhabitable, and almost entirely use- less. It lies nearly on a level with the ocean, and presents only a dreary and repulsive wilderness of cypress, and oth- er trees and plants able to live in water or marshy soil, with patches of some- what drier land here and there, rising from the immense morasses, and a large pond in the middle called the Lake of the Dismal swamp. The whole tract is 22 miles in length, and it connects the waters of Albemarle sound with Chesapeake bay. There is no passage DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. 359 through it, except the canal which has been cut from Virginia, to bring the produce of that part of the state to Nor- folk. It is a work of considerable im- portance and value : but a more unat- tractive region can hardly be imagined, than that through which it passes. The Gold Mines. — According to tra- ditions in some parts of the gold regions (which may embrace a tract of a thou- sand square miles), that precious metal has been found from early times, and sometimes in large masses. It now oc- curs in small lumps and grains, down to minute points, invisible even to the mi- croscope ; for the auriferous quartz often yields a considerable quantity when sub- mitted to the separating process, even when no indication of its presence can be detected by the highest magnifiers. The books of the U. S. mint first re- cord the receiving of gold from North Carolina in the year 1814, when 11,000 dollars' worth was obtained. Between that time and 1824, an annual average of only $2,500 was received; in 1825, $17,000; 1826,120,000; 1827, $21,000; 1828, nearly $46,000; and 1829, $128,- 000. The best gold-washings (as depos- ites in sand ai"e called), are in the coun- ties of Burke and Rutherfoi'd. The miners believe that streams of water formerly flowed where the gold is now found in this condition. The richest mines, properly so called, where the metal is found in rocks and stones, are in Mecklenburg, Rowan, Davidson, and Cabarras counties. There the particles are usually invisible to the naked eye, and are separated by the aid of quick- silver. The best veins have a dip of 45 degrees to the horizon, and are fi'om a few inches in thickness to several feet. The process of obtaining it pure is la- borious, tedious, and expensive. In some places excavations have been made 120 feet deep. The stones are beaten to fine dust, either by common hammers, or by sledges moved by steam, and the mass is then placed in wooden troughs, called rockers, with a quantity of quicksilver, and a small stream of water is made to flow in, while the troughs are kept in continual gentle motion. The quicksil- ver readily combines or amalgamates with gold when brought into contact with it, and after this pi'ocess has been kept up for a time, a lump of the united metals is taken out, and pi-essed in a deerskin bag, through the pores of which the quicksilver is forced in minute globules, while the gold is left behind in a state of purity. The separation is effected at some foreign gold mines by heat, which distils over the quicksilver. During the height of the gold specu- lations, 6,000 persons were employed by one company, and it was supposed that 20,000 were occupied in the business in all parts of the gold counties. The annual product of gold was once estimated as high as $100,000 a week, or at the rate of five millions annually. The chief part of the laborers were Germans, Swedes, and other foreigners, speaking not less than thirteen different languages, and most of the gold was exported to Europe. The village of Charlotte, in Mecklenburg county, which is near one of the largest mines, experienced a sud- den growth and a great increase of busi- ness : but the influence of mining, as carried on in the state generally, has not been favorable to the moral interests of the people. In the course of the excavations, evi- dences have been found of former mining operations, on the same ground. Many pieces of machinery have been discov- ered, and crucibles, of considerable size, and, in the opinion of some of the mi- ners, of superior qualities to the best Hessian crucibles of the present day. Internal Improvements. — Exertions have been made to improve the very de- fective channels of trade in this state, and to prevent the products fiiom being carried to the ports of South Carolina and Virginia. In 1815, an extensive system of canals and roads was planned, and much expense has been incurred in connecting the principal rivers by canals, the draining of marshes, &c. Railroads have since been constructed, which add much to the prosperity of the state. Education. — The institutions for edu- cation have been much increased since the year 1804, when there were only two academies. They are now established :i60 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. in different parts of the state ; and the university of North Carolina, at Chapel Hill, 28 miles from Raleigh, is a respec- table and flourishing institution. Religious Denominatiotis. — The bap- tists are most numerous, and the meth- odists the next. After these are the presbyterians, Lutherans, episcopalians, united brethren, and friends. The Mamifacturc of Tar and Turjyen- tine. — The following description of the process of making tar and turpentine, we copy from a letter from a traveller in the South, which appeared in a late news- paper: — " This turpentine business has become, within the last two years, a very lucra- tive one indeed. The boundless forests of fir which cover North Carolina, offer material to the enterprising fox- a couple of centuries to come. The forests can be purchased for a dollar an acre. Some farms have been sold for ten cents an acre ! and the highest I have heard did not exceed two dollars. " Many speculators have latterly en- tered into this turpentine manufacture. One negro man will collect 200 barrels in a season, which will sell for about $800; about $100 will feed and clothe the negro; thus there is a pretty full margin of profit for the capital embarked in the land and negroes. It is better by far than cotton-raising — many cotton planters are going into it, and the expan- sion of manufactures and arts, at home and abroad, keeps pace with the in- creased number of those who are enter- ing into this profitable business. "For the benefit of those who have nev^r been in a turpentine country, I may describe the process of gathering and distilling this subtle spirit. The trees are cupped in the spring ; about eighteen inches square of the bark is peeled of; the cupping is made by one or two cuts of an axe, of peculiar shape, near the root. In the summer and fall the turpentine oozes out through this vent. The negro comes round fi-om tree to tree, and gathers this oozed matter into his bucket. The trees are contin- ually exuding during the season. The ensuing year they are cut a little higher than before, when a new crop is ob- tained. The process may be repeated for five or six years, cutting higher up the trunk each year; after which the trees are cut down and chopped into short logs, and piled together in peculiar heaps, called "kilns," when a slow fire is put under the heap, and thus pitch and tar are obtained from the heated pile. The fatty matter, or raw turpen- tine, is packed into barrels — brought to the distilleries, boiled and evaporated in the common way in which spirit is extracted in the alcohol distilleries, the steam passing through a large worm or refrigerator, which is set in an immense vat of cold water. The surface of the water, being the hottest, passes off, while the attendant keeps pumping cold water through a pipe that forces it to the bot- tom, causing the hot water, created on the surface, to pass off. The steam comes out in spirits of turpentine below, and is barrelled tightly and sent to all the markets of the world, and the resi- due is rosin. " North Carolinasends out an immense quantity of Indian com, staves, turpen- tine, pitch, tar, and rosin, besides which, she is beginning to manufacture cotton and woollens." Raleigh, the seat of government, is situated nearly in the centre of the state, 6 miles distant from the river Neuse, 164 southwest from Richmond, and 288 southwest from Washino-ton. It was named in honor of that conspic- uous statesman of Queen Elizabeth, who makes so interesting a figure in the his- tory of her reign, and displayed so much zeal in prosecuting discoveries, and planting protestant colonies in this part of America. Raleigh is a small town, containing only about 3,000 inhabitants, but it is pleasantly situated, and laid out with taste, having a square of ten acres in the centre, called Union square, from which the four principal streets, of a fine breadth, viz., 99 feet, diverge at right angles. Between these are four smaller squares of four acres each. There are two academies, and several otner public buildings. The capitol, which was destroyed by fire several years ago, contained the finest and most 362 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. valuable piece of sculpture ever seen in America: a statue of Washington, by Canova. With a degree of taste and patriotic spirit which are highly credit- able to the state, the legislature em- ployed that greatest of modern sculp- tors to execute the noble work, on which he was employed as early as 1819. It was placed in the capitol, and excited general admiration, being made of the finest Carrara marble, in a dignified sit- ting posture, with an expression and features much like those of the Father of his country. The costume was that of a Roman senator. In the destruction of the statehouse, this most valuable of its contents was ruined; but although it can never be replaced, the history of it will reflect lasting honor upon the char- acter of the state. The old statehouse (which is repre- sented in our engraving) was a well- proportioned edifice, of plain architec- ture, and consisted of a main building and a projection at the centre, with a basement of hewn stone, and a front of four Ionic half-columns, while a large dome, with a cupola, rose from the mid- dle of the roof. A broad yard in front, offered a fine approach ; and the building was of sufficient size to afford large halls for the legislature, and various offices, and other appropriate apartments for public purposes. The present statehouse is of granite, on the plan of the celebrated temple of Minerva at Athens, called the Parthe- non, 166 feet in length, 90 in breadth, with a range of noble columns of gran- ite, 30 feet high, and five and a half in diameter. The other public buildings are the courthouse, the governor's house, five churches, four academies, two banks, and a theatre. Wake Forest College is at Forestville, 15 miles from Raleigh. It has three professorships, and a library of 4,700 volumes, and was founded in 1838. The number of pupils is yet small. Edenton is a small town, situated on the bay at the mouth of Chouan river, and contaifts a handsome courthouse, t^vo churches, an academy, and a bank, with a population of about 1,600. Stage- coaches go to Norfolk three times a week, distant 86 miles. Tarhorough stands on the south side of Tar river, and contains a courthouse, two churches, a bank, and an academy, with about 600 inhabitants. Stage- coaches go every other day to Raleigh and Washington. Warrenton, 62 miles northeast from Raleigh, is a small town, containing abcjut 600 inhabitants, now fi'equently visited on account of its proximity to a favorite watering-place, which is resort- I ed to, in the warm season, by many trav- ellers. This is the Shocco White Sulphur Springs, 12 miles from Warrenton, with which there is a daily communication by stage-coach- j es. The water is charged with sulphur- ; etted hydrogen and carbonic acid gases, ' and contains the sulphates of lime and \ magnesia, oxyde of iron, muriate of soda, I and carbonate of lime, and is vecoxn- mended for diseases of the skin and the : liver. i Wilmington. — This is the principal I town in the state for trade and most oth- er kinds of business. It contains a pop- ulation of about 10,000, of whom 7,000 are whites. It stands on the eastern bank of Cape Fear river, just below the confiuence of the two branches, 13 miles from the ocean, at the head of naviga- tion for vessels of 300 tons, although steamboats go up to Fayetteville a part of the year, 120 miles. The town is chiefly built on four streets, and in some parts shows some of the ruins caused by several destructive fires, from which it has successively suffered. The houses are built of pitch pine, which renders it difficult to arrest the progress of the flames when once enkindled. Much lumber is l)roaglit down the river, and sawed up by steam-mills nocted on the shore, where vessels receive their freight for the West Indies, and some of the northern ports. The railroad has in- creased the population in six years, about 6,000. Great quantities of turpentine, tar, &c., are also broua:ht here from the countrv. Considerable quantities of spirits of tur- pentine are made, about twenty man- ufactories having been recently erected. We must conclude our sketch of North ; Carolina with a brief account of one of the most courageous acts in the his- tory of the revolutionary war in this state. In Ramsay's history of South Carolina, mention is made of an engagement, which took place at Williams' planta- tion, in the upper part of South Carolina, on the lr2th of July, 1780, between " a part of the corps commanded by Col. Sumter," and a detachment of British troops and tories under the command of Captain Huck. The historian does not inform us, however, who commanded this '' parti/'^ from the corps of Col. Sumter, nor are we told by him the particulars of this brilliant little engage- ment, which was the first check given to the royal forces after landing in South Carolina on the 11th of February, 1780. The following account of it is from the speech of Col. W. C. Beatty of Yorkville, delivered on the anniver- sary of the battle, in 1839. Captain Christian Huyck was said to be a native of Philadelphia. He bore the commission of a captain in the Brit- ish army and was distinguished for his profanity and bloody deeds in the upper part of South Carolina. His enmity to the presbyterians displayed itself in burning the library and dwelling-house of their clei;gyman, Mr. Linyman. At the m(jment of his attack and defeat, "a number of women," says Dr. Ramsay, " were on their knees, vainly soliciting his mercy, in behalf of their families and property." He had been despatched by Cf)l. Turnbull, the commander of the British forces at Rocky Mount, with the following orders:' " You are hereby ordered, with the cavalry under your command, to proceed to the frontier of the province, collecting all the royal militia with you in your march, and with said force to push the rebels, as far as you may deem convenient." Previous to the issuing of the above order. Colonel Bratton, Major Wynn, and Captain M'Clure, had attacked and defeated a body of tories assembled at Mobley's meetinghouse in Fairfield dis- trict. This gallant adventure on the part of a few bold whigs, had induced Col. Turnbull to send Captain Huyck into York district to chastise the rebels — " push them as far as he might deem convenient." " The evening before his defeat he arrived at the house of Col. Bratton and demanded of Mrs. Bratton where her husband was. She replied that he was in Sumter's army. He then proposed to her, if she would get her husband to come in and join the royalists, he should have a commission in the British service. Mrs. Bratton replied with heroic firmness tliat she preferred her husband's remaining and dying in the army of his countiy." For this bold and spirited reply, a soldier, under the command of Huyck, attempt- ed her life, and was prevented executing his purpose by the interference of an officer second in command. She was then ordered to prepare supper for Cap- tain Huyck and his officers. While doing so, the idea occurred to her that "she might play," in the language of Col. Beatty, "a Roman's part and take a deadly revenge on the enemies of her country." She had poison in the house and could mix it with the food. But a moment's reflection taught her that this food might fall into the possession of the whigs, who were closely watching the footsteps of the enemy. Her own brave husband might, by some mishap, be the victim of her treachery, instead of his enemies. The idea was quickly abandoned. Huck and his officers slept in William- son's house the night preceding the battle. His*roops lay encamped around it. A road enclosed in a lane passed the door, and sentinels were posted along the road. The guard kept negligent watch, and the troops lay in fancied security — undreaming of to-morrow's scenes — unknowing that they were al- ready marked for defeat and death. On that same day. Col. Bratton, with one hundred and twenty-five men, principally his neighboi's, left Mecklenburg county. North Carolina, under the <»nviction that some royal force, would shortly visit their neighborhood to avenge the defeat of the tories at Mobley's meetinghouse. During the march, about fifty of the men dropped off, and thus only seventy- 364 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF NORTH CAROLINA. five were left to attack the enemy, in- stead of one hundred and thirty-three, as stated in the history of CaroUna. With this force, Col. Bratton arrived that night near their encampment. In- telligence of the enemy had passed up, and tlieir number, had been received during the day. After concealing their horses in a swamp, the whigs impatient- ly awaited the dawn of day, to commence the attack. At length it came, and with it victory. One half of the men, led by Col. Bratton and Capt. Moffit, came up the lane, while the other half, command- ed by Capt. M'Clure, of Chester, a brave and daring officer, were sent round to the head of the lane. Thus the enemy were o-.'.closed, speedily routed and con- quered. When the attack commenced, Huck and his officers were in bed, and were aroused from their slumbers by the roar of the American guns. The captain quickly mounted his horse and attempted to rally his men. This he several times effected, but all his effi)rts were unavail- ing — the determined spirit of the whigs carried all before them — and as soon as Huck fell, his men thi'ew down their arms and fled. Huck, Col. Fersfuson of the British army, and thirty-five or forty men, lay dead on the field or were wounded unto death. How many per- ished in the woods is not known — the rest escaped. Of the whigs, only one was killed — whose name was Campbell, as stated by Col. Gill. The rest, though in the thickest and hottest of the fight, escaped unhurt, to fight other battles and do further service in the cause of their beloved country. This battle is said to have lasted one hour. This victory was not only brilliant and glorious in itself, but it had the most salutary and important effect on the des- tinies of the state. It was the first time since the fall of Charleston, that any power dared to meet the hitherto victo- rious enemy. This victory reanimated the drooping spirits of the country. The citizens %ere buoyed up with new life and fresh hopes. It brought them con- fidence, and taught the enemy to dread the vengeance of fi-eemen, fighting for their liberties, their lives, and domestic altars. It had the direct and immediate effect of embodying the whigs, and in a few days afterward, six hundred new troops joined the army of Sumter. Thus reinforced, on the thirtieth of the same month, Gen. Sumter made a spirited at- tack on the British forces at Rockv Mount, and in eight days afterward gained a complete victory over the en- emy at Hanging Rock. After the engagement was over, the officer who had saved the life of Mrs. Bratton the evening before, was about being put to death by the whigs. He asked the favor of being earned into the presence of Mrs. Bratton, who immedi- ately recognised him, related her obli- gation to him, and implored that his life might be spared, which was done. Thus she had an opportunity of proving that she was as grateful in the hour of tri- umph, as she had been bold and spirited in the time of danger. Col. AV. Bratton, who was chief in command on the occasion, was a gallant officer throughout the American revolu- tion. He was in the battles fousjht at Guildford courthouse, Hanging Rock, Blackstocks, Rowsam's mills, and Mob- ley's meetinghouse, beside the one al- ready recounted. In all of these engage- ments, he fought with great spirit, cour- age, and determined bravery. In the darkest period of his counti-y's distress, he stood firm in her cause, and by his influence and example, encouraged and cheered on his whig neighbors, and "bid them hope for brighter and better days." As an evidence of his uncom- mon darintr, it is said, that on the ni'j-ht before the battle at Williamson's, he re- connoitred the encampment and ad- vanced entirely within their line of sen- tinels. By this bold adventure, lie ac- quired information which greatly con- tributed to the victory which they gained. The distinction and honor of having killed the famous Captain Huck, or Huyck, as his name was more proj^erly wi'itten, belonged to John Carroll, who greatly distinguished himself in many engagements by his extraordinary bold- ness and daring. Huck was shot while endeavoring to rally his men. This battleground is now known as Brattons- ville. I This state, although presenting many of the leading features which characterize North Carolina, enjoys some counterbalancing advantages, of much importance to commerce and agriculture. There is a good harbor at Cliarleston, and several of the riv- ers and inlets along the coast are more accessible, and navigable to a greater distance. The low land which borders the ocean has many tracts of j^ good soil, among which are numerous rice-fields. The line between the high and the low lands is still more marked than in North Carolina, in its influence on trade and the position of towns. Rice and cotton in the low grounds, and cotton and grain in the middle regions, and apples and other northern plants in the mountains, mark their ap- propriate sections, while maize yields abundantly in all parts. The oak and palm, as well as the pine and walnut, are prevailing native trees, and many others have been introduced. A i'ew of the events in the early history of South Cai'olina have been given in the preceding pages, in speaking of the first settlements of North Carolina, with which it was for a time connected. Oyster Point, near Charleston, was first occu- pied l)y a colony under William Sayle. who, having made a survey of the coast some years previously, arrived on the coast in 1670, and after several changes of place, finally chose the spot at the confluence of the Ashley and Cooper rivei'S, near that now covered by the large and flourishing city of Charleston. The number of the colonists was soon increased, as we have before remax'ked, and the name of South Carolina was conferred on the new settlement. 366 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. In 1674, Joseph West was elected s^overnor, and exercised the chief author- ity for several years, with much ability. The principal offices were filled by the cavaliers, although the puritans wei"e in greater numbers ; and considerable addi- tions were soon made by the arrival of English dissenters and protestants, driv- en by religious intolerance from several Roman catholic countries. The site of the present flourishing city of Charleston, was first occupied in 1673, by a number of Dutchmen from the New Netherlands, now New York, and, the advantages of its situation be- coming at length obvious, it was finally taken by the colonists at Oyster Point. The year 1680 was unfortunately sig- nalized by the first Indian war. A con- siderable number of prisoners were ta- ken, who were sold as slaves by the gov- ernor to West India planters ; for which inhuman policy he was removed by the proprietors, in 1683, and Governor Mor- ton was appointed his successor. An Irish and a Scotch colony came out the same year. The latter at first settled on Port Royal island, but were soon driven to Charleston by fear of the Spaniards at St. Augustine. They afterward re- turned, when their settlement was laid waste in 1686. Governors West, Kyrle, Quarry, and Morton, in turn succeeded to the chief-magistracy, but in the short space of three years, gave place to Col- leton, in 1686. The inhuman practice of kidnapping and selling Indians was al- lowed, to the discredit of the colony. A lartre and valuable addition was made to the colony at this time, by the arrival of many French Huguenot fam- ilies, who, having been deprived of the protection of the laws in their native country, by the revocation of the edict of Nantes, sought an asylum in the new world. Some of the principal families of South Carolina at the present day, bear the names of some of those refu- gees ; and thei'e, as elsewhere, they have done honor to their principles, and the land of their adoption, by the characters they have sustained in the country of their choice. One chief source of difficulty between the colonies of South, as well as North Carolina, and their governors, had been the payment of quit-rents to the piopri- etors ; and Colleton was deposed, in 1687, in consequence of his attempt to enforce it. After a period of anarchy, Seth Sothel assumed the chief-magis- tracy, in the character of a friend of the people, who unwisely trusted him after his misconduct in the northern colony. They soon however found it necessary to banish him, and elected in his place Ludwell, who had succeeded him in North Carolina. The introduction of rice into the col- ony, an event of particular interest, took place during the administration of Gov- ernor Smith, the successor of Ludwell. A vessel from Madagascar stopped at Charleston, and the captain presented a bag of that grain to the governor, who distributed it among his friends, and the culture of that valuahle staple was thus commenced, with results most important to agriculture and commerce. Governor Blake, a dissenter (son of Admiral Blake), with great liberality, sustained religious liberty; but after his death, in 1700, Governor Moore, sus- tained by Lord Granville, one of the proprietors, by intrigue induced the as- sembly to pass a bill establishing epis- copacy, and thus introduced religious persecution. The majority of the people being dissenters, many of them prepared to leave the colony; but the house of lords having voted against the law, and Queen Anne liaving annulled it, the threatened evil to the colony was pre- vented. In 1702, England being at war with Spain, Governor Moore undertook a wild expedition against St. Augustine, and sailed from Port R,oyal with a part of the force raised. Colonel Daniel and his enlisted Indians, took and robbed the town: but, while the governor was waiting for cannon to batter the fortress, into which the enemy had retired, two Spanish ships appeared, and he made a hasty retreat. To meet the expense of this expedition, six thousand pounds, the first paper-money, was emitted in Carolina, which depreciated after a few years. A happy termination was at length 11:1.'' ':'i'm I.- ■ : u i ■''SI , 'd' 'vi;!' 'V'l' f „.ii,''i 'f ' "«'n 1 'III . .^,;f '111 ^^1 JlKtft' ."ii i:\ ■■% ! ' 368 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. put to the old difficulties between the people and the proprietors, by the wise, moderate, and conciliatory policy of Archdale. a quaker, who arrived fi-om England in 1695, with authority to bring the matter to a close; he was succeeded in the govei'nment by Blake ; but from his death, in 1700, under Governors Moore and Johnson, the colony was dis- tracted by wars with the Indians and Spaniards. In 1703, the savages com- menced hostilities, instigated by the Spaniards, but were conquered by Gov. Moore, who destroyed about 800. In 1706, the Spaniards made a new attack upon Charleston, but were unsuccessful, and retired with much loss; while the colony failed in an attempt on St. Au- gustine. The Tuscarora and Cosee Indians as- saulted the western settlements in 1712. A great advantage was gained over them by Col. Barnell, and a decisive vic- tory by Col. Monro soon after, both of them being aided by large bodies of friendly Indians. The Tuscaroras were so discouraged, that they migrated to the north, in 1713, and settled on lands granted them by their ancient allies, the celebrated Five Nations, or Iroquois of the present state of New York; with whom they were incorporated, as the sixth member of the confederacy. They are now in a state of much improvement, under the influence of missionaries, by means of schools and churches ; and many of them are respectable farmers. (See Schoolcraft's Census of the N. Y. Indians, 1846.) Their residence is a few miles from the falls of Niagara, After the departure of the Tuscaroras, the other Indians proposed terms of peace with South Carolina, and never again caused any disturbance. The close of the wars with the sava- ges, formed an epoch quite important in the histories of both of the Carolinas. It was not till that time that the nature of the interior lands became known. The fear of Indians being passed, and no obstacle now existing to the estab- lishing of settlements inland, consider- able numbers of colonists came from Pennsylvania, and other northern parts, to occupy them. The nature of the country, and the character of the climate, combined to encourage a different sys- tem of agriculture; and the state of so- ciety has naturally been much influenced by the circumstances which suirounded the people. Manual labor is not re- garded as intolerable or discreditable to the owners of the soil, who often go to the fields with their slaves, and work at their side. They do not demand so large a number of servants, to perform the work on an upland farm as on a low- land plantation, and more simplicity and economy are observed in the style of living. Our limits do not allow us to give even so much as an outline of the French or revolutionary wars in this state. In the latter, the people suffered exceeding- ly from the conflict of parties nearly equally divided, and the repeated prev- alence of the royal authority; as well as from the want of power or firmness among the friends of the country. Charleston was once saved from capture, by the bravery of a few men in Fort Moultrie. Marauding parties were oc- casionally sent out under Tarlton and others, from that city, when it afterward lay in the power of the British ; and these were repeatedly harassed or checked by small bands of patriots. Among the partisan leaders who became prominent and useful in those trying times, was General Marion, who estab- lished a high character for skill and bravery, in a long course of irregular military operations in the interior. A characteristic anecdote is told of him, which does peculiar honor to the Amer- ican character. A young English officer, in wander- ing through the woods, unexpectedly found himself among the soldiers of Marion, and was kindly received by the generous outlaw, who hospitably invited him to partake of his fare. His food was of the plainest kind, and his lodging was upon the bare ground. The for- eigner, fascinated by the character of his host, remonstrated with him, in the most urgent terms, against the desperate and dansrerous course of life in which he had engaged, offering to procure him a pardon and rewards, if he would join DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. 369 the party of the king. The soldier de- clined in the most spirited manner, de- claring that he would not exchange his poveity and humble fare, with his faith- fulness to his country's cause, for all that the kincr had to bestow. He then took leave of his new acquaintance, whom he allowed to retire witliout hin- derance. But it is related that the in- terview so far enlightened the mind of the young officer on the real nature of the American war, and so deeply affect- ed his heart, that he soon obtained leave to return to England, and took no further part in the contest. Two of the principal battles fought in this state, were at Columbia: one in 1780, August 7, by General Gates against Lord Cornwallis, and the other between General Greene and Lord Rawdon, April 23, 1781. A third was at the Cowpens. Such was the unsettled state of South Carolina during a great part of the war, that many cases occurred, in which men of different classes changed from side to side, and many took the oath of alle- giance to the king, after having been for a while on the side of the revolution. In order to present, in a striking manner, some of the events of those disastrous times, with a picture or two of the scenes which they produced, we make the following abridgment of a history of "the Cunninghams of South Caro- lina," from the appendix to the second edition of the "Journal of Kii'wen," by Mr. Ward. The first decided outbreak of the civil war, originated in the unjustifiable ar- rest and imprisonment of Robert Cun- ningham, in November, 1775, at Charles- ton. There he was destined to remain till the ensuing July, when the English having been expelled from the country, the council of safety, deeming it prudent to try the effect of conciliatory measures, released him and the other state prison- ers, without any conditions whatever as to their after conduct. He repaired immediately to the headquarters of an army under the command of General Williamson, which had been collected to repel a threatened invasion of the In- dians, and offered his services as a vol- unteer. To prevent a mutiny in the camp, Williamson was obliged to de- cline his proffered sei-vices. Afler this time, till the year 1780, no public mention is made of any of the Cunninghams. They had all removed to the city of Chai'leston, where they lived quietly attending to their private affairs. In the spring of 1780, Charleston capitulated to Clinton, and nearly the whole of South Carolina returned to their allegiance. In December of this year, Patrick Cunningham was made colonel of the Little river regiment, and he seems to have had superintendence over some of the confiscated estates. Robert was made a brigadier-general in the British service, and sent to command a fort about seventeen miles from " Nine- ty-six," called Williams' fort, with a gar- rison of 150 men. After the surprise and slaughter at Hammond's store, which was about thirty miles distant, many of the fugitives arrived, on the evening of the same day, at Fort Wil- liams, on their way to " Ninety-six," the stronghold of the British in the country. They reported that Washington was at Hammond's store, having a large force under him, with which he intended to march directly on "Ninety-six," taking Fort Williams on his way. These re- ports were confirmed by many arrivals of wounded men and stragglers during the night, and General Cunningham de- termined to retreat upon "Ninety-six," so as to increase the force of the garri- son, while there was yet time to carry off as much arms and ammunition as each man could bear, rather than, by a fruitless opposition to an overwhelming force, not only lose all his military stores, but cause also a useless sacrifice of hu- man life. They accordingly marched the next morning, leaving only a few men to take care of such of the sick and wounded as were unable to go with them. In July, 1781, when Lord Rawdon returned to "Ninety-six," from a short pursuit of General Nathaniel Greene, whom he had forced temporarily to re- treat, he called the chief of the loyalists together, explained to them the neces- 24 370 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. sity of abandoning the district, and ad- vised them all to retreat within lines which the British troops were able to maintain. Every preparation was ac- cordingly made by Colonel Ci'iiger for immediate departure. Half of all the British force was left with him to cover their retreat, which was commenced on the 8th of July. All would then have left, but for a letter addressed to them by General Greene, in which, declaring himself to be their protector, he prom- ised all who should remain his favor and support. Relying on these assurances, some were induced to remain, but soon had cause bitterly to regret their deter- mination. It would be in the highest degree un- just to impute bad faith to General Greene in this matter, but it was impos- sible for him to restrain his subordinates, and to guard against their excesses. But no sooner did he hear of them, than General Sumter was despatched to re- store order and capture the ringleaders ; in the meantime, much mischief had been done, and many cruel and disgrace- ful outrages perpetrated. In Novem- ber, General Cunningham was sent with 700 men into the neighborhood of Or- ansreburs:, where he encountered Gen- eral Sumter's brigade of equal force. The latter was obliged to fall back, and met with some loss, in consequence of one of his officers having allowed him- self to be drawn into an ambuscade ; he continued, however, to act as a check on Cunningham's further advance into the coimtry. After the capitulation of Charleston, a great many whigs renewed their oaths of allegiance to the king, and yet when success appeared to favor the whig cause, they reassumed arms against the British. Cornwallis issued orders that all such, when taken, should be put to death as rebels, who had forfeited their lives by breaking the oaths of feal- ty they had so short a time previously taken. Major William Cunningham, then an officer in the Bi'itish service, was one of those who received these or- ders, and who executed them rigorously on all such offenders as fell into his power. After the retreat of the loyalists from " Ninety-six," in July, 1781, those who had been induced by General Greene's proclamations to remain, were treated with the greatest barbarity. Among the whigs who distinguished themselves by their ci'uelties toward these helpless tories, were a Colonel Hays, and a Mr. Turner. Complaints having been made to Major Cunningham, of injuries com- mitted by these men against the inno- cent wives and children of some of the soldiers of his corps, who had adhered to him in every danger, he did not hes- itate to leave the English camp at Charleston, and to pass into district "Ninety-six," with a party of not ex- ceeding one hundred and fifty men, for the purpos3 of inflicting punishment on those against whose inhumanity neii- ther age nor sex had aff'orded any protec- tion. Both Turner and Hays occupied military " stations." Turner's was the first encountered. It was taken, and the men put to death. On their way to Hays' "station," some of the men, led on by one " Elmore," seizing the oppor- tunity of Cunningham's being at a con- siderable distance behind, proceeded to Captain Caldwell's house, and finding him at home, they killed him, and burned the house. When Cunningham came up, he regretted what his men had done, but it seems doubtful whether, even had he been present, he could have restrained them, bearing as they did, such deter- mined hatred toward their victim. The party then proceeded on their way to Hays' station. Col. Hays had been warned of his danger the night before, by a Captain Brooks, who sent an ex- press advising him to disband his men, and leave the ground instantly, as Cun- ningham was in the country, had taken Turner's station, and killed nineteen men. Hays, distrusting this informa- tion, as he had just returned from scour- ing that part of the country, ;ind had heard nothing of Cunningham, did not think fit to follow the advice, but merely sent off to another station for assistance in case of need. It was on a fine morning toward the end of November, when, at 10 o'clock, the party of loyalists, led on by Captain John Hood, rode up to the station at DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP SOUTH CAROLINA. 37] full gallop. This Hood was a very daring fellow. He went close to the piazza in fi-ont of the house, and called out in a loud voice, that "none should fire from within, or they should all be put to death." Those within, disre- garding this warning, fired through the openings, and killed one man. Major Cunningham arriving shortly afterward, sent a flag of truce with a written mes- sage, demanding "instant surrendei'," and promising, if they did so, "to spare all their lives," but declaring at the same time, that "if they should resist, and so cause the spilling of his men's blood, he would give them no quarter, but put them all to death." Col. Hays, trusting to receive a reinforcement before the station could be carried, refused to sur- render, and answered, "he should hold out to the last, at the risk of the lives of his whole party." After some shooting on both sides, Cunningham succeeded in setting fire to the "station," which was of wood, by means of a ramrod wrapped round with tow, dipped in pitch, and tlu'own in a blazing state on the roof. Half-suffocated, Hays and his party at length surrendered at discretion. Cunningham immediately hanged Hays and another man called Daniel Williams on the pole of a fodder-stock, the former for his cruelty to women and children, and the latter for having murdered in cold blood his favoi"ite follower, Thomas Ellison, whose death he had sworn to avenge. Before they were dead, the pole broke, and Cunningham, drawing his sword, slew them both with his own hand. Being told that Cook, the man who with Ritchie and Moore had whipped his brother to death, was among the prisoners, he ordered him out from the rest, and slew him with his sword. He then gave permission to his men to do as they pleased with the rest. All who had rendered themselves obnoxious by acts of cruelty and plunder, were slain without mercy. The others were saved. Each of Cunningham's men singled out whomsoever among the pris- oners had been guilty of murdering any of his relatives, and killed him forthwith. The execution took place about sunset. At the affair of Turner's station, there was no surrender made, nor quarter asked, and of course such a party as Cunningham's could not burden them- selves with prisoners. At the time they were attacked, the jieople of that station were busy cutting up some beeves of which they had just plundered the tories. To conceal their occupation, they had fastened up blankets before the windows. The call for vengeance u])on these ma- rauders, which had reached Cunninaham and his followers in Charleston, received an additional impulse from learning their present employment. The house was surrounded, and the inmates cut down as they attempted to fly. Only one man escaped the general massacre. Seven were saved at Hays' station, and were next morning set free without terms or conditions. On their way back to Charleston, the party encountered one "Oliver Toles," famous for stealing tory cattle. Cun- ningham had hijm hanged with a thong cut from a tory cow's hide. By this time the country had become fldly alarmed. Parties under Pickens, Leroy Hammond, &c., commenced a vig- orous pursuit, and before they arrived at Charleston, Ringtail's mettle was well tried. Seven fresh parties started in jiursuit of Cunningham, one after the other, but Ringtail carried his master safe off from the whole of them. It was at the expense, however, of his own life, for he died twenty-three days after they reached the city, of fatigue, and the vio- lent exertions he had been forced to make. Major Cunningham, "Bloody Bill," "the heartless, unfeeling mon- ster," "the coldblooded demon," as they called him, wept like a child over his poor favorite and friend, as he was wont to term him. He had him buried with all the honors of war, the bells of Charles- ton were tolled and volleys were fired over the hero of many fights. When the English evacuated Charles- ton, Major Cunningham, instead of em- barking with them, chose to proceed to Florida by land, accompanied by five of his followers. One day having pitched his tent near the region of Greenville, in the fancied security of a deep wood, they laid aside their arms, unsaddled 372 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. their horses, and began to cook and get ready their dinner. In the midst of this interesting occupation, they were sud- denly interrupted by the unwelcome ap- pearance of a Captain Butler and twenty znen of the revolutionary party. Taken thus by surprise, each man sprung as he was, without arms, on his unsaddled horse, and made off, as he best could. The tent, arms, and everything, except themselves and their barebacked horses, fell into the hands of the gallant captain and his band. The odds of twenty-one, well armed, to six unarmed men, was rather too great, even for Bloody Bill; so, thinking in this case that discretion was decidedly the better part of valor, he and Captain Hood, who kept close to him, made off as fast as their horses' legs could caiTy them, and were soon beyond the reach of danger. He arrived safely in Florida, and af- terward went to England with General Cunningham. He was presented at court, and during the rest of his life, enjoyed the half-pay of a major in the British sei'vice. Cotton, the principal product of South Carolina, is of three kinds : the long- staple or black-seed, the short-staple, green-seed or upland, and the nankeen. The first of these is the most valuable kind of cotton, and is raised on the small, low, fertile islands, and on the immedi- ate coast, in South Carolina and Georgia. The fibres are much longer and finer than those of the other kinds, and it is highly prized for the manufacture of some of the finest fabrics, in Europe as well as in this country. The second kind is extensively culti- vated in the interior, and in much the greatest qiiantity: but the culture and supply were greatly restricted for many years, in consequence of the diificulty of separating the seeds, to which the fibres adhei'e very closely. There was no other way known to effect the neces- sary separation, until the invention of die cotton gin, by Mr. Eli Whitney, of Connecticut, which was soon exten- sively introduced, and is now in univer- sal use, to the incalculable benefit of the culture, commerce, and manufacture, of i cotton, by greatly reducing the cost and the time devoted to its preparation for market. The inventor of this invaluable machine was, however, long unrewarded for his skill and ingenuity ; for, while on a tour of visitation in the south, after it had become extensively introduced, he was informed that it would be unsafe for him to prosecute a claim for viola- tions of his patent. He afterward, how- ever, received sums of money from some of the states most benefited, as a small return for the favor he had conferred upon them. The nankeen cotton is of a clear and lasting buff color, and has been intro- duced with success into the middle and northern parts of the state, where it is much employed for home use. It is that kind of which the nankeen cloths of China are made. Rice, as we have before remarked, is one of the principal productions of South Carolina. Being a water plant, its cul- ture is confined to the lowlands, to which water can be brought in. It is a crop which requires peculiar care and atten- tion, as may be presumed fi'om the vari- ous processes necessary in its cultiva- tion. On the tide-lands, or those which lie on the coast and are open to the ocean, so that the supply of water is obtained from it, rice is sown about the 20th of March, while on those inland, which are irrigated from fresh-water streams, the sowing-time is about three weeks later. The soil is turned up with the hoe or plough, and then formed into drills or trenches. From one to two bushels are sown upon an acre, and then the water is let in, and left standing fi'om two to four days, to kill the worms, and make the grain germinate. The water is then drawn off, and the hoeing commences, which is soon repeated, the grass being now picked from among the young grain by hand. The water is again let in af- ter the third hoeing, for ten days and often more, sometimes for twenty. The water is then suffered to run off by de- grees, and the rice branches out, each branch at length bearing an ear of from 100 to 300 grains. Three months after sowing it begins to blossom, and then the floodgates are again opened and the :::^^^tiii: Ji 374 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. water flows in, where it remains till har- vest, which takes place in August on the coast, and in September inland. But the great obstacle in the way of rice- culture, is the unhealthiness of the neigh- borhood, caused by the miasma raised by the heat of the sun, which is most deadly to white men, and very injurious also to the negroes. The rice-planters generally leave their homes during the summer, and take their families to the cities, or to the ujjlands, to avoid this evil. From 600 to 1,500 pounds of rice are obtained from an acre inland, and on the coast from 1,200 to 1,500, and even sometimes 2,-100. The separation of families from each other, in a country where the plantation system is universal, and the scarcity of villages and even smaller settlements, necessarily throw many obstacles in the way of social im})rovement. Children can hardly be collected in schools, or the people in churches, while social in- tercourse must be limited, even though there may be much hospitality, leis- ure, and love of society, such as are generally found in this and olher south- ern states. Railroads. — South Carolina distin- guished herself by her early enterprise. in constructing one of the first great railroads in the Union, on a plan whose success has proved its sagacity. It was constructed across an extensive region, oft'erinu: indeed few obstacles of surface, but encouraged by few of the advanta- ges found in a thickly-populated coun- try. The grand object lay in opening a communication with the Savannah river overland, by which the delay and expo- sure of the sea voyage might be avoid- ed; and a large part of the great cotton crops, annually gathered on its banks, is now carried in safety and at a rapid rate to the city of Charleston, the great commercial port of the • south, to be shipped for New York and Eui'ope. Keowee lake (see page 373). — This secluded little lake lies amontj the wild scenes of a region little changed by cul- tivation or the neighborhood of man. A bold and wooded hill rises on the right with a sudden swell, while a path, wind- ing along the left bank, is shaded with a variety of trees, presenting a diversity of form and foliage. A white sail, seen at a distance, intimates that the placid waters are sometimes disturbed by a passing boat, while^the group of visiters in the foreground, reminds us, that the beautiful scene has attracted the atten- tion ol' the admirers of nature. The falls of the charashilac- TAY. — This view is inserted here, to give an idea of the bold and picturesque scenery which abounds in some parts of the high, western regions of the state. The stream, whose singular, aboriginal name has been preserved, after flowing some distance, meets an abrupt, mural precipice in its course, and falls, in a beautiful sheet, interrupted by two suc- cessive projecting shelves of the rock, to the bottom of the gulf which opens beneath. The eflect is very striking, es- pecially when viewed from below, the bare ledges in front, whitened by the glistening foam of the foiling stream, being crowned with foliage, and half shaded by trees, which line the banks, and spring from the crevices. Chaulf^ston is the principal Atlantic seaport of the southern states, and a large and flourishing city. It stands upon a peninsula, at the mouths of Cooper and Ashley rivers, which empty into a spacious bay, with depth of water sufficient to form an excellent harbor. By the aid of several islands, advanta- geously situated, it is well protected from the waves of the ocean, and fortified against fiireign attack. The population, including the Neck, in 1S40, was 41,137. I Although the site of the city is level I and low, like the neighboring land, its appearance is favorable from the water. I The buildings, however, are chiefly of wood, and the streets are narrow, ex- cept the two principal ones, which cross each other, and traverse the city in its length and breadth. The principal pub- lic buildings are the city-hall, court- house, college, orphanhouse, medical college, guardhouse, hospital, poorhouse, customhouse, jail, St. Andrew's hall, and state building, with several church- es. The city suffered from a great con- flagi'ation in 1835, which laid waste a O OS 376 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP SOUTH CAROLINA. coiisidorahlo extent of crvound. The private liousos are generally of a plain style, bnt many of them are neat and snbstantial; and the nppearance of the city is much improved l)y many gardens, in which some of the finest fruits arc cultivated, with a success which well re- wards the taste and care of the inhabi- tants. Oranges, figs, pomegranates, grapes, Sec, abound,! with a great vari- ety of fiowers and ornamental shrnlts. Of these a charming display is annually made, in the exhibitions of the horticul- tural society. The iidiabitants, who amount to about 40,000, includi^ many persons from the eastern states, and a considerable num- ber of French. In thesumincn- moiitlis the city is the residence of many of the planters from the neighboring estat(is and the interior, who are driven from home by the unlu^althiness of the country. Our engraving of iMeoting street ])re- sents two churches in the distance, while Cliarleston Hotel (n front view of which is given above) is seen on ttie left. This culifico has a fine colonnade of fourteen tall C\)rinthian pillars, rising from the second story, and supporting the roof above the fourth, with a broad piazza within, while the tall pediments below, allbrd between them entrances to the basement story from llie street. The Charleston Co/k'sce, the oldest in- stitution of the kind in the state, was f()unded in 1705, and has four professors, with a library of ."i.OOO volumes, and about 50 or 60 students. The Mediciil Collvi^c of tlie state was founded in 1833, and has eight profes- sors and about 150 students, and enjoys a higli repntati(m. The Orphan Af^i/Jum is an interesting and highly useful institution, containing about 200 friendless children. Fr<'e Schools have been supported in all parts of the state, at ctmsiderable expense, by the legislature. The an- nual appropriations of money, as early as 1828, were nearly 40,000, the num- ber of schools 8 U), and of pnjiils 9,000. The GuardhmisCy which has been men- tioned among the pid)lic buildings, is large, and the head((narters of the city guard, a part of which consists of mount- ed men, who form the regular night pa- trol. The Citadel, which was formerly used as the guardhouse, is now occupied as the sttite military school. I'he Litcrari/ and Philosophical Soci- ety is an association creditMl)le to the state, and possi-sses a v;ihial)lo collection ■of specimens in the ditierent departments of science. The Cifii Library contains about 20,000 volumes. The Apprentices' Lihrar// contains about 10,000 volumes, and supplies the members with a course of lectures. 378 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF SOUTH CAROLINA. Among the objects in the vicinity of Charleston worthy of particular atten- tion, is Sullivan's Island, which was the scene of important military operations in the revolutionary war. Fort Moul- trie, which commands the entrance of the harbor, was gallantly defended by a very feeble force, against a British squadron sent to take the city. The harbor now presents a scene of great activity. Besides the regular for- eign and coasting vessels, which are nu- merous, steamboats and packet vessels arrive or depart every day, chiefly for the transport of passengers. There is a daily line of steamboats to Wilming- ton, North Carolina, and other lines to Savannah and St. Augustine. Regular lines of fine ships sail at stated times for New York, &c., &c. Railroad cars start every day on the great track, for several important cities, to which the branches lead, Columbia, Augusta, and Savannah, and onward to more distant places beyond the last two: Mobile, Montgomery, Ala., and Memphis, Tenn. Stage-coaches offer the means of con- j veyance to other towns, near and distant. ! Beaufort, 15 miles from Charleston, is situated on Port Royal river, and has one of the largest and best harbors in South Carolina. With a population of about 1,600, it contains an academy, a library, and three churches; and has communication with Charleston and Sa- vannah by steamboats. ColumViia, 130 > miles from Charleston, is the capital of ; South Carolina, and stands on a large ; plain, about 200 feet above the level of; the Congaree river, which flows at a lit- j tie distance south of it, crossed by a 1 bridoe. The town makes a handsome appearance, being laid out with regular- ' ity, in long and broad streets, planted with shade trees. Steamboats and rail- road cars keep up a daily communication with Charleston. i The Stntekouse is a handsome edifice of two stories, and 170 feet in length; and the town contains two banks, a the- ati'e, an academy, and several other pub- ] lie buildings, including six churches of different religious denominations. The population amounts to 4,400. The College of South Carolina, at , Columbia, was founded in 1801, by an act of the legislatui'e, and has been sup- ported in a great degree by the treasury, which, previously to the year 1833, had expended about $200,000 in erecting edifices, procuring a library and appa- ratus and other contingencies, besides an annual sum of $15,000. There are six tutors, about 150 students, and a library of 15,000 volumes. The com- mencement is held on the first Mon- day in December. The Southern Theological Seminary, which also is situated in this place, has a library of 4,000 volumes, two profes- sors, and as yet, only a small number of students. It was founded in 1831. Cheraxo stands on the great Pedee river, 93 miles from Columbia, and, like it, at the dividing line between the high and the low regions, at the head of nav- igation. The town is on a considerable elevation, about 100 feet above the water, but is small, containing only about 1,000 inhabitants. The public buildings are the bank, the town hall, five churches, and two academies. Steamboats come from Georgetown, and stage-coaches daily to Columbia and Raleigh. Camden, 33 miles fi-om Columbia, stands on a plain on the lefl bank of the Wateree, and contains several fine pub- lic buildings ; the city-hall, courthouse, masonic hall, bank, library, academy, and four churches. The Monument, in De Kalb street, was founded in 1825, when the corner- stone was laid by General Lafayette, in honor of Baron De Kalb. The Indian mound, a few miles west of the town, is said to be one of the remains of the Catawbas, formerly a powerful tribe. Sparta7ishurg is a pleasant town, in a hilly part of the state, much resorted to by travellers, on account of the water- ing places in the vicinity; the Limestone, Pacolet, Cedar, and Glenn Sulphur springs. Greenville stands near the bank of Reedy river, which has several falls. The town is laid out with taste, and en- joys a healthful situation. It contains a courthouse, two academies, a library, and several churches. It is 107 miles fifom Columbia. 'i *■■ The com. «als!l, >m 1 s i\- '•li ■■ ^fr, -UJJ.OOO "e ;J - Ill UtfL I i&i fm Colimbia, sequence of an act of the legislature, i passed at that time. In 1820, Savannah suffered to the amoimt of four millions, from a devastating tire, which swept irresistibly over a large part of the city. Care has been taken to embellish the city, by providing abundance o( shady trees for the numerous public squares. Anions: these the celebrated Pride-of- India is conspicuous, wlu^se graceful form and delicate tbliage, with its semi- tropical aspect, render it peculiarly ap- propriate to such a use. Among the houses, the city now presents a consid- 388 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. erable number of handsome, well-built dwellings, while the following are the principal public edifices : the arsenal, exchange, courthouse, barracks belong- ing to the United States, theatre, hos- pital, market, banks, public library, three academies, thirteen churches, &c. The Pulaski Monument was erected in the year 1825, in memory of Generals Pulaski and Greene, of the revolutionary army. It is a neat and simple obelisk of white marble, fifty-three feet liigh. The base of the pedestal is ten,feet four inches by six feet eight inches, and its height thirteen feet, the needle wliich surmduiits the pedestal being thirty- seven feet in height. It is built upon a platform of granite, three feet above the ground, and the whole is enclosed by a cast-iron railing. It has a very advantageous position, in the middle of one of the public squares. iMiLLEDGEviLLE. — This town is the capital of the state. It stands on the ' Sduthern side of the Oconee, one hun- dred and fifty-eight miles from Savan- nah, on an irregular surface, at the head of steam navigation. The streets cross each other at right angles ; those run- ning in one direction lying parallel to the river. At the distance of thiee quarters of a mile from its banks is a fine public square, on the summit of a hill, which is adoi-ned with the statehouse. This is a ! building in the Gothic style ; and the i representatives' hall, which is sixty feet ' in length, and fifty-four in breadth, ! is ornamented with full-length portraits of Generals Oglethorpe and Lafay- ette, while those of Washington and Jefferson are in the chamber of the i senate. In different parts of the city are the ai'senal, magazine, market, academy, three banks, three churches, and the governor's residence. Columbus, two hundred and eighty- four miles from Savannah, stands on the left bank of the Chatahoochee, at an elevation of sixty feet above the water. The falls, which extend for three miles above the town terminate steamboat navifi-atioii. They are a succession of rapids, descending, in all, one hun- dred and eleven feet. The two prin- cipal streets are one hundred and sixty feet wide, and run north and south, crossed by twelve others, ninety-nine feet wide. The academy, market, school- houses, five banks, and five churches, are among the public buildings, and the place contains a number of cotton-fac- tories, mills, &c. The population is aboul four thousand. A flourishing trade in cotton employs several steam- boats, and it is a place of much busi- ness, although so late as 1827 it was a council-town of the Coweta Indians, and the commissioners appointed to appor- tion the lots of the city began their work so late as the 10th of'jnly, 1SS8. The Cowetas, who inhabited this region, and made this spot the chief settlement, were one of the seven tribes of the Creek nation. See ]iage IIG. The CoitrtJiouse is a fi.ne building, with a basement, two stories, and a steeple one hundred and ten feet high, and two Grecian porticoes on the front. The PI an fern' and Mechanics'' Bank has a portico, in the style of the cele- brated Temple of the Winds, in Athens. The private buildings of Columbus display a good degree of taste, as do the decorated yards and flower-gardens which are here and there displayed. The Cotton IVa rehouse, on the bank of the river, is one of the largest in Georgia, an extensive fireproof building, covering an acre and three quarters. In the year 1838, 42,000 bales of cotton were shipped here, and the amount has inci'eased considerably Athens, on the right bank of the Oconee, contains about one thousand inhabita,nts, and has a pleasant and healthy situation, seventy five miles from Milledgeville. It is the seat of The Georgia University, founded in 1785, which has six professors and about eighty students, with a large philosoph- ical apparatus, and libraries containing about twenty thousand volumes. The raih'OFid affords the means of a daily communication with Augusta. Madison Spring. — This fashionable resort is named after the county in which it is situated, and is found in the midst of a wild region, near Oconee river, seven miles distant from Danielsville, 390 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA the county town. It is convenient to go in a stai^e-coach from Athens. The na- ture of the water has been known about twenty years, but the phice li;i,s but re- cently attracted much notice, since ac- commodations have l)eon jMovichid for visiters. A large hotel has been erected, surrounded by small tenements, for the summer residence of families ; and an avenue, several hundred yards in lima^th, leads throujrh the forest to the spring, which is provided with conveniences, as re|)resented in our engraving. The wa- ter, which flows from a marble curb, is chalybeate, in a greater degree than the springs of Cheltenham and Brighton, in England, A sulphur spring has bt^en discovered at three miles' distance. Macon is already a considerable and flourishing place, with four thousand inhabitants, although so lately as the year 1822 there was but a single house on the spot. The situation is favorable for business, being at the head of steam navigation on the Ocmulgee river, which flows thntugh the middle of it, and is crossed l)y a fine bridge, three hundred and eighty feet long. A great quantity of cotton is annually received at this place, and sent down the river, while there is a daily communication with Sa- vannah by the railroad. Entrance to the Madison Springs. An institution for female education was opened here in 1839, under the n;ime of the (Georgia Female College, which is in a flourishing condition, hav- ing about one hundred pupils, under the chai-ge of a president, three professors, and several other instructors. Augusta. — This town is situated on the Savannah river, one humlred nnd thirty-five^ miles from its nioulh, and one hundred nnd twiMity nctrth of 8av;iiinah. It is a place of inncli tinde, receiving large (piantities of produce from the neighboiing country, especially cotton, and being connected with Cliarlestcni by the great railroad, which i^xtrnds beyond it, still fuitluM- into tlu» interior. During a c(u-t;iiii pjirt (»f the yeiir, the river is navigable by steamboats. The stre(!ts are regular, and planted with shade-trees, and the houses ;ire generally of bi-ick. Among the ])td)lic buildings are the courthouse, city-hjill, medical college, hospital, theatre, ar- senal, female asylum, several academies and churches. Thr MnllraJ College of Georgia.— The first proposal to establish a medical school in this state was made by Dr. Antony, in 1827; but active measures for it were not takeji until the year 1830, when the legislature passed a bill, incor- 392 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OP GEORGIA. poratingthis institution, and authorizing them to confer the degree of Doctor in Medicine on persons who have comphed with the requisitions of the most respec- table institutions in the United States. In 1835, the faculty addressed a circular to all the medical schools, proposing a convention in Washington city, which has not been held, but the honor of the project is due to this state. In 1833, a donation of -$10,000 was made by the legislature, and another of $5,000, by the city council of Augusta, on condition that the college should supply the hos- pital, for ten years, with attendance and medicines. These sums enabled the trustees to erect the fine edifice which they at present occupy. It is a large structure, in the Doric style, with ac- commodations and arrangements well adapted to the nature of the institution, and which has been pronounced by good judges, equal, in this respect, to any other in the Union. It enjoys a fine and pleasant situation, admirably adapted to its use, in the vicinity of the town, on a lot appropriated to it by the trustees of Richmond academy. In 1834, ten thousand dollars were raised by the faculty, who sent one of the professors to Europe, to purchase an anatomical museum, chymical appar- atus, and surgical cabitiet. In 1835, the legislature conferred on the institution a second grant, amounting to about twenty-five thousand dollars, which af- forded them a fund for contingent ex- penses. The first class was instituted 1833-'4, and amounted to thirty; and the members have been increasing al- most every year, although the institution suffered a severe I'everse, in consequence of the fatal epidemic of 1839, when, among many other losses, the valuable life of Dr. Antony fell a sacrifice to his humane exertions for the benefit of the sick. The lectures begin on the second Monday in November, and close early in March ; and the expense of the whole course, including practical anatomy and matriculation, is only twenty-five dol- lars. In the first ten yeai's of its exist- ence, the medical college of Georgia had three hundred and ninety-seven students. of whom one hundred and nineteen re- ceived detcrees. Georgia Female College. — The va- rious religious denominations in this state, by combined contributi(ms, having collected more than six hundred thou- sand dollars, for the support of educa- tion, which has been appropriated to different institutions, in all parts of the state; and this college, so ci-editable to the intelligence of Georgia, and so well calculated to confer upon it the highest benefits, owes its existence to the en- lightened spirit and indefatigable laboT's of a few individuals in the city of Macon. Twenty thousand dollars were raised, to found a female college, in conformity with a resolution passed at a public meeting, and soon after, placed at the direction of the annual conference of the methodist episcopal church. In 183G, the legislature incorporated the trustees appointed by that body, and granted twenty-five thousand dollars to the in- stitution. The college edifice enjoys a command- ing situation, on a fine eminence between Macon and Vineville, overlooking the former (which lies upon the plain be- neath), and the surrounding hills, beau- tified by many neat and tasteful edifices. On the west is the village of Vineville ; and on the north Fort Hawkins shows its remains, consisting of old block- houses and trenches, while the forests spread far away on the east, and bound the distant horizon. The college build- ing is one hundred and sixty feet long, and sixty in breadth, four stories higli in the middle, with a cupola. Four large columns, in the centre of the front, support a roof over the entrance; and the building contains fifty-six rooms. Most of those in the basement ai'e occu- pied as recitation-rooms. The stew- ard's apartments are also below, where some of the officers have accommoda- tions. The chapel is forty feet by sixty, on the second story, where are also the library, music-room, and president's apartments. The young ladies attend- ing this institution provide their own furniture; and their lodging-rooms, which occupy the third and fourth sto- ries, accommodate four each. ^muMli 394 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. The yard extends over four acres ; and the rest of the section of land de- voted to the institution is judiciously left covered with groves of fine oak- trees, so that ample opportunities are afforded for agreeable and healthful ex- ercise. Six acres of ground opposite have been reserved for a botanical gai'- den — the gift of the city council. The college was opened in 1839, and has a president, three professors, with the principal of the primary depart ment, professors of music and drawing, a matron, and a superintendent of do- mestic economy. The methods of in- struction ax'e thorough and practical. The reofular course includes the French language; but Latin, Greek, and Span- ish, are taught, only in extra classes. There is but one term in the year : from the first Monday in October, for ten months. Pupils are not received under twelve years of age. Oglethorpe University. — This in- stitution is situated at Medway, in Bald- win county, on account of its central position, in a pleasant and healtliful re- gion, being a place easily accessible from all directions. The spot is elevated, on a ridge lying east and west, two miles and a half south of Milledgeville, and j ending at the bluff on Oconee river, on which are the ruins of old Fort Wilkin- 1 son. The foundation of the edifice is on a level with the top of the cupola of, the statehouse; and the view is exten- 1 sive on every side, embracing an undu- i lating surface of twenty miles round, i including Milledgeville. i The erection of the principal building | was begun in 1836, and completed in 1838. It is of brick, two stories high, with abasement, in the Doric style; and \ being painted white, and of great extent, '. makes a striking appearance. The chapel occupies the centre, forty-eight feet by sixty, with a colonnade and vestibule. The wings are each thirty feet in front, and three stories high, with pi'ofessors' and recitation rooms, while other rooms are appropriated to the librai'y, museum, apparatus, &c. Two ranges of small | buildings stand at some distance on each j side, each containing two students' j rooms ; while the house of the presi- dent stands on the south side of the campus. The institution commenced operation in January, 1838, with six professors; and the first class was graduated in 1839. It is under the direction of the presby- terian synod of South Cai'olina and Georgia, but its advantages are free to all. There are two sessions in the year : one from the first Monday in January to the second Wednesday in May ; after which is a vacation of four weeks. Commencement is held on the Monday succeeding the second Monday in No- vember. Oglethorpe university owes its origin to two manual labor schools, under the Education society of Georgia. That association was dissolved, and in 1835, the trustees of the Medway seminary, which was one of those institutions, offered it to the Hopewell presbytery, who received it, and soon constituted it a college, under their government and control, with a charter from the legisla- ture. That charter forbids any shop to be opened, within a mile and a half of the institution, on penalty of five hun- dred dollars, or more; while deeds of university lots provide for the forfeiture to it of lots on which such shops may stand. This feature has since been in- troduced into other charters, and has doubtless pi'evented many of the evils to which other litei'ary institutions are often liable. The Falls of the Tovvaliga, eight miles from Indian springs. This pic- turesque scene is presented by the little river whose name it bears, at the spot where it pours down a rocky ledge, which there disturbs its generally gentle course, and gives it an aspect of wild- ness, elsewhere foreign to its shores. The Towaliga has an Indian name, of uncertain import, pronounced with the accent on the last syllable. The stream has its origin in Henry county, and pur- sues a course of seventy miles, to the Ocmulgce, of which it is a tributary. Just before it reaches the falls (wliicli are represented in the engraving on page 123), the bed has a rapid descent for some distance, where the surface of the water is broken in rapids, overlooked J96 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. from the summit of a hill, over which passes the road leading to the spot. A mill occupies one of the banks; and a lofty bridge, erected across, was partly destroyed, a few years since, by a fl ()()(i The falls, seen from below, make an impressive appearance. The breadth of the bed is there about thi-ee hundred feet, and a mass of rock, at the brow of the first precipice, divides it into two sheets, which descend pei'pendiciilarly about fifty feet, in beautiful foam, made in the course of its tumultuous passage down the rapids. Here it is received by a deep gulf, which suddenly checks its fury ; but, before it has time to re- cover its tranquillity, it I'eaches the brow of the scc(jnd rapids, down which it hur- ries, with roar and turbulence, a distance of two hundred feet, and then pours over the second fall, in a current broken into several cascades, when it soon sub- sides, below, to comparative quietness. The height, roughness, and thick shade of the banks, greatly increa,se the effect of the scene. The reader may form some correct conception of the interest- ing spot, by a glance at the accomjia- nyjng engraving, which is copied from a print in that elegant work, " The See- ! nery of Georgia," to which we have i been indebted for many interesting facts j on these pages. Tjie drawing was made from the northern bank of the stream, a spot rather difficult of access, and not easily attained by many spectators, who generally find it more convenient to con- tent themselves with a view from the opposite side. There are, however, many favorable points of view, both near and more distant, especially from some of the rude rocks which border and overhang the water, in different parts of its romantic and terrific coui'se. A short distance below the falls, a little island occupies the middle of the river, dividing it into two currents, which are nai*row, but rapid. This vicinity was formerly a favorite I'esort of the deer, which visited it in considerable numbers, to feed on a peculiar kind of long and delicate plant, resembling moss, which grows to the length of two feet, in the sluices of the falls. They have, however, been destroyed or driven away by the hunters. TocKOA Falls. — The most remark- able waterfall in this state is that of the Tockoa creek, which flows from the southern extremity of the AUeganies, at Cunawhee mountain. It descends one hundred and eighty-seven feet, from a ])recipice, in a narrow stream, twenty feet in bi'eadth, which, in the rainy sea- son, forms an unbroken sheet of foam to the bottom. At the ordinary height of water, the supply is so small, that it is said to be dissipated in vapor before it reaches the level below. Remahkarle Incidents in the His- tory OP Cteoroia. — As we have not room to give a connected history of this state, it may be interesting to our read- ers if we recount a few incidents rela- ting to some of its most important periods. Yamacraw, the Indian name of the bluff on which Savannah now stands, was the spot on which the treaty was held with the Creek Indians by General Oglethorpe, at which the first tract of land was ceded to him. The place was then occupied by a small tribe of that nation, called the Yamacraws. In 173P, General Oglethorpe brought out from England a band of one hun- dred and thirteen colonists, who landed at Charleston. They were there kindly assisted, and furnished with boats, &:c., by which they were enabled to jivocoed to the place of •destination, and soon reached the Savannah river. The fol- lowing year they were joined by five or six hundred more, who were provided with tracts of wild land, but soon ])Tove(l ill-qualified for the task they had under- taken, and ere long difficulties arose, as many of them had been collected from among the poor and idle popula- tion of European cities. The trustees of the colony therefore took measures to secure emigrants of a better class; and, in 1735, about four hundred arrived in Georgia, from Scotland, Switzerland, and Germany. Mary Musgrove was the name of an Indian woman, or half-breed, who ren- dered material service to General Ogle- thorpe, in promoting his plans for the Tockoa Falls. 398 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA, benefit of the colony. She was able to speak both languages, and appears to have been a woman of much address, acting as interpreter at several import- ant treaties which terminated favorably. In gratitude, he bestowed upon her a hundred pounds a year, in addition to the pi-esents with which he had secured her interest. Fifty Creek chiefs pre- sented themselves at the treaty of Savan- nah, at which the great land-gi'ant was obtained, and among these was Tomo- chichi, who, in the name of the others, thus addressed Oglethorpe, in reply to the general's speech, in which he had dwelt on the power and wisdom of the British king : — " Here is a little present. I give you a buffalo-skin, adorned on the inside with the head and feathers of an eagle, which I desire you to accept, because the eagle is an emblem of speed, and the buffalo of strength. The English are swift as the bird, and strong as the beast; since, like the former, they flew over the vast seas to the uttermost parts of the earth, and like the latter, they are so strong that nothing can withstand them. The feathers of the eagle are soft, signifying love; the buffalo's skin is warm, and signifies protection: there- fore I hope the English will love and protect their little families." But, although this treaty terminated in so amicable a manner, difficulties, ere long, began to arise, being fomented by one of those restless, unprincipled, and dangerous men, so often the bane of young colonies. Thomas Bosomworth, the chaplain in Oglethorpe's regiment, for his own selfish and ambitious views, wrought upon a petty prince, named Malatchie, king of Frederica (near Sa- vannah), till he persuaded him to as- sume the ridiculous title of Emperor of the Creek Nation. Bosomworth then married Mary Musgrove, and set up for her a claim to the empire, on pretence of her being the elder sister of Mal- atchie. The Indians were incited to support her, and escorted her to Savan- nah, to establish her claim. The president of the colony, and his council, were alarmed at their approach, and at first knew not what course to pursue. The militia, however, were soon under arras, and Captain Noble Jones, by his resolute conduct, induced the Indians to lay by their weapons, when Bosomworth, with his queen, escorted by the chiefs and their warriors, solemnly paraded the streets, and struck the fee- ble colonists with fear. They, however, made such fair promises, that their arms were returned, Bosomworth was soon afler seized and confined, which so irri- tated his wife that she threatened ven- geance, and excited the savages to hos- tile demonstrations. By great prudence and coolness, the governor succeeded in tranquillizing them, two or three suc- cessive times, though Mary and Mal- atchie as often again enkindled their passions, and misled their judgment. The storm was at length dispelled by the decision of Captain Noble, who en- tered the coundl-room with a guard, and made the Indians surrender, Bo- somworth was subsequently induced to lay aside his ridiculous claims, and re- ceived a pardon, while the Indians de- parted in peace. It was not long, how- ever, before Bosomworth presented his case in England, which remained pend- ing in the courts for twelve years. The result was, that the island of St. Cath- arine was granted to him and his wife, of which they took possession. She, however, died soon after. In the year 1778, Savannah was occu- pied by General Howe, with six hundred regular troops and a few militia, when it was attacked by a British army of six thousand men, under Lieutenant-Colonel Campbell, who had arrived fi'om New York by water. The defenders were in too small force effectually to resist such numbers, but did not yield without a severe struggle. An obstinate battle was fought, in which our countrymen lost about six hundred men killed, and thirty-eight officers and four hundred and fifteen soldiers prisoners, with forty- eight guns, twenty-three mortars, and all the vessels lying in the river. The enemy remained in possession of the city until 1779, when Count d'Es- taing, commander of the French fleet, then in the West Indies, being invited by General Lincoln to make a combined attack upon Savannah, proceeded to the river with tw^enty ships-of-the-line, two of fifty guns, and eleven frigates. Lin- coln, with the militia of Georgia and South Carolina, proceeded toward Sa- vannah; but, before his arrival, Count d'Estaing, after demanding a surrender, had granted a suspension of hostilities for twenty-four hours, before the expi- ration of which, a reinforcement of eight hundred troops arrived at Savannah, from Beaufort, who encouraged the gar- rison to reject the demand of a surren- der. The siege of the town was there- fore commenced on the 4th of October, with thirty-seven cannon and nine mor- tars, on land, and fifteen cannon from the water. An assault was, however, determined on; and on the 9th, at day- break, a strong force attacked the Spring Hill battery, which was taken, and held for a short time, but soon recovered, and the invaders retreated, abandoning the enterprise. A I'egular siege, it is be- lieved, would have soon reduced the place; but the French officers objected to hazarding their fleet so long on the coast. Count Pulaski, a Polander, distin- guished by his birth, and exploits in Europe, who had recently been made a brigadier-general in our army, received a mortal wound in that engagement. In memory of him. Congress ordered the erection of a monument, which was completed a few years since. We will close our brief account of that interesting period, by mentioning a remarkable exploit performed by six Americans, just before the attack on Savannah. It is equally remarkable for the sagacity of the plan and the cool- ness and bravery of the execution. On the Ogeeche river was a British force of about one hundred and forty men, of whom one hundred were under Captain French, of the royal army, and fo'ty were sailors, composing the crews of five small vessels lying in that stream, four of them armed, and the largest with fourteen guns. The six men above re- ferred to, formed an ingenious plan for capturing this force. They made prep- arations for kindling numerous fires, at short distances from each other, and lighted them all at once, in the evening, presuming the Englishmen would mis- take them for the camp-fires of a large body of troops. In order to counte- nance such a deception, they resorted to other measures which their ingenuity dictated; and then, in due form, and in a peremptory manner, summoned the enemy to surrender. Colonel John White, of the Georgia line, and Captain Elholm, were the lead- ers in these movements, which required so much skill and caution ; and with such success did they perform their parts, that the British were completely blinded, and their commander, "to pre- vent the effusion of blood," promised to suiTender. It was now extremely im- portant for the captors to avoid the ex- posure of their weakness ; and Colonel White represented to Captain French, that he was afraid to bring forward his troops, because they were exasperated against the invaders of their country, and offered to give him three faithful men, as guides, who would conduct them to safe and comfortable quarters. The offer was thankfully accepted ; and the Englishmen marched off in haste, leaving the colonel, with his whole "re- serve" (his servant and one other man), to bring up the rear. To perform this last-remaining duty required a little time, for he immediately hurried away to call out the militia; but he soon fol- lowed on, and made his appearance with a respectable force, which had been collected rather later than the enemy supposed. General Lee declares, that this exploit was of so extraordinary a nature, that he could never have persuaded himself to record it, if it had not received general credit, without ever having been contra- dicted.* * For the pictures which accompany this article, we are indebted to the pencil of T. Addison Rich- ards, Esq., the first, if not the only artist, who has soaght themes of study amid the beautifol scenery of the south. It is to his works, which have been en- graved on steel, wood, and stone, and widely circu- lated, that we owe our acquaintance with the beau- tiful mountains, valleys, and cascades of the southern states. No work of the kind, in this country, has equalled in beauty his interesting publication, " Geor» gia Illustrated." 400 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. Among the numerous men who per- formed important parts in the early pe- riods of our colonial history, there are few more remarkable for activity, enter- prise, and purity of principle, than 0,1'lethorpe. Ho performed a variety of duties, and generally with equal skill and success. As circumstiinces ]-equir- ed, he could confer with the friends of America in England, on plans for plant- ing colonies, then, collecting bands of emigrants, and placing himself at their head, conduct them across the Atlantic, and transport them to the places assign- ed for their habitation. He would con- duct negotiations with the savages, pro- vide for the sustenance and defence of the community, encourage his compan- ions under adversity, protect them from invaders, and even march, with a band of white men and Indians, through the wilderness, to seize the post of a dan- gerous enemy, or to intimidate them, when an attack was to be apprehended. Oglethorpe combined in his character much strength of purpose, and boldness and perseverance, with philanthropy and active zeal. Had he been of a less manly disposition, he might have chosen a less exposed and less dangerous thea- tre to act upon ; but the peculiar posi- tion of the country now forming the southern part of Georgia, offered attrac- tions for such a spirit as he possessed. It was wholly unoccupied by civilized men ; for, although it was included in Heath's old patent, that instrument had been declared void, on account of the failure to fulfil the terms on which it had been granted, viz., that settlements should be made on the land. But the time had now ai'rived, when it was high- ly important that some of the principal military points should be occupied : for the Spaniards in Florida, and the French in Louisiana, had the power to traverse it at will, and were at liberty to enter it with whatever force they could com- mand, and might soon annex it to their own territories. The exposed situation of that district excited much solicitude in England ; and to interpose a protecting power be- tween it and the rival Spanish neigh- bors, whose antipathies were religious as well as national, was the principal motive for the first settlements made in the territory of Georgia. A charter was therefore granted to Sir James Ogle- thorpe, and several other noblemen and gentlemen, in 1732, of the country ly- ing between the Savannah and Altama- ha rivers; and they proposed to form a colony of criminals taken from the pris- ons, on the plan afterward practised on a larger scale in New Holland. The project was approved by the benevolent, and a considerable sum of money was collected in diflerent parts of England, while the house of commons granted, at several times, appropriations to the amount of thirty-six thousand pounds, to the enterprise. We have already given a brief outline of some of the principal events, and shall now only at- tempt to supply some of the important particulars, not included in our cui-sory glance. On his first visit to Savannah, Ogle- thorpe in a short time erected a fort, formed his colonists into a militaiy com- pany, consummated his treaty with the Creek Indians, and, appointing two of his officers, named Scott and St. Julian, to exercise the government of the colo- ny during his absence, returned to Eng- land. He gave them charge to make a treaty with the Choctaws, which they successfully accomplished, and thus se- cured the friendship and protection of another powerful native nation, of great importance in the infancy of the colony. The principal chief of the Creeks ac- companied the governor to England, with his wife and several of his inferior sachems. They were received with mucli honor in London, being introdu- ced to the king and nobility, and enrich- ed with numerous j)resents, estimated to be worth four hundred pounds. Af- ter a stay ox four months they returned with Ogletliorpe, in a vessel which brought out a new band of colonists. Among tlie numerous emigrants who soon iil'icr arrived from Germany and Switzerland, vveie several of the associ- ates of the celebrated Moravian mission- ary. Count Zingendorf ; and a no less fa- mous individual of that age, John Wes- ley, came from England in the same DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. 401 year, 1735. The character and history of this man, then in his youth, are wor- thy of a much more particular notice than can be given in a work like the present. It is pleasing to recur to this eai'ly enterprise of one so eminently distinguished by Christian philanthropy, directed to a class of men, and a region of the New World, pi-esenting so little to incite the interest of any person not devoted to doing good. John Wesley, with his brother Charles, had become known to Oglethorpe, in London, in consequence of their labors in the prisons, for the instruction and improvement of criminals. They had formed a society, in company with George Whitfield and a few pious young men, while in college, for that ti'uly be- nevolent object, in which they persever- ed, in spite of the jeers of some of their acquaintance, who called it in contempt the Godly Club. What important ef- fects have resulted from that associa- tion ! It may have been the original model of those societies since formed for kindred purposes, especially of those for the reformation of delinquents and criminals, whose influence has been so salutary and extensive. It was through Oglethorpe's persua- sion that the two Wesleys were induced to visit the new colony ; and they were accompanied by three or four of their associates, and a company of three hun- dred other persons, including a hundred and seventy more Moravians. After a short period of religious exertions, he returned to England : and Whitfield soon after came out, with similar objects. He proposed the foundation of an or- phan asylum, which, as appears from his published letters, was a favorite plan, and pursued with his characteristic zeal and perseverance. It exists at the present day ; but it has never proved successful in the degree anticipated by its founder. This may be partly ac- counted for from the fact, that compara- tively few orphans, in our country, need such provision for their support. Vice, rather than the mere loss of parents, re- duces children to destitution and dis- tress ; for the means of living are easi- ly obtained in our new settlements and smaller towns ; and no great number of children are cast off wholly unprovi- ded for. Public or private charity steps in for their relief A fort was soon built at Augusta, for the defence of the Savannah river; a second at Frederica, which was a con- siderable work with four bastions ; and a third on Cumberland island, to com- mand the entrance of Jckyl sound, the only ship passage to Frederica. These were constructed at the expense of par- liament, which appropriated ten thou- sand pounds for their erection and main- tenance. Before they were completed, a message was received from the Span- ish commander in Florida, that a con- ference was desired with the governor, and the news came that a reinforcement had arrived from Havana. A peremp- tory demand was made for the immedi- ate evacuation of the territory south of I St. Helena sound, with a threat that the king of Spain would seize his own possessions by force of arms in case of refusal. Oglethorpe, being unprovided I with adequate means as well as author- j ity, immediately embarked for England, and there received the appointment of 1 major-general of all the forces of South Carolina and Georgia, and a regiment j of military emigrants, with whom he hastened back. On his arrival, he learned that the Spaniards had been busy in attempts to draw off' the Indians from his interest, and that some of the Creek chiefs were then at St. Augustine. But he had the address to counteract the enemy ; he sent invitations to the Indians to visit him at Frederica, whither they repaired after their return from Florida, and by his influence were easily confirmed in their friendly relations with the English. But it was not long before alarming symptoms of treachery were discovered among the English troops. One of the soldiers had served at Gibraltar, and there acquired an acquaintance with the Spanish language, through the medium of which he had held a traitorous com- munication with the enemy ; and, after being corrupted himself, he had found means to excite disaffection among his comrades. The first intimation received 26 402 DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF GEORGIA. by the general, was made in an attempt to assassinate him, which fortunately tailed, and the conspirators were execu- ted. By a report made to the trustees of the colony in 1740, it appears that at that time twenty-five hundred persons had been sent out as settlers, and that the amount of money expended was half a million of dollars ; but it was so far from yielding any returns to the proprietors, and even from supporting itself, that it still recjuired animal aid. The character of the colonists was far different from that of many of the earlier settlements ; though when we consider the natural advantages of the country, we m;iy well be surprised at the discour- aging result. A mixed population, how- ever, especially with a large proportion of the dregs of European cities, and even of the prisons of England, could not rationally be expected to bring a colony to such a condition as was early attained by the Pilgrims in the north, the Friends in Pennsylvania, the patient, economical Hollanders at New York, or the bands of farmers and othei's, who at different periods occupied different points along our extensive seacoast. Perhaps, we might rather be surprised that Ogletliorpe was able to accomplish as much as he did for the benefit of the colony, amidst the numerous obstacles which surrounded him. We have before mentioned his attempt to seize St. Augustine, and his want of success, in consequence of an unexpect- ed reinforcement of the Spanish garri- son at that place. We have also spoken of the invasion made in retaliation ; but a few particulars may here be added, which show at once the perilous condi- tion of affairs at that juncture, and the military abilities of the general. The expedition which sailed from Havana for the Altamaha river in 1742, consisted of six thousand men ; and its object was finally to destroy the south- ern colonies, and to seize upon the ter- ritory for the crown of Spain. An en- ergetic demand was immediately made upon South Carolina for troops ; but all assistance was refused, and he was left to his own resources. His policy was therefore to be adapted to his weakness ; and, instead of offering such resistance as he would have wished on the front- iers, he retreated as far as Frederica, having only about seven hundred Euro- peans under his command, with a body of Indians. After this show of timidi- ty, or of prudence, however, he boldly, but secretly, moved on toward the ene- my, intending to take them by surprise, and had already marched within two miles of their camp, with every prospect of success, when a French deserter among his ranks, fired his musket and fled back to the enemy. Although thus disappointed, Oglethorpe's ingenuity still found a resource, and sitting down, he wrote a letter to the deserter, in terms calculated to lead the Spaniards to suspect the runaway as faithless to them, in the style of instructions to him, for his guidance in the enemy's camp. In this he requested him to represent that Frederica was defenceless, and ought to be immediately taken. If the Spanish commander should appear un- willing to take that step, the Frent^h- man was instructed to use his utmost exertions to persuade him to remain three days longer in his present posi- tion, as that would allow time for the removal of six thousand troops, who, he pi'etended, were on their way to rein- force the British army, and six ships, expected on the coast. The letter in- sisted particularly on the greatest cau- tion being used, to avoid any allusions to Admiral Vernon's plan of attack up- on St. Augustine, as a secret of the ut- most importance. The letter was then put into the hands of a Spanish desert- er, who was set at liberty under a prom- ise to deliver it to the Frenchman. On reaching the Spanish camp, however, he took it to the commander, who was completely imposed upon by the ingeni- ous device, and thinking he had happily obtained important information, seized the Frenchman, and put him in irons. In the midst of doubts and fears, in- to which this letter had thrown the ene- my, a fortunate event occurred, which turned the scale in favor of Oglethorpe. South Carolina had slowly yielded to the request he had made for assistance. IL DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA. 403 so far as to send three vessels with troops ; and these arrived off the mouth of the Akamaha just in season to be mistaken by the invading general, for a part of the naval reinforcement alluded to in the inteicepted letter. Such appa- rent confirmation of the document con- vinced him of its truth; and he imme- diately destroyed his fortifications, and eml)arked for Florida in consternation, leaving, in his haste, a number of his cannon, &c., and some military stores. The success of this stratagem, the in- genuity of which is cei'tainly very re- markable, secured the deliverance of the colony, when it was in its most crit- ical condition, and threatened with final destruction. Without the loss of life, and at a small expense of money, the saga('iou8 Oglethorpe was thus able to deliver the colony of an enemy far too numerous to be resisted, and from the threatening prospect of falling irretriev- ably into the hands of a foreign power, opposed to that of Great Britain in pol- icy, laws, and religion. Having accomplished so important a service, and finding nothing important to demand his future presence, he em- barked for England for the last time, and spent the remainder of his life in tranquillity. On the commencement of hostilities in America in 1775, he receiv- ed the offer of the command of the Brit- ish forces, prepared to suppress the spir- it of opposition, but accepted only on condition of being authorized to assure the colonies that they should have justice done them. This reply appears to have been unsatisfactory to the ministry, for Sir William Howe was appointed com- mander in his stead. Oglethorpe re- mained in retirement until the close of his life. He attained an extraordinary age, surviving the unhappy contest be- tween his native country and the colo- nies which he had so f.iithfully served. He witnessed the first nine years of peace which succeeded the revolution, during which, the colony that he had planted, nursed, and defended, became an independent state, connected with a young republic which already showed signs of that rapid increase, in popula- tion, wealth, and improvement, which it has since experienced, and is likely long to enjoy. Among the numerous striking ch;in- ges which have been produced in our country by the lapse of a short period of time, that effected on the ancient seat of Yamacraw may be appropriately mentioned. One hundred and eighteen years ago, a small band of settlers late- ly from England, driving a few " hogs and cows," which had been given by people at Charleston, " to begin their stock," arrived near the spot, escortesd by "the rangers," and aided by "the scout-boats," sent by the governor of South Carolina. " Oglethorpe and Bull explored the country ; and, having found a high and pleasant spot of ground, situated on a navigable river, they fixed on this place as the most convenient and healthy sit- uation for settlers. On this hill they marked out a town ; and from the Indi- an name of the river which ran past it, called it Savannah. A small fort was erected on the banks of it as a place for the defence of the colony. The people were set to work in felling trees and building huts for themselves ; and Ogle- thorpe animated and encouraged them, by exposing himself to all the hardships which the poor objects of his compas- sion endured. He formed them into a company of militia, appointed officers from among themselves, and furnished them with arms and ammunition. To show the Indians how expert they were in the use of arms, he frequently prac- tised them. " Having thus put his colony in a good state of defence, the next object of his attention was, to treat with the Indians for a share of their possessions. The principal tribes that at tins time oc- cupied the territory were the upper and lower Creeks : the former were numer- ous and strong ; the latter, by diseases and war, had been reduced to a smaller number ; both tribes togethei- were com- puted to amount to about twenty-five thousand, men, women, and children. "At a little distance from Savannah, is a high mound of earth, under which the Indian king lies interred who held a conference with Sir Walter Raleigh." 404 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLORIDA. FLORIDA. The history of Florida, from the ear- liest expedition of discovery almost to the present hour, has been but a record of disappointments and disasters. Hav- ina;- neither mines of jTold, nor any pe- culiar advantati^es for agriculture or com- merce, the Spanish character of the people, while occupying it for three hundred years, had a full opportunity to display its imbecility; while our own government, since entering upon the possession a few years ago, have exhib- ited, in a manner no less lamentable, a disreu:ard tohumanilv in their treatment of the poor remains ot the original red race. Florida is one of the few groat peninsulas of America, and presents several peculiar features, one of which is its very important position. As has been renrarked, in speaking of Georgia, this long point is only the continuation of the southern slope of that state. It nowhere presents any considerable elevation ; and the greatest part of the surface is a level, raised but little above the ocean, with vast tracts too wet for use, and even wholly or chietly imjiassable, or sub- merged in water. Tiie wi>stern ooast of Florida extends six hundred miles, from the Perdido river to Cape Sal)lo ; while the eastern, from St. IMary's river, including the southern, to Cape Sable, is fcnir hundred and fifty. The Atlantic ocean l)ounds the eastern coast, and the southern extremity is washed by the Bahama and Cuba channels. The northern boundary runs from the mouth of St. Mary's river to the mouth of Flint river, up the Chatahoochee, to latitude .31 deg. 40 inin., separating it from Georgia. Thence the line proceeds along the limits of DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLORIDA. 405 Alabama, two hundred and forty miles, to Perdido river, and down that strcnm forty miles, to its mouth. The whole outline of Florida is about fifteen miles, and it extends through six degrees of latitude. The climate is more uniform than hi any other tract of equal extent, north and south, in the TTnit(»d States. This is owing to the little variation of surface, and the proximity of the sea. Pine pre- vails among the forests, as the soil is generally poor; but the variety of other trees is very great. Rice and Indian corn, sweet potatoes, cotton, indigo, and sugarcane, are the chief productions of agriculture, while oranges, limes, pome- granates, and figs, grow in abundance. The surface of Florida presents a great proportion of waste land and wa- ter, with all the varieties of bays, creeks, and lagoons, along the coast ; and in- land, of hammocks, savnnnahs, and ever- glades. The hammocks vary in their nature from dry to wet, and many of them are impassable, or with a few in- tricate intervals of hard and shallow grounds, wholly under water; never known to any except the Indians, whose superior ficquaintance with the country, during the late lamentable Florida war, often gave them advantage over our troops, in the hammocks and everglades. The various plants which grow abund- antly in some parts of those swamps and lakes, often add their obstacles to the traveller ; especially saw-grass, which soon cuts in pieces the clf)thes of men, and even their flesh. It would be diffi- cult to give an adequate idea of the for- bidding aspect of those extensive and desolate regions. Yet, in some places, verdant tracts occur even among those low and swampy districts, where flow- ers in profusion display their beauties throughout the year. The eastern coast is dangerous for large vessels, in easterly gales, as the numerous inlets are generally too shal- low for ships, having water only for vessels of a light draught. On the west, however, are the harbors of Perdido, Pensacola, Choctawhatchee, St. An- drew's, St. .Joseph's, Appalachicola, Ap- pelachee, Tampa, Carlos, and GuUivain. St. John's river is very crooked, and in some parts, four or five miles wide. Pensacoi.a, in north latitude ;)0 deg. 23 min., and longitude 10 deg. 19 min. west from Washington, stands on the northwestern shore of the bay of the same name, and enjoys the advantages of a fine and safe harbor, with a bar passable by vessels draAving twenty-f>ne feet of water. The anchorage is good, but the water is shallow near the laiul. The city was founded in the year 1699, by a S]ianish officer named Don Andre de Riola. The entrance to llie bay of Pensacola is narrow, between St. Rose's island and Pan'ancas point, eight miles from the city. St. Augustine is the principal town and seaport on the Atlantic coast of Florida, in north latitude 29 dog. 48 min., and longitude west from Wailiiiig- ton, 40 deg. 21 min. It is the oldest settlement in the limits of the Anmr- ican Union, and oven older than llie first Canadian colony, having been founded in 1565, V)y the Spaniards. The harbor has twenty-eitrht or thirty feet of water, and is safe and commodious, being pro- tected from the sea by Anastatia island. The tr»vvn cxTends along its side, on a peninsula, elevated only twt^lve feet above the level of the sea, and is of an oblong form, about a mile in letiglli, but not very compactly built. The shell- limestone which forms the coast is the building material. It presents a very attractive appearance from without, as orange-trees in abundance grow in the yards and gardens ; but many f»f the streets are crooked and narrow. The climate is as mild as that of southern Europe, and this city is therefore a re- sort of many invalids from the north. The sea-breezes by day, and the land- breezes by night, co-operate to keep the temperature mild and uniform. Steamboats goto Savannah and Charles- ton. Po])ulatiou about 2,r)00. The square near the water is orna- mented with an obelisk ofstcine, erected in the centre by the Spaniards, in the days of the constitution. It is surround- ed by two churches, the courthouse, and a number of handsome private buildinirs. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE Of FLORIDA. 407 Fort Marion, at the mouth of the harbor, is intended for seventy guns and one thousand soldiers. The harbor of Pensacola receives the two rivers, Yellow Water and Escam- bia; Choctaw river falls into the bay of the same name; while the Appalachi- cola forms a delta, and the Suwanee empties into Vacasausa bay, in latitude 29 deo:. 25 min. The St. John's differs from all the other rivers in the Union, in taking its rise from low, flat grassy plains, which extend to about latitude 28 deg. It then flows a little westward of north, for a considerable distance paral- lel to the coast, and has the appearance of a sound. The low and uniform character of the coast of Florida renders it very danger- ous to navigation, especially on the east- ern side ; and the perils of the seaman are greatly increased by the numerous shoals and banks which line the south- ei'u coast. The Florida Keys are celebrated for the numerous shipwrecks which have occurred upon them. They ai'e now the resort of wreckers, who often afffu'd im- portant assistance to vessels in distress, for rewards proportioned to the value of their services. They have hereto- fore been infested by pirates, at differ- ent periods, and stained with the blood of many of their unfortunate prisoners. The Keys consist of a long line of sand- banks, reefs, rocks, and small islands, some bare, and others thickly overgrown with grass, reeds, or bushes, which for- merly gave complete shelter and con- cealment to the outlaws who lay in wait for prizes, and the last of whom were destroyed and captured by some of our armed ships, a few years ago. Tallahassee. — This town, the capi- tal of Florida, 210 miles from St. Au- g-ustine, stands on a considerable emi- nence, and contains nearly two thousand inhabitants, with several public squares, a courthouse, statehouse, masonic hall, land-office, market, and three churches. There is a valuable mill-stream which passes along the eastern side of the town, and has a fall of sixteen feet, a short distance from the place where it sinks into the eaxth, and disappeai's. Jacksonville, thirty-eight miles from St. Augustine, and thirty from the sea, is a pleasant town, on the bank of St. John's river, with less than one thou- sand inhabitants. Appal achico LA stands at the mouth of the river of the same name, on the gulf of Mexico. It contains about fif- teen hundred inhabitants, and has con- siderable trade in cotton. Steamboats go to New Orleans, and Columbus, Geo. Curiosities. — Among the natural cu- riosities of Florida are : — The White Sulphur Spring, on the bank of the Suwanee river. The water makes its appearance in a large basin, thirty feet in diameter, and ten feet deep, frf)m which it flows in a strong current. It is so highly impregnated with sul- phur, that the taste and smell ai'e very disacjreeable; and it is celebrated for its efficacy in various cutaneous and other diseases. Subterranean Streams. — Williams, in speaking of this state, says, Florida is, in itself, a natural curiosity. It is (as all who are acquainted with the outline of the United States will allow), a sin- gularly-formed peninsula. Mr. Sea- gi'ove alleges that it is a sand-bank ; but Mr. Williams supposes it to be a calca- reous fragment of the Appalachian mountain, clothed with some sterile sand-banks, some rich, variegated clay- banks, and some beautiful coralines. It is remai'kable that, although Florida has many beautiful streams, some of them are found pursuing a considerable part of their course under ground. Pretty streams of sweet and pure water often rush headlong into some wild opening in the rocks, and entirely dis- appear; and it is quite common to see streams jet fjrth from the earth. Mr. Williams gives the following description in his work on Florida, published in 1837 :— " The Wakully River rises about ten miles northwest of St. Mark's, from one of the finest spi'ings in Florida, or, per- haps, in the world. It is of an oval i form, the largest diameter of which is ; about six rods. It is of an unknown : depth, and perfectly transparent. In 1 looking into it, the color resembles a 408 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLORIDA. clear blue sky, except near the border, where it has a slight tinge of green, from the reflection of the surrounding verdure, which hangs over it in droop- insT branches and waving festoons. The eastern side presents a rugged, rocky precipice ; all else is an abyss of bound- less depth. Squadrons of fishes are seen careeringround their own world, in per- fect security. The water is moderately cold, and highly impregnated with lime. The beauty of the fountain, the luxu- riance of the foliage around it, and the calm retirement of the whole scene, render this one of the most charming spots that West Florida affords." Lime-S/?iks. — All over the territory are scattered lime-sinks, or sink-holes, which mark the com'se of the subterra- nean rivers. Holes in the ground, where the earth caves in, and where the hollow is filled with water, form these lime-sinks. Williams says : " They are often very deep, and from them I have often taken fine string's of trout. Two instances have occurred, within our knowledge, where persons have camped under the pines for one night, and the next, earth, trees, and all, have disap- peared, and an unfathomable sink has supplied the place." Oaves. — A large part of Florida (that is, the limestone region) aboimds in caves. The rock is porous and soft, and slowly dissolves in water. Swift-running streams rapidly wear and tear away mass after mass, and from time to time new channels are formed, by which means the old are left dry. In many places, channels are worn under groimd, and there considerable rivers pursue their way, for greater or less distances, be- neath the surface, some of which reap- pear, and others fall into the sea by un- known passages. Such is the nature of a number of streams in Fnrnpe, some of which have been connected with my- thological traditions and poetical asso- ciations. Wherever an old subterra- nean channel is deserted, a cavern is left; and among those which have been discovered in Florida, the most curious, perhaps, is The Arch Cave. — This remarkable excavation is about three miles fi-om Chipola river, in Jackson county. At the foot of an immense limestone bluflf" is an opening, only five feet in height, and thirty feet wide. Having entered, the visiter finds a descending passage of fifty feet, when he perceives that he has reached a spacious apartment, a hun- dred feet across and fifty in height, along the southern side of which flows a stream of pure, cold water, which soon disap- pears. A narrow passage leads onward to the northwest, with a pointed arch overhead, like a Gothic aisle. After proceeding sixty yards, a stream, twenty feet wide and five feet deep, crosses the path, which abounds in white cray-fish. The passage next turns northeastwardly, to a chamber one hundred feet long, with a floor of red clay, scattered with fragments of fallen rock, and blocks of stalagmite, formed by the water drip- ping from the numerous stalactites above. These, of different forms and sizes, almost conceal from view the lofty roof; while a collection of the longest, united in one undivided mass, extends from the ceiling to the floor, foi'ming an immense, but well-prop oitioned column, which seems erected to support the rock above. The entrance of visiters into this hall with torches, disturbs a large flock of bats, which have their residence far above; and on their rapid wings, after fluttering about awhile, they dis- appear among the inner recesses of the extensive cavern, making a sound like that of a rushing wind. A narrow and winding passage next opens, to conduct the stranger to a new hall, from which several paths branch off" in different directions, where several streams are observed rushing through ci'evices of different sizes, and annually producing changes in their subterranean courses. The stalactite formations, at the same time, gradually fill up some of the chambers in which they are found; and the beauty of these it is difficult to describe, and even to imagine. They are masses of small crystals, more or less regular, though endlessly varying in form. The sides of the cavern are cov- ered with them in many parts, while the pendants above, like icicles, usually have a corresponding mass of the same DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLOillDA. 409 material forming on the floor below ; and thus the light of the torches is reflected in a thousand spangles, fi'om every .1 quarter. This cavern has been explored about six hundred yards, and many more hol- lows are known to exist in its vicinity. Several wells, sunk by Colonel Stone, opened into dark caves, by which the workmen became too much alarmed to continue their labors. The Ladies' Cave is another remark- able opening in the earth, about a mile distant, in a southeast direction. The entrance is large, and the interior more spacious. The passage at first divides into two, of which that on the left soon leads the visiter to a deep stream, which disappears under an arched rock, cov- ered with crystals. The other, after a longer course, and leading through sev- eral halls, is interrupted by water, be- yond which is seen a large room. The Everglades. — This peculiar fea- ture may be ranked among the natural curiosities of Florida. South of the twenty-eighth degree of north latitude, Florida has very much the shape of a dish, the border of which is raised toward the coast. Near to the cape this border lies at the distance of from twelve to twenty miles from the shore. It is com- posed of the same calcareous rock which forms this peninsula. This ex- tensive basin is intersected by numei'- ous lakes and lagoons, and is filled by marshes and wet savannahs, which form a labyrinth, and are called the ever- glades. It is drained on the north by the St. John's, on the east by the St. Lucia, Greenville, Jupiter, New river, Rattones, and Miami, and by the Snake, Swallow, Delaware, Caloosahatche, and Macaco, on the west. As one approaches the level of the glades, he is surprised by the appearance of a field of grass before him, which seems like the ocean, without bounds. He may then pass on westward, from six to twelve miles, till, by degrees, the grass disappeais, and he is left in an unexplored, grassy lake, the limits of which his eye can not dis- cover. The grass is so tall and thick, that, although the borders of the lake are usually covered in winter with water, it is never so deep as to cover it. For ten miles from the timbered land, the earth is generally hard and dry in summer. This tract of country would afford a fine place for cattle to range, and is always well stocked with wild game. La Vega tells us, that pearls were known to abound in this region, at the time of the invasion by De Soto. Mr. Williams says : "An old manuscript in my possession asserts, that a governor of Florida appointed a commission, for the purpose of seeking pearls in these lakes, which was successful." Mr. Wil- liams seems to infer fi-om this and other facts, that it would be of much advan- tage to drain this portion of the country. He asserts, that if the waters could be lowered ten feet, it would probably drain six hundred thousand acres ; and if this should prove to be a rich soil, as it appears to be, what a field would it open for tropical productions ! History. — We have only room for a few leading events in the history of Florida : — 1497. — Discovery by Sebastian Cabot, under the English flag, who mei'ely saw the coast, without landing. 1512. — Visited by Ponce de Leon, in search o? '^^ the fountain of health," ve- ported to him by an Indian girl. He landed from Hispaniola at Cape Sable, on Easter day, and gave it the name of Florida, which the Spania7-ds afterward used to embrace all the country to Can- ada. After a long search for the foun- tain (which may have been the Sulphur Spring), he returned, with the loss of many men. 1516. — He made a second search for gold, and was driven away by the Indians. 1524. — The king of Spain having granted Florida to Guerrav, his succes- sor, Allyon, attempted to seize the country, but was repulsed by the na- tives. 1528. — Pamfilo de Narvaez, with four hundred foot and foi'ty horse, after many sufferings, and much perfidious conduct toward the Indians, lost almost all his men; eighty only reached Mexico in boats. 1539. — Fernando de Soto next at- 410 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLORIDA. tempted to occupy the country, having sold his claims on the Peruvian con- (jut'st. to which he had contributed, for one and a half millions. Landing at Tampa hay with one thousand men, and assisted by Ortez, a survivor of the last expedition, who was a favorite with a chief in the interior, he proceeded far without interruption, treating the na- tives with kindness, until he had won their confidence, and had an opportunity to seize one of their large towns. A numerous body Ived river, having crossed the (.'umberland nu)untains and the Mississippi. 1562. — A Huguenot colony, sent out from France by Admiral Coligny. ar- rived on the coast, but proceeding north, landed at Beaufort. After extreme suf- ferings, however, they abandoned their undertakinGT. i^tU. — A second and larger colony was established at May river, supjiosed to be the St. .Tohn's, where they built Ft>rt Caroline, six leagues from the sea. (xeneral Menendez sailed from Spain to di>str()y tluMn, as heretics, as his catholic majesty had received from the ]>ope a grant of the new world, on condition that he should convert the Indians to the Romish fiith. Ho succeeded, ])artly by perfidy, in butcluning the colonists; and in revenge, the Chevalier Dominique de Gourges, though born a Romanist, led an expedition to Florida, and, with the assistance of a body of Indians, cut off the Spaniards at Caroline. Finding the remains of his countrymen hanging on trees, with the inscription: "Not ut up signs bearing these words: ''Not as Sj)(i»iar Indians. 1583. — The last of the Indian nations formed treaties with the Spaniards, and a missionary system was established for all Florida, the head of which was at the Franciscan convent in the capital. The convents, whose ruins are now seen in different parts, were built about this time. 1702. — Governor Moore's unsuccess- ful siege of St. Augustine, with the troops of the sinithetn English colonies. Two years afterward, by a land-expedition, he seized the north of Floriila, and ex- cited the Indians to revolt and mas- sacres. After various Indian wars, in 1718 — M. Chateauque. fiom Louisi- ana, captured the fort at Pensacola with eight hundred Indians, twenty-two years after its erection. It was soon retaken by a Spanish lleet, but fell again into the hands of the French, who demol- ished it. 1725. — Governor Palmer, to retaliate for a Spanish and Indian invasion of Georgia, laid the country waste to St. Augustine. 1740. — Governor Oglethorpe's expe- dition, mentioned in our description of S.>uth Carolina and Getn-gia. After an invasion of (Jeoigia by the Spaniards, in 17()3 — Florida was ceded to Great Britain, when only six hundred poor Spaniaids were found inhabiting the country, and these stxin removed to Cuba. The land was therefore parcelled out among half-pay olhcers and disbanded soldiers, who had served in the Ameri- can war; while, colonists of different classes arrived from Great Britain. 1767. — New Smyrna, seventy miles south of St. Augustine, was settled by 1,500 Greeks, Corsicans, and others, under Dr. Turnbull, who for several years treated them with great injustice and barbarity. In 1776, they were placed in an independent situation by the government, and took up their resi- dt>nce in St. Augustine, where many of their descendants now reside. 17S1. — Pensacola was besieged and taken by the French from Louisiana. 1783. — Florida was ceded back to Spain, and the manufacture of sugar, and other enterprises introduced by the English, were abandoned, the British subjects leaving the country. The Greek colony alone preserved signs of pros- perity. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF FLORIDA. 411 1811. — Seven commissioners were sent to Pensacola by the president of the United States, to obtain, if possible, a cession of Florida, but were unsuc- cessful. The next year, Fernandina and Amelia island were captured by Com. Campbell and an American foi'ce; and the place was a great resort of smugglers and slave-traders, during the American eml)argo. 1813. — The place was restored to the Spaniards. 181 1. — Colonel Nichols, with an Eng- lish lleet, took Pensacola, and armed the Indians against the Americans. On the ()th of November, in tliat year, Cron. .lacksoTi appeared before I'ensacola with a strong force, and soon took the place, but the British es(;;iptMl in their ships, (ren. Jackson destroyed the fortifica- tions and evacuated the place, leaving private property wholly uninjured. 1819. — A treaty of amity, settlement, and limits, was concluded between Spain and the United States, by which Florida was ceded to this country. Gen. Jack- son was aj)|)ointed governor. 1822. — Florida was made a territory; and the following year Tallahassee was made the seat of government. The improvements made in popula- tion, agriculture, arts, and commei'ce, have been ra|)i seventy feet, and bear- ing the dark-hued evergreen leaves, in a beautiful cone. In May and June, this is gemmed over its entire surface with beautiful snowy flowers, five to seven inches in diameter and of great fra- grance. The cypress that everywhere fills up the low grounds south of Vir- ginia, is always to be found in its apprq- and dotted like a hyena, which comely priate place here ; and from nearly ev- beast, and its congener, the wolf, they ery tree, of whatever species, the cling- more nearly resemble than any of their i ing moss hangs in graceful festoons. own well-bred family. Even the fatten ing porkers are only in a passably-grow- ing condition, while the nomads could hardly lay claim to hide enough to hold their bones together. As the stages rattled along, they rushed out of the woods in all directions, to follow the horses. I asked the driver the cause of their leanness when the woods were full of oaks and chestnuts. He said the former bore no acorns, and the people gathered the latter. " We were glad to get on a boat at Montgomery. Had the river been at moderate height, we should have passed down the four hundred miles to Mobile in two days instead of five, owing to our frequently grounding. This appears to be exclusively an air- plant. Its slender stem throws out mi- nute tendinis or branches, some two in- ches long, and about the same distance from each other, and it is suspended from the twigs solely by the mechanical attachment of the stem. When this has become dead for a long distance from the point of its origin, the fresh shoots continue to multiply and grow on with undiminished vigor. Cattle are said to be fond of it, and if suited to impart nourishment to them, it seems improvident that such vast quantities of it are hung so far above their reach. This moss is expf)rted largely to the northern states, and is used for stuffing cushions, beds, &c. I 27 418 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. ♦' The Alabama, in the color of its water, its width, depth, current, and the general character of its banks, reminds one strongly of the Connecticut. When within fifty miles of Mobile, the land on either side begins rapidly to decline, and within twenty-five or thirty, sinks almost to a level with the water. Still lower down, it assumes that state be- tween land and water, that fits it only to bear a matted mass of useless aquatic reeds and grass, and it is appropriate- ly employed in breeding interminable shoals of alligators, raoschetoes, and a full supply of yellow fever. " The soil on both sides of the river is almost invariably good, as is much of that in central Alabama. It is employ- ed mostly in the production of cotton, though corn enough is raised for con- sumption and some for expoi'tation." Mobile stands on a low plain, only about fifteen feet above the water at high tides, but commands a view over the spacious harbor, and lies open to the sea-breezes. The distance from the coast of the gulf of Mexico is thirty miles, and from New Orleans, one hun- dred and sixty-four. The population is about thirteen thousand, and the princi- pal public buildings are the United States naval hospital, courthouse, city hospital, three banks, seven churches, theatre, and Burton academy. Provision has been made for a supply of water for the city from Spring Kill, two miles dis- tant. The cotton trade of this port is very great, the amount received and ex- ported annually being larger than that of any other city in the Union except New Orleans. The entrance of the harbor is defend- ed by Fort Morgan, on a sandy point opposite Dauphin island ; and a light- house is erected for ships entering. Mobile has been in possession of the United States only thirty-four years, having been ceded by Spain in 1813. Spring Hill College, two miles from Mobile, has about four thousand vol- umes in its library, and seventy students. Steamboats depart daily for New Or- leans, Columbus, Miss., and Montgome- ry L Tuscaloosa, lately the capital, is sit- uated on the left bank of the Black Warrior river, in latitude thirty-three degrees and twelve minutes, and longi- tude ten degrees and forty-three min- utes, one hundred and fifty-five miles southwest from Huntsville, two hundred and seventeen miles a little north of east fi-om Mobile, and eight hundred and fifty-eight miles southwest from Washington, by post-route. Its posi- tion is at the foot of the lower falls, at the head of steamboat navigation, on an elevated plain. The old statehouse, courthouse, land-office, masonic hall, la- dies' athaeneum, four churches, academy, and institute, are the public buildings. The streets are broad, straight, and regular, and the inhabitants about two thousand. The University of Alabama, founded in 1828, is situated at the distance of one mile from Tuscaloosa. It has a library of six thousand volumes, seven professors and tutors, and about sixty students. The commencement is held on Wednesday after the first Monday in December. Demopolis, on the Tombigbee, two hundred and twenty miles from Mobile, situated a little below the mouth of the Black Warrior river, communicates daily with Columbus, Miss., and Mobile, by steamboats. Stage-coaches go three times a week to Tuscaloosa and Mobile. The principal public buildings are three churches, two academies, and the land- office ; and the population is about one thousand. Gainesville, a small town, about two hundred and eighty- three miles from Mobile, is on the Tombigbee, and a place of much trade in cotton. It con- tains only about two hundred inhabi- tants, but is daily visited by the steam- boats from Columbus and Mobile, and stage-coaches go three times a week, to the latter place and Jackson in Missis- sippi. St. Stephen's, with a population of one thousand, is the second settlement in the state in point of age. It stands on the Tombigbee, one hundred miles from Mobile, and has two churches, a land-office, and an academy. I Cahawba, on the west side of Alaba- .J 420 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. ma river, two hundred and forty miles from Mobile, and once the capital town, contains about one thousand inhabitants. It has a courthouse, an academy, and two churches, and the river steamboats touch there daily, while stage-coaches go to Mobile, Tuscaloosa, and Hunts- viJle. Selma, sixteen miles above Cahawba, on the right bank of the river, has two academies, three churches, and about one thousand inhabitants. Fossil Bones, &c. — Alabama, more than most other parts of our country, abounds in ancient bones, which are found in various positions, but most abundantly in a peculiar stratum, which in some places lies many feet beneath the natural surface, but in others, is laid bare, or cut through by the wearing away of streams of water, &c. In cer- tain districts, these remains of ancient and often unknown animals, have been long familiar to the present inhabitants, as well as to their predecessors the In- dians ; but their remote situations have prevented many of them from being either generally seen or accurately de- scribed. Dr. Koch of Germany made a tour of exploration in this and several other states, three years ago, and discovered and brought away a collection of bones, many of which were exhibited by him in our principal cities. A great num- ber of them were arranged by him, in the order in which he supposed them to have been naturally placed, judging from their relative positions when dis- covered in the earth. When thus pla- ced, they seemed to form the skeleton of an immense serpent, which the dis- coverer named theHydrargos Sillimanii, and described, with a sketch of its prob- able habits, food, &c., after the manner of many of his predecessors, some of whom have published pictures of the animals of extinct species, as when re- stored, by the addition of the decayed flesh, &c. Naturalists, however, did not gener- ally adopt the opinions of Dr. Koch ; and more evidence is thought necessary before the existence of such an animal can lie admitted. The lighter bones connected with this skeleton, were found in a state of dislocation, particularly those which he placed as ribs. The vertebree are so entirely separate, and generally so much worn away, by decay or attrition, that no evidence of their re- lation to each other, could be obtained from their form or size ; and their alle- ged proximity when discovered, is not of itself sufficient ground on which to proceed in consti'ucting an animal of such an exti-aordinary kind. Besides, the bones placed as the head, and which are said to have been found lying at that end of the skeleton, but inverted, have little or no resemblance to those of a serpent's head. The parts of which this collection consists are unquestionably natuial re- mains of some gigantic animal or ani- mals, and were taken fi'om the earth in Alabama; but to what kind of animal, or to how many individuals they be- longed, we pretend not to decide. They present a striking specimen of innumer- able remains of a similar kind existing in abundance in some parts of Alaba- ma : and future discoveries and resear- ches may probably shed important light upon the interesting subject. The following statements we derive from a letter of Professor Silliman : — "Dr. Koch, the proprietor of the skeleton now in this city, made a jour- ney of discovery a year since, into Ala- bama and other southern regions, with particular reference to this animal. He had the rare good fortune, as the result of his perseverance, aided by the kind assistance of the inhabitants, to disinter the stupendous skeleton which is now set up for exhibition here. "It has evidently been done at great expense and personal toil; and the pub- lic, while they owe a debt to Dr. Koch, will, when paying it, receive a high gratification in contemplating the re- mains of a race of animals whose length exceeded that of all other creatures hitherto discovered ; the spinal column of this skeleton as now arranged meas- ures one hundred and fourteen feet in length. The skeleton having been found entire enclosed in limestone, evi- dently belonged to one individual, and DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. 121 there is the fullest ground for confidence in its genuineness. The animal was marine and carnivorous, and at his death was imbedded in the ruins of that an- cient sea which once occupied the region where Alabama now is ; having myself recently passed 400 miles down the Al- abama river, and touched at many pla- ces, T have had full opportunity to ob- serve, what many geologists have affirm- ed, the marine and oceanic character of the country. "Judging from the abundance of the remains (some of which have been sev- eral years in my possession), these ani- mals must have been very numerous, and doubtless fed upon fishes and other marine creatures — the inhabitants of a region, then probably of more than trop- ical heat ; and it appears probable also, that this animal frequented bays, estua- ries, and seacoasts, rather than the main ocean. As regards the nature of the animal, we shall doubtless be put in pos- session of Professor Owen's more ma- ture opinion, after he shall have review- ed the entire skeleton. I would only venture to suggest^ that he may find lit- tle analogy with whales, and much more with lizards, according to Dr. Harlan's original opinion. " Among the fossil lizai'ds andsaurus, this resembles most the pleisiosaurus, from which, how^ever, it differs very de- cidedly. " Most observers w^ill probably be struck with the snake-like appearance of the skeleton. It differs, how^ever, most essentially from any existing or fossil serpent, although it may counte- nance the popular (and I believe well- founded) impression of the existence in our modem seas, of huge animals to w^hich the name of sea-serpent has been attached. For a full and satisfactory statement of the evidence on this sub- ject, see a communication by Dr. Bige- low of Boston in the second volume of the American Journal." Pro-fected Improvements. — Among the projects for improvements which now attract the attention of the people of this state, is the establishment of a line of transportation on a grand scale. A glance at the principal river and its branches, is sufficient to discover, that thousands of miles lie along and near their borders ; and that, even were the proportion of land susceptible of culti- vation much less than it is, sufficient would still remain to furnish support for an immense population, if judiciously managed, and furnished with convenient means of sending the products to mar- ket. The steamboats already plying daily upon the main stream, and the railroads now in use, with the advanta- ges which they aff'ord, intimate what further benefits might be secured by ex- tending the improvements to every part of the state which may be accessible to them. But something more than this i.s contemplated, by a system of public works proposed to the people. The western parts of Georgia and South Carolina are still unprovided with adequate channels of transportation ; and the slightest examination of the raap.«<, will go far to justify the assertion of those who maintain, that it is easy to adopt measures now which shall bring all their trade to Mobile. The exten- sion of steamboat routes as far as possi- ble upon the streams, then a resort to railroads, and finally the improvement and multiplication of common roads, it is insisted, will accomplish this ; while the profits can hardly fail to justify and richly to reward the expense, and in a moderate period. But this is not all. The valley of the Tennessee river is separated from that of the Alabama by only a narrow ridge ; and if that barrier can be surmounted, another very rich and extensive region will be added to the vast commercial territory of Mobile. It is proposed to construct a railroad across that tract ; and thus to draw off" the trade which seeks a slow and difficult channel down the Tennessee to the Mississippi. But the system of improvements projected stops not here. The route may be ex- tended northward ; and it is seriously proposed to carry it to the mouth of the Ohio. From Selma to the Tennessee, a railroad route has been surveyed, and part of it graded ; but the work has been abandoned, at least for the present. Such favorable views, however, are held Lb 422 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. forth, that it is supposed the pi'oject will yet be accomplished. From some of the recent publications on the subject, we derive the following facts respecting the country along the route. It will be perceived that the mineral treasures now embosomed in the earth, and of little or no value on account of their inaccessible position, are among the chief advantages promised by the advocates of the plan of improvement. The coal lands abound- ing in that region, are capable of afford- ing abundant supplies of fuel for the use of steamships in all parts of the gulf of Mexico, and steamboats on the rivers, as well as for the locomotives on railroads, so far as it may be wanted. The distance from Selma to the Ten- nessee river, by a line running north, is about one hundred and fifty miles ; and the point at which it would be reached is at Decatur. Such a line would pass through the midst of the coal region, and those parts of it which border on the Cahawba and Warrior rivers. Be- tween Mulberry creek and Cahawba river, the line passes along the water- shed ; and there the soil is peculiarly fa- vorable for the construction of a sub- stantial road, consisting of cretaceous lime-rocks, of a very solid description. The Cahawba coal-field commences at Centreville, and is crossed by the line, as is that part of the coal-region called the Warrior coal-field, which lies just beyond the Mulberry fork, in the east- ern part of Walker county. From that part of Decatur the coun- try is of a diiferent formation, but of a very solid, firm nature for a railroad, being of granite. Decatur is a town of considerable business, being advantage- ously situated for trade, at the head of the falls of the Tennessee, at the foot of an extensive line of navigation on that river above the falls, and with the advantages of a railroad to Tuscumbia, on the part of the river below the falls. But another route is also proposed, which offers some important advantages to recommend it, not promised by that just described. There is a railroad al- ready formed and in use, between Mont- gomery and Westjjoint, to which we have before alluded. A route laid out from some convenient point on that, to Tennessee river, would be about one hundred and forty miles long, only one hundred of which remains to be provi- ded for, and this would cost but about ten thousand dollars a mile, including machinery, &c. Of course, the whole expense of the one hundred miles, at this estimate, would be but a million of dollars ; which the results would well warrant, if the anticipations entertained should prove well founded. If the pro- posed work should commence at Mount Jefferson (a point on the Montgomery and Westpoint railroad), it would pass through the counties of Chambers, Tal- lapoosa, Randolph, Talledega, and Ben- ton, to the Double Springs, on Coosa river, and thence foi'ty miles to Gunter's Landing, on the Tennessee, on which part a railroad has already been project- ed, and funds appropriated. This route has therefore but one hundred miles of railroad to be provided for, is much shorter than the other (from Selma to Decatur), and passes through a more fertile and populous part of the state, and a region rich in minerals of value. A chief object proposed by the friends of these improvements is, to connect the interests of the two parts of the state. Northern and southern Alabama are now so far divided, by having differ- ent channels of trade, that but little of that sympathy exists between them, which is so desirable in the same state, and necessary to its harmony and pros- perity. Plans are pi'oposed in Georgia, for the opening of new routes of trans- port, by which the trade of the north- eastern counties is likely to be perma- nently drawn off into other channels. The railroad just described would effec- tually counteract such measures, and at the same time prove so convenient to the northwestern parts of the adjoining state, that several large counties of Georgia would become tributary, in a commercial point of view, to the city of Mobile. Alabama has thus much to expect from the extension of internal improve- ments. Although, by circumstances, she has been long prevented from ma- king rapid progress, and was even so DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. 423 situated, as to be unable to begin for a century or more after her older sisters of the Union, her exertions made since she has had the power, are very credit- able to her leading men, and ihe results have been such as to stimulate her to new projects and new labors. Notwith- standing the obstacles and discoui'age- ments presented to the extension of in- ternal navigation and railroads, there are doubtless streams remaining, on which steamboats may hereafter be nin with advantage, and numerous tracks may be laid through the most important districts, by which places now unpro- vided with the means of transport, may be rendered accessible. There ai'e, for- tunately, lai'ge deposites of coal and oth- er minerals in different parts of the state, which must afford a rich reward to the enterprise of those who shall open channels of transportation, by which they can be brought to the manufactory and the steam.-furnace ; while the impor- tant advantages to be expected from the opening of intercourse between distant points of the state and other districts more distant, will annually increase, and become strona;-er incitements to men of business to give them an improved di- rection, and to bring them within their own reach. However important may be this de- partment of the public interest, and how- ever much praise the state may deserve for her early and spirited attention to it, it is but of a physical kind, and, from its own nature, necessarily inferior to the intellectual and moral objects for which, as we have before remarked, provision is made in the constitution of the state. If the spirit of that article should be carried into operation, as promptly and efficiently and with as much perse- veiance as has been displayed in the in- troduction and extension of steam-routes by land and water, greater real advan- tages would be secured, and a still more substantial foundation would be laid for the futui-e greatness of the state. In- dustry, commerce, and wealth, may be pursued too exclusively, to the neglect of education. Such must be allowed to be the case in our country generally. If any one of our states should have the wisdom to choose tJie opposite course and to pursue it, what evidences of fun- damental improvement would ere long begin to aj)pear. Schools would not only be opened, but well-filled, well-fur- nished, and well-taught. Academies and colleges W(mld enjoy the patronage and respect of the public, as well as an oc- casional donation from the state treas- ury. Men would be placed in the gen- eral direction of education, not because of their political conne^:ions, ability in intriguing, or want of office; but for their intellectual and moral merits, and their known qualifications to perform well and faithfully those important du- ties. And they should be secured against the evil influence of change in politics. They should be protected against those subversive movements, which have more than once overthrown systems of education, devised and put in opei'ation in other states, merely be- cause they were the works of a party no longer in power. In short, the best men in Alabama, should be at once called upon to take into their hands this great business, invested with all author- ity necessary, and furnished with every facility requisite to favor the most exten- sive and rapid improvement, and insure the greatest regularity and permanency. Even the fear of improper interference should be prevented; and then, with such measures as good men might de- vise, such zeal and perseverance as they might be expected to display, and such cooperation and support as the people might be soon brought to afford to them, the whole face of society must soon be essentially improved, and, in a single generation, every department of busi- ness, and every town, village, and fam- ily, would share in the benefits. Although some other regions are more attractive to the masses of emigrants, Alabama has received a large increase of population since the commencement of her short history as a territory and a state. The northera counties, be- tween 1810 and 1820, experienced an increase of inhabitants of two hundred and twenty-two per cent. These are the counties of Franklin, Jackson, Lauderdale, Lawrence, Madison, Mor- 424 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. gan, and Limestone, and belong to what we have before spoken of as the Ten- nessee section of the state. On the five thousand and sixty square miles which they comprise, the population which, in 1810, was only forty-six thousand, in 1820 had increased to one hundred and two thousand. Like our other states, especially the new ones, Alabama ex- periences the various evils arising from the mixture of people of different, and often foreign orfgin ; and these may be most speedily and effectually overcome by a universal, sound, and thorough system of common schools, operating simultaneously and harmoniously with high schools and universities. Men who have been educated together in childhood and youth, will feel more like fellow-citizens through life ; especially if the education be good, and more es- pecially if it be the best. The public interests of all descriptions, imperious- ly demand such a system for the whole country; and whatever state shall lead the way, first and best, will most wisely consult its own permanent good, and in- evitably secure, for the future, the high- est place for itself among the benefac- tors of the nation, and the directors of its destiny. The Magnolias. — Having described some of the chief vegetable productions belonging to some of the states, before closing our account of them, on the pre- ceding pages, we may perhaps properly introduce here a description and history of the magnolias, the finest of which are common to most of the southei'n states. For the following facts, re- specting this elegant genus of plants, we have been largely indebted to a late work : " The Trees of America, by D. J. Bi-owne." The several species, ranged under the genus Magnolia, form a splendid collec- tion, which it would perhaps be impos- sible to rival in the world. They are indigenous to the southern parts of North America, but nowhere on our southern continent; while in the east- ern hemisphere they are not to be found as natives either in Europe, Africa, or Australia. In Asia, are several species, but only in China and Japan, unless. perhaps, in Hindostan. The most hardy species are some of our own ; and these are extensively cultivated in England and the middle and southern countries of Europe, and are able to endure the winters without protection. Even the less hardy species usually succeed there. But in the north of Europe they can not live through the year, out of the greenhouse. In England, the seeds will not often come to maturity ; but in France they ripen well. All the spe- cies are much admired, for the beauty of their fcjrms and their flowers. The most elegant, howevei', is the grandiflo- ra, which abounds in the southern states of the Union, and will be the last de- scribed. The Glnucons-leaved Magnolia {M. glauc(i), called the white bay and the sweet bay in our southern states, is known in more northerly parts of our country by various names ; swamp-sas- safras, swamp-sorrel, swamp-magnolia, beaver- wood, and small laurel. It bears the specific name of glawca, among bot- anists, on account of the sea-green col- or of its leaves ; and the name of bea- ver-tree, given it in certain parts of the Union, is owing to its roots being eaten with great avidity by beavers. Accord- ing to Micheaux, those animals prefer it, when felling timber to construct their dams, because the softness of its woods renders it very easy for them to gnaw. This species is sometimes found forty feet in height, and ten or twelve inches in diameter ; but not usually above twenty feet. The trunk is crooked, and divides into several limbs. The bark is gray and bitter to the taste ; the leaves are five or six inches long, of a shining bluish green above, and greenish be- neath. It is often an evergreen ; and even when not strictly so, sometimes re- tains many of its leaves through the winter. The flowering begins in the South late in April or early in May, and often continues in autumn. In Now England it begins about six weeks later. The flowers grow from the extremities of the shoots of the previous years, and are two or three inches broad, with six white concave petals. The fragrance DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. 426 is peculiarly rich and powerful, being porcoptihie at a distance; and, when kept in a clf)se room, Hooti l)ecornin<^ al- most insu[)portal)l(!. Tht; seed-vessel is of a conical sha[)e, about an inch and a half in lerio;tii, full of litlhj cells, which open and hit tlie sefids drop out. They ure, however, attached to slender threads, which hold tlicMn liau'^ntig fop some time in the air. This })ecidianty beh)nga to all the magnolias. The glaucous-leaviid magnoliahas two varieties : the arhorca, or tall, ;ind the ■scrnper/iirens, or evergrecMi ; and tliere are several others, sorrio of which are supposed to be hybrids. Tliis species is t!ie most extensive in its geographical range near the sea, be- ing found further north than any other of the magnolias. The highest spot where it has been obscsrved, is said to be a sheltered swamp in Manchester, Cape Ann, about thirty mih^s V)eyond Boston. It is theiT' but a small tree, and is frequently cut down to the ground by severe frosts. In Floiida and Lou- isiana, it is abundant in wet situaticms, and in (Jeorgiaand the Carolinas is con- fined to th(; pine barrens. The wood is sometimes used for join- ers' tools, while the bark is scnnetimes administered in cases of fever. T/if UnihreUa Magnolia ( M. tripeta- la), often called the umbrella-tree, and, in Virginia, elkwood, is remarkably uniform and graceful in the arrangement of its leaves. The shoots have a resem- blance to the young horns of the elk ; and hence probably the origin of the name by which it is known in tlif; moun- tainous regions of Virginia. The leaves are deciduous and lanceolate, petals nine, the outer ones pendant. It is very seldom higher tlian thirty-five or forty feet, or thicker than five or six inches, and usually much smaller. The stem is commonly inclined. The leaves are oval and acuminate at both ends, near twenty inches kmg, and seven or eight wide. Being thus long and narrow, and f)ften gi'owing aroiind a centre, they give the appearance of an umbrella ; and, when adorned with the flowers, which arci about eight inclies in diame- ter, in May and June, present an ob- ject of great beauty. The fragrance emitted is strong. lu (October tlie fruit becomes ripe, and it is five inches in length, of a rich rose color, with thirty or more seeds. It is found as high as the northern coun- ties of New York, and with the M. grandifl(jra on the alluvial grounds of Georgia. iSince its intioduction into England in 1752, it has Ijeeti extended in l^Jurope, and is said to be the most common of the magnolias (m the conti- nent. It requires a siieltered and shady position. It is best pro{)aga,ted frf)m seeds, which must be planted very soon after they fall. It is short-livfjd, and its wood is of no use ; but it is one of the most ornamental trees. T/ic Ijargc-lcancfl Magnolia ( M. ma- crofijiia) hi'is very large dt^ciduous leaves, oblong-ovate, of about the same size as the preceding, but much more rare. The bark is smooth and whit(!, ])y wliich it is easily known in the winter. T)je leaves are not less than thirty-five inches long in the forests, slender and pointed, and of a light gre(;n. In May, June, and July, it [)utH forth large flowers, sometimes eight or nine inches in diam- eter, with a purple spot in the centre, and a rich odor. The fruit nearly re- sembles that of the preceding variety. This plant was discovenid by the elder Michaux in 1789, and first sent to Eu- rope in 1800. The largest individual in England is at Arley Hall, whieh, in 18.37, was twenty-eight and a lialf feet high. It is raised fiom se(;ds with greater facility and certainty than in any other way. T%e Pointed-leaved Magnolia ( M. acu- minata), called the cuciimber-tree in this country, and the blue magnolia in England, grows most abundantly on the rivers of upper Georgia and western South Carolina. This is one of the no- blest of our forest-trees, growing to the height of sixty feet, and in May, adorn- ed with bluish or yellowish white flow- ers, five or six inches broad, with a del- icate odor. It is called the cucum})er- tree, from the resemblance of its fruit or seed-vessel to cucumbfu's when green, 'i'here are several varieties of this spe- cies, chiefly distinguished by the shape 426 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. of the leaf. Of these the principal is [ the heart-leaved cucumber-tree. It was introduced into England in 1801. It attains the height of forty or fifty feet, and bears leaves from four to six inches in length, and from three to five in breadth. It blooms in April, and the flowers are yellow, streaked with i-eddish within, and thi'ee or four inches in diameter. The acuminate magnolia grows as far north as Niagara, and abounds in the Cumberland mountains. It was discov- ered in 1736, by John Bartram, sent to England to Peter Collingson, and soon propagated in Eui'ope by layers. Trees of lai'ge size are now numerous in Eng- land, France, and northern Italy, forty and sixty feet in height, which bloom abundantly. In the old Bartram botan- ic garden, near Philadelphia, is one eighty feet high, and three feet in diam- eter, which was brought from Lake Erie in 1753, and furnishes most of the seeds of this species annually sent to Europe. Moist situations on declivities or nari-ow valleys are favorable to this species. The wood is remarkably light and chosen for canoes. Where it abounds it is used for joiner- work. The Ear-leaved Magnolia (M. auri- colala), or longleaved cucumber-tree, is also known in some parts of the United States by the name of Indian physic and washoo. The leaves are deciduous and smooth, spatulately obovate, cordate at the base, with blunt approximate au- ricles. It grows to the height of thirty or forty feet, straight, with wide branch- es pointing upward. The leaves are eight or nine inches in length, four or six wide, and of a light green ; and, on young trees, often much larger. There is a round lobe on each side of the peti- ole. The footstalks are short and radi- ating, which gives the clusters of leaves the form of an umbrella. It flowers in Api'il and May, and the petals are white. It is found on a portion of the Allegany range, in North Carolina; and a variety of it in the western parts of Georgia and Caiolina. The bark is infused in spirits for a sudorific in fevers. The Conspicuous-leaved Magnolia is a Chinese tree, and the Purple-Flowered Magnolia is a native of Japan ; and neither of them has been extensively introduced into the United States. The Magnolia Grandijlora, or lai'ge- leaved magnolia, we have yet to notice, and this is the most splendid spacies of the kind, the most admired and the most cultivated. It is known by several oth- er names in different parts of this coun- try : as the laurel-leaved and large flow- ering evergreen magnolia, bay-tree, lau- rel-bay, and big laurel. It is an evergi'een, with oval-oblong leaves, shining on their upper surface, and rusty beneath. The flowex's are erect, with from nine to twelve petals, expanding. " Of all the trees of North America," says Browne, "the large- leaved magnolia is the most remarkable for the majesty of its form, the magnifi- cence of its foliage, and the beauty of its flowers. It claims a place among the largest ti'ees of the forest, varying from one hundred feet and upward in height, and from two to three in diame- ter. Its head often forms a perfect cone, placed on a clean, straight ti'unk, resembling a beautiful column ; and, from its dark gi-een foliage, silvered over with milk-white flowei's, it is seen at a great distance." The leaves are from half a foot to a foot in length, and three or four inches broad, smooth and polished, and vary- ing considerably in form, being oblong, oval, acuminate, &c., &c. In our south- ern states, the flowers appear in April or May, but in the north, as in England and France, in June or July ; and some of the varieties continue in blossom un- til the frost. In the size of the flowers, as well as that of the entire plant, this splendid species excels its congeners : their diameter being from six to ten inch- es. The length of the flowei'ing season, is another very great advantage : most of the other species of magnolia giving out their flowers at once, and soon drop- ping them. In autumn, when the seed- vessels are left bare, they exhibit a beau- tiful and delicate appearance, being con- ical, and, when they open, dropping out a few seeds, which remain for several days hanging by slender filaments. Be- ing of a blood-red color, they make a very rich and striking display. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF ALABAMA. 427 Peculiar attention has been directed to the M. magniflora by foreign garden- ers, and numerous varieties have been produced, which have been regarded by some as distinct races. Among these are distinguished the obovate, round- leaved, Exmouth, rusty-leaved, lanceo- late-leaved, elliptic-leaved, &c. The native region of this splendid tree is comprised within the maritime districts of South Carolina, Georgia, Florida, Alabama, and Louisiana; and up the Mississippi to Natchez, extend- ing a little way into Nortli Carolina and Texas on the Brazos. It was introdu- ced into France in 1732, but not extend- ed until after 1760. It was admired by the Indians, who used the bark of the roots, mixed with .snakeroot, in fevers. The pi-opagatiou of this noble and el- egant tree may well excite particular in- terest in Alabama, as well as in other of our southern regions, to which the soil and climate adapt it. As twenty or thirty years' growth is necessary to bring one of the plants from the seed to the first flowering season, that manner of propagation should never be resorted to, for purposes of ornament. If layers are resorted to, they must remain two years before they are ready to be potted. Care is required, in transplanting them, to place the earth well about the roots, and to keep it well shaded for several weeks. The Exmouth variety some- times bears flowers the second year, with great care. Among the objects worthy of the at- tention of men of taste and public spir- it in Alabama, and our other new states, is the planting of shade-trees in the towns and villages : among which the magnolias hold a prominent place, espe- cially the grandiflora. The Cotton Trade. — We have be- fore spoken of Mobile as a port of the first rank in this important branch of our export trade. As it is, indeed, inferior in this respect only to New Or- leans, it will be quite appropriate to in- troduce a brief view of the trade in this staple article of the state, before we close our remarks on Alabama. We derive the materials for the following statements from that very respectable publication the Merchants' Magazine' for March, 1847. The collector'of Sa- vannah, James E. Saunders, Esq., by particular request, has this year procur- ed returns of the average weight of cot- ton-bales of other ports, by correspond- ence with the collectors. These have atiorded aid in making the followino- comparison and general view of the trade : — The average weight of bales at New Orleans last year, to August 31, was 450 pounds : at Mobile, 489 ; and this season, so far, 484 : at Savannah, last year, 415; this year, 430: at Charles- ton, 360. The difference at Savannah is owing to the smaller proportion of Sea-island, which weighs only a little more than 300 pounds per bale. Number of Bales received of the Crop of 1845. New Orleans 1,040,012 Mobile 421,966 Florida 139,880 Gulf ports 1,600,858 Georgia 1 84,563 South Carolina 248,766 North Carolina 9,401 Virginia 12,125 Atlantic ports 454,855 Gulf ports 1,600,858 All the ports 2,055,713 The average weights being used, the following is the result in pounds, which presents the best approximate estimate that can be obtained : — New Orleans, weight 468,005,400 lbs. Mobile 206,341,374 Florida 57,635,200 Gulf ports 731,981,974 Georgia 76,593,645 South Carolina 89,555,760 North Carolina 3,384,360 Virj(inia 4,365,000 Atlantic ports 173,898,765 Gulf ports 731,981,974 All the ports 905,880,739 The cotton crop of the United States, of 1845, was computed, in round num- bers, at the value of $51,700,000 ; and that of 1846 is set down, at conjecture founded on the portions received early in January, at 842,700,000. This state is bounded north by Tennessee, east by Alabama, south by the gulf of Mexico and Louis- iana, and west by Louisiana and Arkansas, from which it is separated by the Mississippi river. It lies between 30^ 8' and 35° north lat- itude, and 10° 12' and 12° 42' west longitude, from Washington. Its entire outline measures 1 ,203 miles, of which large portions lie along the Mississippi and the Tennessee. Extreme length from nOi.th to south, 337 miles; mean breadth, 135 miles; area, 45,760 square miles. There is a gentle declivity in the east part of the state toward the Tombigbee river; but the grand general slope is toward the Mississippi, having abrupt bluffs at a considerable distance from the bank, and leaving a wide, low tract of land between them, which is subject to inundations. That part of the state is crossed by the following streams, which are small tributaries of the great river of North America, viz.: Yazoo, Big Black, Bayou, Pierre, and Homochitto. Pearl river, a considerable stream, has its source in the central part of the state; and flowing south-southwest, nearly parallel with the Big Black, for a distance of eighty miles, then turns south-southeast, runs one hundred and fifty miles, and empties into the Rigolets between Lake Pontchartrain and Boyne. The soil of the state is generally thin, but in some places very rich, especially on the narrow border of lowlands along the bank of the Mississippi, above men- tioned. Cotton, indigo, and tobacco, flourish so well, that they have been, in turns, the staple productions. Indian corn, potatoes, and various other useful plants, are also cultivated with great success. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MISSISSIPPI 429 Among fruits, peaches and figs are the most abundant ; but the climate is favor- able to almost every kind except those confined to the tropics. The indigenous trees most abundant are the pine, oak of different varieties and species, hic- kory, sweetgum, liriodendron, tulip-tree, beech, persimmon, blackwaltmt, black- locust, honeylocust, redmaple, dogwood, chinquipiii, spicewood, papau, &c. The great reedcane farundo glganteaj for- merly ai)ounded in the low grounds ; but : it has been nearly rooted out. The temperature at Natchez is varia- ble, and, although usually mild in win- . ter, has sometimes been as cold as twelve [ degrees, Fahrenheit, above zero. Frost , is always experienced there, in some I degree, in the course of the cold season, and snow is occasionally seen ; so that j it is not surprising that neither sugar- ! cane nor orange-trees are to be found above thirty-one degrees of latitude. The climate is about two degrees colder ' than on the Atlantic. In summer, heats and drought are often unintermitted for a long period. The state is generally healthy, although intermittent fevers are common along the banks of some of the streams. The prevailing winds, as in the southwestern states generally, are westerly, and chiefly from the north- west. The first settlement made iti this state by Europeans was by the French at Natchez in 1716, when a fort was built by permission of the Indians, a power- ful tribe, who inhabited the bluff*. In 1723 the foreigners were involved in a war with the natives, which was ter- minated by a body of French troops | marched from New Orleans by Governor ' Bienville, who were too powerful to be resisted by the savages, and they sub- mitted. I In 1729, the French having become very numerous at Natchez, the com- mandant (Choteau), by ill-treating the Indians, excited them to revenge; and by a sudden attack, while the garrison were secure and unprepared, they cut off* about seven hundred persons, of both sexes, leaving alive scarcely enough to carry the news. The Indians, how- j ever, were soon driven from their homes \ by the fear of their powerful enemies ; and as the French made no further at- tempt to occupy the place, it was left desolate until the year 1763, when it was ceded to Great Britain. From that time a few respectable settlers arrived from Europe, New England, and elsewhere; but the events which took place for some years subsequently were very unfavor- able to the populating of the country. The fort at Natchez was taken sev- eral times by the Spaniards, English, and Americans. In 1781, Governor Galvey, of Louisiana, conquered Florida, and by the treaty of Paris it was ceded to the United States. On the 7th of April, 1798, congress, by an act, authorized the president of the United States to appoint commis- sioners to adjust the claims between Florida, Louisiana, and the acquired ter- ritory north of latitude thirty-one de- grees and west of Chatahoochee river; and on the 10th of that month made provision for a territorial government. A territory was therefore formed, and named Mississippi territory, which in- cluded, not only the present state of Mississippi, but also that of Alabama. An act of congress was passed on the 9th of July, 1808, admitting a delegate from Mississippi ; and on the 17th of June the assent of Georgia was de- manded to the formation of two states out of Mississippi territory. But, al- though the demand was acceded to, it was not until December, 1817, that any change was made. A petition had been presented on the 21st of January, 1815, from the Mississippi legislature, praying that a state might be constituted. A favorable report on this petition was made in December, 1816 ; and by an act passed March 1st, 1817, the people were authorized to hold a convention, which assembled in July following. A constitution having been drawn up, it was adopted August 15th, and was con- firmed by congress in December fol- lowing. The government consists of a gov- ernor, and a general assembly of two houses (a senate and a house of repre- sentatives). To be a candidate for the senate, a man must be twenty-six years 430 DESCRIPTION OF THE 8TATE OF MISSISSIPPI. of age, a citizen of the United States, for four years previously an inhabitant of the state, and one year an inhabitant of his district ; he must hold, in his own riffht, three hundred acres of land in Mississippi, or an interest in real estate of one thousand dollars' value, at the time of election and for six months pre- viously. Senators are elected for three years. To be candidate for a seat as a representative, citizenship of the United States is required ; two years' residence in the state, and one year's residence in the county, city, or town of which he is candidate ; an age of twenty-one years ; and the ownership of one hundred and fifty acres of land, or five hundred dol- lars in real estate for six months. Voters must be free white citizens of the United States ; twenty-one years of age ; residents of the state for the last year, and of their district for the last six months ; enrolled in the militia, or exempts ; or have paid a state or county tax. The governor is elected by electors, and holds his oifice two years, and until his successor shall be duly qualified. He must be thirty years of age; twenty years a citizen of the United States ; a i-esident of the state five years ; and the owner of two thousand dollars for the past year. There is a supreme court, and from four to eight judges of the supi'eme and superior courts, who hold office during ^ good behavior, but may be removed by : address to the governor of two thirds i of both houses of the legislature, or by impeachment by the house before the senate. The age of sixty-five limits the term of judgeship. The sixth article of the seventh section of the constitution forbids any minister of the gospel or priest to hold the offices of governor, lieutenant-governor, or a place in the legislature. No officers of the United States, except postmasters, are admitted to offices in the state. The geology of the western border of Mississippi has some most remarkable features. The land on the bank of the great river appears to have undergone wonderful revolutions ; and recent in- vestigations in the vicinity of Natchez have brought to light curiosities of the most interestinor nature. On the shore, at the foot of the bluff, are strewn great numbers of tubes, re- sembling, at first sight, the bodies of old trees, formed of iron ore, and filled with earth, and which appear to have fallen from the bank. The remains of numerous kinds of extinct animals are contained in the ground at different depths; while on the present surface a mound has been opened, which contains bones and implements of men of a race anterior to the present red men ; and trees of great age wei'e growing over the spot. Many of the curious relics above re- ferred to have been discovered in conse- quence of the washing-away and falling of earth, partly caused by running wa- tei", and partly by the cracking of the earth. A crack in the surface, a little distance from the river, was discovered a few years ago, which is very long and deep, and gradually growing wider. Statistics. — According to the census of 1840, the population of Mississippi was 375,651, or about 2,000 more than New Jersey, 70,000 more than Con- necticut, 17,000 more than Louisiana, and 22,000 less than Alabama. Of her population, 195,211 were slaves; 651 free colored- males, 715 do. females. 1,303 persons were engaged in com- merce, 131,000 in agriculture, 4,151 in trades and maTiufactures, 33 in naviga- ting the ocean, and 1,506 in the learned professions. There were 109,227 horses and mules, 623,197 neat cattle, 128,367 sheep, and 1,001,209 swine. There were also 53 cotton manufactories, 128. tanneries, 1 pottei-y, 16 flouring mills, 14 distilleries, 2 breweries, 28 printing- offices, and 450 schools and colleges, which are said to be in a flourishing state. The value of agricultui-al industry was estimated at $41,773,000, or $111 for each inhabitant. The ordinary revenue of the state was $123,000. 1 Natchez, the principal town, is ad- vant-iigeously situated on the summit and side of a high bluff, on the eastern bank : of Mississippi river, three hundred and DESCRIPTION OP THE STATE OF MISSISSIPPI 431 one miles from New Orleans by the river ; about five hundred miles from St. Louis, and one thousand one hundred and forty-six from Washington city. The soil is rich, and the climate de- litrhtful in the winter. The vicinity is adorned with many fine residences, where elegant houses are seen embosomed in luxuriant groves, amid a wonderful pro- fusion of flowers and fruits. The streets, which are straight and regularly laid out, are chiefly on the high ground, which is elevated from a hundred and fifty to two hundred feet above the river. The nature of the soil, howevei", is unfavor- able for the situation of a town, as a loose sandstone-i'ock, which lies so low as to be observable only at low water, is the only substratum of a high bluff" composed of clay, intermingled in some parts with sand. Violent rains, there- fore, sometimes form large cavities in the surface, which is irregular and often changing. A large part of the lower town was destroyed a few years ago, by the falling of the bank near the water. The houses are generally of wood, and many of them are constructed with taste, and adorned with trees and gardens. There are four churches, a courthouse, three banks, an academy, a female sem- inary, a masonic-hall, theatre, orphan asylum, hospital, &c. The population, at the present time, probably exceeds five thousand. The wharves are the scene of active business, as an extensive trade is carried on in cotton, which is produced in great quantities in the neighborhood ; and nu- merous boats, rafts, and steamboats, lie or touch at the wharves. The situation of the town, on a prominent elevation, distinguishes it as the principal place on this part of the Mississippi, where the banks aie generally low, and almost in- visible from the waters. It was as much distinguished in former times as at the present day, having been the residence of the most powerful Indian tribe in this region, whose chief, denominated the Great Sun, was undisputed ruler over the surrounding country, which he ovei'- looked from his lofty fort on the summit of the bluff*. This was the chief who permitted the French to erect Fort Rosalie on that eminence, but afterward massacred the garrison. Steamboats arrive daily from New Orleans, and others depart for that im- portant city ; and a similar communica- tion is kept up with St. Louis, Cincin- nati, and the other principal places above, on the mighty river and some of its branches. Stagecoaches depart three times a week for Jackson and for St. Francisville, Louisiana. The Mississippi Railroad leads to Washington, sixteen miles, and Mal- colm, fourteen miles beyond. The distance from Natchez to New Orleans by land is only two hundred and eleven miles. The route is fii'st by stagecoach to Coldspring, twenty miles, and Woodville, fifteen miles ; thence by railroad to Laurel hill, eleven miles, and St. Francisville, seventeen miles. The route then passes Port Hudson, Baton Rouge, Manchac, Iberville, New River, Donaldsville, Bringier's, Bonnet Carre, and Lafayette, two miles from New Orleans. From Natchez to Cincinnati (Ohio) the land-route is first by the rail- road to Washington and Malcolm, then by stagecoaches through Gallatin, Jack- son, Springfield, Louisville, Choctaw Agency, Columbus, Florence, and Nash- ville, to Cincinnati, seven hundred and sixty miles. Some of the most remarkable features of the Mississippi river — the greatest stream of North America, and one of the largest in the world — are most easily observable from the elevated position which Natchez affords to the spectator. The tortuous course which it pursues, through a considerable part of its length, causes numerous eddies, one of the largest of which is in this vicinity. These eddies, when known and properly used by pilots, afford important facilities to vessels passing up the stream, as in some places they run northward for a consid- erable distance, at the rate of one, two, or more miles an hour. When not known, or when the navigator is de- ceived by the weathei*, they sometimes cause great embarrassment and loss of time. Some years ago, a flat-bottomed boat was passing down the river, with a load of produce for New Orleans, when 432 DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MISSISSIPPI. the boatmen heard music at night on the neiafhborino: shore. The air was then so misty, that it was impossible to distin- guish distant objects ; and they floated on for some time, until their ears were asrain greeted with a similar sound. At about an equal interval, music was again heard ; and they came to the conclusion that the inhabitants of the bank were celebrating some general festival, pre- suming that they were passing one vil- lage, or hamlet, after another. Thus they continued to move on through a great part of the night, and judged they were making rapid progress on their voyage. Morning, however, at length dispelled the mists and their delusion. Thev found themselves in the great ed- dy, which has a regular sweep of about five miles at a particular stage of the water ; and they had been floating round and round its wide circle for several hours, passing a solitary house, then dis- tinguishable on the shore, where a small party had spent the time in mirth and music. The looseness of the earth along the banks, and the low level of land in most places, give occasion to some surprising phenomena. The channels are contin- nually liable to changes, as the current is strong enough to wear away the earth in any direction to which it may be turned, either by an obstruction or the removal of an obstacle. The earth thus torn away in one place is deposited in another, together with some of the par- ticles brought down fi-om the uj)per parts (5f the stream, or its branches, in the an- nual floods. A bank undermined soon falls, often with a mass of timber; and trees then float along, until stopped by some shoal, or entangled at the bottom. These, becoming imbedded by the rapid accumulation of sand, often stand fixed for years, and, if allowed to remain, ex- pose the numerous rafts and boats to danger. The boatmen designate these obstructions by different names, accord- ing to the manner in which they are placed in the ground. A log or tree fixed upright in the bottom of the river is called a planter; one pointing up- ward in a slanting direction, and move- able by the current, is called a sawyer ; one with numei'ous prongs or branches is denominated a snag. Of these the planter is often an object of the greatest dread, when wholly sunken, as it may penetrate a boat's bottom in an instant. A sawyer, also, is very dangerous; for while a boat lies against it, and is pressed upon it by the cuiTent, the motion of the water keeps the end of the log alter- nately rising and sinking, which may quickly cut through the side or upper works, and cause material injury. Such, however, have been the labor and expense devoted by the United States goveniment, for years past, to the clearing of the channels from obstruc- tions, that few of these now remain in situations where they are likely to cause injury — though new changes, of course, require new care. Natchez has frequently been visited by the yellow-fever, and with fatal ef- fect ; for although the state generally is far more healthful than Louisiana, some parts of it are not safe from this scourge of our southern regions, and this its principal town has suffered most se- verely. This must be assigned as one of the principal causes of the slow in- crease of population. The neighboring low ground, much of which is inun- dated by the river, must be the principal source of the contagion. Jackson, the capital, is situated on Pearl river, on a plain about a quarter of a mile from its left bank, and is ac- cessible in small vessels. The streets are regular, and the town contains seve- ral public buildings worthy of particular notice. The statehouse is a handsome edifice, and there are also the state-pen- itentiary, the governor's house, and the United States land-office. The number of inhabitants in 1840 was two thousand five hundred. Centennary College, founded in 1841, is a methodist institution, and has a president, five professors, and about one hundred and seventy students. A railroad leads to Vicksburg, and cars arrive and depart daily ; and stage- coaches go to Nashville (Tennessee) via Columbus and Florence (Alabama), and to Gainesville. Those for Natchez go three times a week. DESCRIPTION OF THE STATE OF MISSISSIPPI. 433 Grand Gulf. — This town bears the name of a remarkable bend in the Mis- sissippi, on which it is built, three hun- dred and fifty-two miles above New Orleans. It has a townhall, an hospital, two churches, and a theatre. The pop- ulation is about one thousand. It has a daily communication with New Orleans by steam. Washington. — This town has apleas- arit situation, on a gentle elevation, six n)iles east of Natchez, and contains a few detached but nent and handsome dwellings. It has two churches, and is distinguished as the site of Waslnnirton College. — This institution I was founded in 1802, and received from j congress an endowment in a grant of i land. The buildings are of brick ; and it contains a library of about one thou- I sand volumes, a chemical apparatus, a geological collection, arrd specimens of various fossil remains, such as we have ; before referred to as being found in this vicinity. Ellicot's spring is a fine source of ; water rising on the college grounds ; ! several other springs in this neighbor- hood are remarkable for their excellent ! water. I Port Gibson, — This is a small town i on Bayou Pierre; it is eis^ht miles from ; Gran^d Gulf, and twenty-five miles froin ! the Mississippi by water. It has three ' churches, a courthouse, an academy, and al)out five hundred inhabitants. VicKSBURG. — This town is on the Mis- i sissippi, five hundred and thirteen miles from New Orleans by water, and is quite ' flourishing, though of recent date. It | contains a courthouse, five churches, three academies, and a theatre, with | about four thousand inhabitants. The , surrounding region is very fertile, and the town makes a very picturesque ap- pearance, presenting many clusters of dwellings, scattered alone^ the declivity of several eminences, just below the Walnut hills. Steamboats from New Orleans arrive and depart daily, as well as fr(im St. Louis (Missouri). Yazoo City. — This town stands on Yazoo river, at the distance of four hun- dred and ninety-three miles fi'om New Orleans, and is connected v/ith it by steamboats. Stagecoaches go to Holly Springs three times a week. The pop- ulation is only about seven hundred, but it is a place of considerable business, and contains several large stores. Holly Springs. — The situation of this town is elevated, on the summit of a range of hills near the headsprings of Yazoo river. The surrounding country is rich and pleasant. The number of inhabitants is about one thousand seven hundred, and the town contains a court- house, an academy, and three churches. Stagecoaches go to Memphis every day, and depart three times in the week by several routes fi)r La Grange, Tuscum- bia (Alabama), Columbus, Jackson, Ya- zoo City, and Commerce. Columbus. — This town is one hun- dred and forty-one miles distant from the seat of government, on a hill on the left bank of Tombigbee river, one hun- dred and twenty feet above its level. The stream is crossed by a handsome bridge. TR'e public buildings consist of a coui-thouse, an academy, two banks, five churches, a market, a theatre, and a female seminary. The population is about four thousand. Steamboats run from Columbus to Mobile, and stagecoaches depart every day for Jackson and Vicksburg, as well as for Nashville (Tenn.), through Tus- cumbia, and three times a week for Pontotoc, Holly Springs, and Memphis. The iinindations of the low grounds adjacent to the lower parts of the Mis- sissippi, are among the most striking phenomena connected with it. The bed of the stream is, in some places, much higher than the level of the adjacent fields, and whole plantations are actu- ally below the surface of the river. The flood begins on the lower branches of the Mississippi, some time before the warm season is sufficiently advanced to melt the deeper snows in the more distant northerly parts, near its upper sources. The regions from which the floods are derived lie between latitude forty-two and fifty degrees, and at dif- ferent elevations from twelve hundred to five thousand feet above the ocean. The heat of summer prevails at New Orleans some time before any change 28 434 DESCRIPTION OF THE 8TATE OF MISSISSIPPI. of elevation is made at the mouth of the river by the water derived from ils head streams. About tlie eud of February the waters be^iti to arrive from the lower tributaries whicli flow from re- gions of frost and snow. Ry gradual but irregular increase, the surface cou- tiimes to rise from the end of that month, when the Red river jiours in its enily flood, until late in the summer, when the last surplus waters arrive from the snows melted long before on the elevated sur- face near the ncutheru lakes. The loneness of the bank of the Mis- sissippi, along a great part of the west- ern border of this state, with the loose nature of the alluvial soil, rendcu's it almost impossible to erect even a single building near the water's edge, except at particular ]>laces, many of which are at considerable distances from each other. Yet along this part of the river it is pe- culiarly important to have depositories of wood for the use of steamboats, which consume fuel in such quantities that a full supply can not be taken in at the commenc{!ment of the voyage. So great is the denuiud, that, in spite of the nu- merous obstacles interposed by nature, wooding stations, as they are called, have been established in considerable num- bers, some by driving piles into the bank, and laying phitforms on the top, elevated sufliciently to be above the floods ; and there (piantities of wood, cut for the steamers' fui'naces, are piled, and small tenements erected barely sufficient for the habitation of a few persons, and sometimes designed only for a single man. These are the only stopping- places for steamboats in long distances, where towns are rare ; and only here has the traveller any opportunity to ob- serve the river's banks, or any of the productions of nature, sometimes so at- tractive to a naturalist. The reader is referred to the vignette at the head of this description, for an accurate representation of a Mississipjii " wooding station ;" as a view of it will naturally impress the mind with ideas of the great loneliness of such a retreat, especially at seasons when least visited by passing boats ; and with those of gloom and danger during the inunda- tions, when the inhabitants are situated in the midst of a wide expanse of Wiiter, with an irresistible current sweeping along, wearing away the unstable foun- dations of their fabric, and threatening to scatter its parts over the face of the waters, leaving them no ark f(jr safety. Antiquitiks. — Some persons have fanci(!d a resemblance between some of the remains of former inhabitants found in the western mounds, and those discov- ered in the pyramids, catacombs, and other depositories of ancient times in the old world. The following remarks on the subject we ahbi'eviate from the remarks of Mr. Squier, who hns been successfully engaged in examining many of the remains in the west : — " There are many coincidences be- tween the remains of anti